Selected quad for the lemma: son_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
son_n father_n holy_a incomprehensible_a 13,551 5 13.7213 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A56675 Jesus and the resurrection justified by witnesses in heaven and in earth in two parts : the first shewing that Jesus is the Son of God, the second that in him we have eternall life / by Symon Patrick ... Patrick, Simon, 1626-1707. 1677 (1677) Wing P816 585,896 1,396

There are 56 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o name_n that_o they_o be_v if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n for_o it_o his_o office_n will_v give_v he_o a_o title_n to_o it_o because_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n christ_n anoint_v by_o god_n to_o the_o high_a dignity_n and_o government_n under_o he_o not_o only_o over_o that_o country_n but_o over_o all_o nation_n on_o the_o earth_n who_o by_o believe_v on_o he_o be_v all_o to_o be_v make_v a_o choose_a generation_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o holy_a nation_n a_o peculiar_a people_n 1_o pet._n two_o 9_o but_o to_o show_v his_o most_o excellent_a greatness_n he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o two_o mark_n of_o his_o preeminence_n above_o all_o other_o who_o have_v have_v that_o name_n first_o he_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o son_n that_o eminent_a king_n the_o king_n of_o king_n like_v to_o who_o none_o ever_o be_v for_o second_o whereas_o those_o son_n of_o the_o high_a speak_v of_o before_o be_v to_o die_v like_o other_o man_n 82.7_o psal_n 82.7_o and_o to_o fall_v like_o one_o of_o the_o prince_n in_o other_o country_n he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o that_o god_n who_o live_v xuj_o matth._n 16._o that_o be_v of_o the_o immortal_a eternal_a god_n and_o by_o consequence_n be_v like_o his_o father_n a_o everlasting_a king_n of_o who_o kingdom_n as_o the_o angel_n tell_v his_o mother_n i._n luke_n 33._o there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n thus_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n who_o understand_v this_o language_n well_o enough_o have_v discourse_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n where_o he_o prove_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o a_o more_o eminent_a sense_n than_o any_o angel_n in_o heaven_n according_a to_o those_o ancient_a prophecy_n before_o name_v concern_v david_n and_o solomon_n as_o you_o read_v ver_fw-la 4_o 5._o from_o whence_o the_o jew_n learn_v to_o call_v the_o messiah_n who_o they_o confess_v be_v in_o those_o place_n mystical_o speak_v of_o by_o that_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o the_o apostle_n there_o show_v be_v the_o great_a name_n of_o excellence_n and_o signify_v the_o high_a honour_n and_o dignity_n such_o as_o god_n have_v confer_v upon_o no_o other_o and_o then_o he_o proceed_v to_o show_v that_o according_a to_o other_o prophecy_n which_o speak_v of_o his_o supereminence_n his_o throne_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o ver_fw-la 8._o for_o god_n who_o be_v his_o god_n in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n love_v and_o reward_v he_o have_v anoint_v he_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n prefer_v he_o that_o be_v above_o all_o that_o partake_v of_o kingly_a dignity_n ver_fw-la 9_o he_o have_v make_v he_o indeed_o his_o first-born_a the_o prince_n of_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o s._n john_n speak_v i._o revel_v 5._o to_o who_o we_o be_v to_o submit_v ourselves_o with_o the_o great_a devotion_n of_o spirit_n and_o from_o who_o we_o may_v then_o expect_v protection_n blessing_n and_o the_o noble_a reward_n for_o he_o be_v the_o long_o expect_a son_n of_o god_n who_o excel_v all_o other_o that_o be_v ever_o call_v by_o that_o name_n the_o king_n of_o inconceivable_a majesty_n who_o splendour_n can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o be_v foreshadowed_n by_o solomon_n in_o all_o his_o glory_n thus_o nathanael_n i_o observe_v put_v these_o two_o expression_n together_o in_o his_o confession_n of_o our_o saviour_n out_o of_o a_o vehement_a affection_n redouble_v his_o word_n thou_o be_v that_o son_n of_o god_n thou_o be_v that_o king_n of_o israel_n i._n john_n 49._o this_o be_v the_o business_n upon_o which_o we_o be_v to_o examine_v these_o witness_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v what_o they_o say_v to_o this_o point_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v send_v from_o god_n as_o moses_n have_v former_o be_v only_o moses_n as_o a_o servant_n but_o he_o as_o a_o son_n according_a to_o what_o you_o read_v iii._o heb._n 5_o 6._o with_o a_o fullness_n of_o authority_n with_o all_o the_o power_n of_o god_n so_o that_o we_o may_v confident_o rely_v on_o every_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v say_v as_o the_o very_a mind_n and_o sense_n of_o god_n this_o if_o we_o can_v hear_v they_o speak_v they_o be_v witness_n so_o beyond_o all_o exception_n that_o we_o can_v choose_v but_o reverence_v he_o and_o receive_v he_o and_o obey_v he_o and_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o rejoice_v in_o his_o royal_a favour_n and_o love_v evermore_o for_o the_o first_o three_o be_v no_o less_o person_n than_o the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o gracious_a assistance_n let_v we_o humble_o implore_v that_o this_o and_o all_o other_o our_o work_n may_v be_v begin_v continue_v and_o end_v to_o the_o glorify_v of_o his_o holy_a name_n a_o prayer_n o_o father_n of_o light_n from_o who_o comet●_n every_o good_a and_o every_o perfect_a gift_n illuminate_v my_o mind_n in_o these_o meditation_n that_o i_o may_v be_v able_a to_o enlighten_v other_o an●_n lead_v they_o into_o a_o good_a understanding_n in_o a●●_n thing_n guide_n and_o direct_v my_o thought_n tha●_n i_o may_v reason_n and_o discourse_v aright_o shine_v into_o all_o our_o soul_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n 6.40_o john_n 6.40_o that_o we_o see_v the_o son_n may_v believe_v on_o he_o and_o be_v make_v thy_o childre●_n by_o adoption_n and_o grace_n may_v be_v daily_o more_o an●_n more_o renew_v by_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n settle_v i●_n our_o soul_n that_o mighty_a faith_n whereby_o we_o may_v have_v power_n and_o strength_n to_o have_v victory_n and_o to_o triumph_v over_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n strengthen_v it_o every_o day_n by_o constant_a meditation_n on_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o o_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v so_o many_o way_n declare_v to_o we_o that_o it_o may_v grow_v still_o more_o victorious_a and_o we_o may_v feel_v the_o happy_a fruit_n of_o it_o in_o great_a joy_n and_o triumph_v of_o spirit_n in_o assure_a expectation_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o thou_o have_v promise_v to_o all_o faithful_a soul_n o_o that_o none_o of_o the_o entice_a allurement_n of_o this_o world_n may_v ever_o more_o deceive_v we_o and_o steal_v away_o our_o heart_n from_o our_o true_a happiness_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o troublesome_a passage_n of_o this_o life_n ever_o hereafter_o dishearten_v we_o and_o divert_v we_o from_o the_o pursuit_n of_o it_o but_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n may_v so_o entire_o possess_v our_o heart_n as_o to_o keep_v we_o steadfast_a and_o upright_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o the_o temptation_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o they_o be_v that_o assault_n we_o and_o look_v up_o unto_o jesus_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o may_v still_o say_v with_o true_a resolution_n of_o spirit_n thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n most_o high_a thou_o be_v the_o king_n of_o incomprehensible_a majesty_n thou_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o we_o will_v constant_o adhere_v to_o thou_o as_o thy_o faithful_a subject_n we_o will_v follow_v thou_o in_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o patient_a obedience_n to_o the_o very_a death_n and_o hope_v that_o as_o we_o feel_v by_o thy_o power_n in_o we_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n so_o we_o shall_v be_v heir_n heir_n of_o god_n joynt-heir_n with_o thou_o o_o bless_a lord_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v glory_n and_o dominion_n for_o ever_o amen_n chap._n ii_o concern_v the_o witness_n in_o general_a and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_z in_o particular_a if_o any_o man_n urge_v we_o to_o receive_v a_o thing_n which_o be_v new_a and_o strange_a we_o either_o turn_v away_o our_o ear_n if_o we_o take_v he_o for_o a_o frivolous_a person_n or_o else_o require_v he_o to_o show_v we_o good_a evidence_n for_o what_o he_o say_v if_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v wise_a and_o serious_a and_o the_o more_o importunate_a he_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v the_o more_o earnest_n we_o be_v to_o know_v what_o he_o have_v to_o show_v for_o himself_o and_o to_o call_v for_o his_o proof_n in_o which_o if_o he_o fail_v or_o they_o come_v not_o home_n to_o the_o purpose_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o gain_v any_o credit_n with_o those_o who_o examine_v they_o that_o they_o prove_v a_o very_a considerable_a argument_n against_o he_o especial_o when_o he_o pretend_v to_o come_v from_o god_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o message_n from_o heaven_n we_o all_o expect_v the_o clear_a and_o divine_a demonstration_n before_o we_o can_v resign_v our_o mind_n unto_o he_o for_o that_o which_o be_v to_o make_v all_o thing_n credible_a must_v have_v very_o
it_o be_v a_o plain_a demonstration_n that_o he_o be_v dear_a to_o god_n and_o have_v his_o very_a spirit_n in_o he_o now_o next_o to_o this_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o necessary_a and_o desirable_a to_o be_v know_v than_o how_o we_o may_v obtain_v this_o great_a and_o matchless_a victory_n over_o every_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n that_o oppose_v our_o christian_a resolution_n and_o so_o undoubted_o approve_v ourselves_o heroical_a person_n as_o they_o be_v ancient_o call_v that_o be_v bear_v from_o above_o and_o here_o also_o the_o apostle_n lend_v we_o his_o assistance_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o that_o four_o verse_n that_o we_o must_v achieve_v it_o by_o faith_n and_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcome_v the_o world_n even_o our_o faith_n so_o courageous_a so_o powerful_a so_o successful_a be_v a_o hearty_a lively_a faith_n that_o you_o see_v he_o call_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o victory_n itself_o if_o we_o believe_v steadfast_o we_o shall_v tread_v the_o world_n under_o our_o foot_n and_o easy_o despise_v all_o its_o temptation_n as_o those_o valiant_a worthy_n do_v who_o example_n another_o apostle_n set_v before_o we_o in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n to_o the_o hebrew_n a_o portion_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o that_o mean_v to_o be_v a_o conqueror_n shall_v think_v he_o can_v never_o read_v too_o oft_o but_o there_o be_v a_o far_a enquiry_n remain_v which_o every_o body_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o make_v and_o that_o be_v what_o this_o faith_n may_v be_v which_o be_v so_o victorious_a and_o triumphant_a and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n take_v care_n to_o satisfy_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n also_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o verse_n 5._o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v hearty_o persuade_v he_o mean_v that_o that_o great_a person_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o be_v know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o overcome_v the_o world_n so_o glorious_o be_v indeed_o send_v from_o god_n unto_o we_o and_o own_a by_o he_o as_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n so_o that_o we_o may_v as_o infallible_o depend_v upon_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o have_v say_v either_o of_o himself_o or_o concern_v we_o as_o we_o can_v upon_o any_o thing_n of_o sense_n or_o reason_n by_o which_o we_o think_v ourselves_o bind_v to_o guide_v and_o determine_v our_o resolution_n and_o action_n in_o this_o life_n but_o still_o after_o all_o this_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n more_o that_o we_o can_v but_o desire_v to_o be_v very_o sure_a of_o without_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n will_v stand_v we_o in_o no_o stead_n but_o we_o shall_v flag_n and_o despair_n of_o success_n viz._n that_o jesus_n be_v indeed_o the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o if_o it_o be_v not_o well_o prove_v by_o substantial_a argument_n we_o can_v have_v no_o solid_a faith_n and_o so_o no_o victory_n and_o so_o no_o sonship_n no_o hope_n in_o another_o world_n the_o apostle_n therefore_o that_o he_o may_v serve_v we_o in_o bring_v some_o evident_a demonstration_n of_o this_o so_o important_a a_o truth_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o next_o word_n verse_n 6._o that_o jesus_n do_v not_o only_o say_v he_o be_v god_n son_n and_o confident_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o divine_a person_n so_o long_o look_v for_o to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o that_o he_o come_v with_o very_o sufficient_a and_o unreprovable_a witness_n of_o it_o viz._n the_o water_n the_o blood_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o make_v this_o truth_n good_a to_o all_o those_o who_o consider_v their_o testimony_n if_o the_o first_o of_o these_o water_n shall_v not_o be_v think_v great_a enough_o to_o merit_v belief_n yet_o the_o blood_n join_v with_o it_o add_v great_a force_n to_o its_o persuasion_n or_o if_o both_o these_o seem_v too_o weak_a yet_o this_o last_o the_o spirit_z the_o apostle_n doubt_v not_o be_v so_o strong_a to_o conquer_v man_n mind_n and_o make_v they_o believe_v in_o jesus_n that_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n be_v truth_n that_o be_v such_o a_o undoubted_a proof_n that_o jesus_n be_v what_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v deceive_v who_o rely_v upon_o it_o and_o no_o man_n can_v refuse_v if_o he_o give_v heed_n to_o it_o to_o rely_v and_o depend_v upon_o such_o a_o witness_n now_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n notorious_a in_o those_o day_n and_o need_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o the_o whole_a country_n of_o judaea_n can_v witness_v it_o that_o he_o come_v by_o or_o rather_o with_o water_n blood_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o go_v about_o to_o make_v this_o good_a that_o there_o be_v such_o witness_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n confess_v but_o rather_o repeat_v it_o over_o again_o as_o the_o strong_a proof_n of_o his_o divine_a authority_n add_v moreover_o there-withal_a that_o there_o be_v three_o other_o witness_n who_o by_o their_o concurrent_a testimony_n will_v unanimous_o justify_v this_o truth_n for_o say_v he_o in_o the_o word_n i_o have_v choose_v to_o explain_v there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n or_o witness_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o and_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v witness_n in_o earth_n the_o spirit_n and_o the_o water_n and_o the_o blood_n and_o these_o three_o agree_v in_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o can_v reasonable_o doubt_v of_o that_o which_o we_o preach_v concern_v jesus_n if_o you_o go_v but_o to_o those_o three_o witness_n to_o which_o i_o have_v send_v you_o the_o water_n the_o blood_n and_o the_o spirit_n for_o they_o all_o affirm_v with_o one_o mouth_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o as_o they_o testify_v this_o to_o you_o upon_o the_o earth_n so_o there_o be_v three_o other_o witness_n also_o who_o declare_v it_o to_o you_o from_o heaven_n to_o who_o i_o first_o direct_v you_o and_o then_o to_o those_o three_o that_o here_o on_o earth_n as_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o bear_v their_o record_n to_o he_o there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o copy_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v which_o leave_v out_o the_o testimony_n of_o these_o three_o witness_n that_o speak_v from_o heaven_n not_o read_v the_o seven_o verse_n as_o be_v note_v not_o only_o by_o socinus_n and_o his_o follower_n but_o by_o erasmus_n grotius_n curcellaeus_n and_o our_o learned_a selden_n who_o collection_n to_o this_o purpose_n far_o exceed_v all_o former_a observation_n but_o yet_o this_o last_o name_v great_a author_n have_v say_v so_o much_o 4._o much_o l._n 2._o the_o syned_a cap._n 4._o num_fw-la 4._o to_o justify_v the_o antiquity_n of_o our_o present_a read_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o seven_o verse_n in_o the_o place_n wherein_o it_o now_o stand_v that_o i_o make_v no_o question_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o s._n john_n concern_v the_o three_o heavenly_a witness_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_z according_o i_o shall_v in_o the_o first_o place_n appeal_v to_o their_o testimony_n for_o the_o confirm_v of_o this_o truth_n and_o for_o the_o support_v thereby_o of_o our_o faith_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o if_o any_o body_n shall_v say_v what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o this_o in_o a_o christian_a country_n there_o be_v no_o infidel_n sure_a among_o we_o nor_o be_v we_o in_o danger_n to_o turn_v pagan_n turk_n or_o jew_n who_o blaspheme_v the_o lord_n jesus_n i_o shall_v not_o labour_v to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n by_o cast_v reproach_n on_o other_o nor_o complain_v of_o the_o apostasy_n which_o some_o think_v they_o have_v reason_n to_o lay_v to_o the_o charge_n of_o too_o many_o in_o this_o present_a untoward_a generation_n but_o desire_v they_o to_o take_v their_o answer_n from_o s._n john_n himself_o in_o the_o thirteen_o verse_n of_o this_o very_a chapter_n where_o they_o will_v find_v that_o he_o think_v it_o not_o unnecessary_a to_o write_v these_o thing_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v know_v how_o happy_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v i._n e._n continue_v to_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o i_o may_v modest_o suppose_v that_o what_o he_o think_v good_a to_o assert_v here_o with_o so_o much_o care_n and_o exactness_n it_o will_v not_o be_v think_v a_o unprofitable_a diligence_n if_o i_o study_v to_o expound_v and_o enlarge_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o believer_n it_o will_v be_v some_o satisfaction_n to_o i_o however_o to_o have_v have_v it_o in_o my_o heart_n to_o do_v some_o honour_n to_o my_o saviour_n
our_o neighbour_n will_v we_o not_o allow_v god_n say_v the_o apostle_n as_o much_o as_o we_o yield_v to_o they_o shall_v not_o his_o word_n determine_v and_o conclude_v we_o when_o he_o give_v evidence_n of_o a_o thing_n shall_v we_o still_o dispute_v it_o with_o he_o that_o beside_o the_o undutifulness_n of_o it_o be_v too_o great_a a_o stubborness_n we_o may_v rather_o be_v teach_v how_o to_o behave_v ourselves_o towards_o he_o by_o the_o measure_n man_n expect_v from_o we_o and_o we_o from_o they_o yea_o god_n do_v more_o deserve_v credit_n than_o any_o man_n for_o as_o he_o add_v the_o witness_n of_o god_n be_v great_a i._n e._n be_v of_o far_o more_o validity_n and_o certainty_n it_o may_v more_o secure_o be_v rely_v on_o than_o the_o witness_n of_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o god_n be_v not_o only_o great_a than_o man_n but_o his_o witness_n also_o or_o testimony_n be_v great_a which_o must_v be_v careful_o note_v it_o be_v of_o more_o force_n and_o strength_n to_o support_v any_o conclusion_n we_o may_v more_o undoubted_o find_v our_o faith_n upon_o it_o because_o it_o be_v not_o liable_a to_o any_o of_o those_o exception_n which_o may_v prejudice_v the_o best_a testimony_n of_o man_n two_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o lessen_v the_o testimony_n of_o man_n if_o we_o compare_v it_o with_o god_n and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v of_o a_o nature_n more_o weak_a and_o infirm_a the_o one_o be_v that_o though_o a_o man_n be_v repute_v honest_a and_o therefore_o we_o can_v legal_o except_v against_o his_o testimony_n yet_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v be_v a_o deceiver_n and_o we_o can_v look_v into_o his_o heart_n to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v or_o no._n we_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v the_o least_o deceit_n by_o he_o in_o what_o he_o say_v or_o ever_o have_v say_v or_o do_v and_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o never_o deliver_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o truth_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o justice_n but_o yet_o we_o can_v never_o free_v our_o mind_n from_o this_o thought_n since_o we_o know_v not_o his_o inward_a man_n that_o there_o be_v a_o possibility_n also_o it_o may_v be_v otherwise_o with_o he_o but_o than_o second_o suppose_v he_o perfect_o honest_a and_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v put_v a_o cheat_n upon_o we_o yet_o it_o will_v be_v always_o possible_a that_o he_o may_v be_v cheat_v himself_o because_o all_o man_n be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v mistake_v the_o great_a integrity_n in_o the_o world_n can_v secure_v a_o man_n but_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o understanding_n and_o the_o subtlety_n of_o other_o may_v sometime_o impose_v upon_o he_o so_o that_o though_o he_o think_v what_o he_o say_v to_o be_v true_a it_o may_v be_v otherwise_o in_o itself_o than_o it_o be_v in_o his_o thought_n herein_o therefore_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n be_v great_a than_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n that_o it_o be_v not_o liable_a to_o either_o of_o these_o suspicion_n it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a that_o he_o shall_v either_o be_v deceive_v himself_o or_o that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v we_o he_o can_v neither_o lead_v we_o into_o a_o error_n which_o we_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o goodness_n and_o truth_n nor_o fall_n into_o one_o himself_o which_o be_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o understanding_n and_o his_o omnipresent_v be_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n then_o be_v so_o indubitable_a that_o it_o be_v above_o the_o testimony_n of_o any_o man_n it_o ought_v with_o all_o reverence_n to_o be_v receive_v when_o he_o declare_v that_o jesus_n be_v his_o son_n for_o if_o it_o be_v but_o equal_a to_o humane_a testimony_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v refuse_v now_o this_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n which_o he_o have_v testify_v of_o his_o son_n that_o be_v it_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v most_o rational_a that_o we_o shall_v receive_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n nay_o give_v it_o great_a respect_n than_o we_o bear_v to_o that_o of_o man_n i_o assure_v you_o that_o the_o evidence_n which_o we_o give_v you_o concern_v jesus_n be_v the_o very_a testimony_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o slight_v it_o it_o be_v not_o we_o that_o bear_v witness_n to_o he_o so_o much_o as_o god_n we_o do_v not_o desire_v you_o to_o hear_v mere_o what_o we_o say_v but_o what_o god_n himself_o have_v say_v who_o have_v give_v many_o assurance_n of_o this_o truth_n if_o there_o be_v but_o two_o of_o they_o they_o may_v by_o your_o own_o rule_n very_o well_o expect_v to_o find_v entertainment_n but_o there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o six_o witness_n every_o one_o of_o they_o divine_a they_o all_o speak_v from_o god_n and_o therefore_o you_o can_v deny_v your_o assent_n to_o what_o they_o prove_v for_o the_o first_o witness_n be_v god_n the_o father_n himself_o who_o call_v jesus_n his_o well-beloved_a son_n and_o the_o second_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o account_n whatsoever_o he_o say_v be_v god_n testimony_n also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o three_o that_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v on_o purpose_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o his_o son_n as_o for_o the_o four_o water_n the_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n his_o life_n be_v the_o life_n of_o god_n john_n baptism_n be_v from_o heaven_n and_o he_o be_v call_v i._o john_n 6._o a_o man_n send_v from_o god._n then_o for_o the_o blood_n which_o be_v the_o five_o witness_n it_o be_v call_v god_n own_o blood_n xx_o act_n 28._o and_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v his_o by_o his_o gather_n it_o up_o again_o after_o it_o be_v shed_v and_o take_v it_o into_o the_o heaven_n where_o he_o appear_v with_o it_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n for_o we_o and_o the_o last_o of_o these_o witness_n be_v express_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n twelve_o matth._n 28._o so_o that_o it_o be_v god_n you_o see_v who_o so_o many_o way_n bear_v witness_v of_o his_o son_n there_o be_v something_o divine_a in_o every_o one_o of_o these_o witness_n in_o those_o on_o earth_n as_o well_o as_o in_o those_o in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v without_o a_o affront_n to_o god_n reject_v their_o testimony_n for_o than_o he_o will_v have_v worse_a measure_n from_o we_o than_o man_n have_v and_o we_o shall_v give_v less_o respect_n to_o six_o witness_n of_o he_o than_o to_o two_o or_o three_o of_o our_o neighbour_n if_o jesus_n come_v not_o with_o clear_a demonstration_n with_o fullness_n of_o proof_n then_o deny_v he_o any_o admittance_n but_o if_o god_n have_v so_o many_o way_n justify_v he_o to_o be_v his_o son_n if_o his_o life_n be_v so_o excellent_a his_o blood_n so_o holy_a his_o spirit_n so_o divine_a than_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v it_o before_o any_o know_a man_n much_o less_o before_o god_n if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v he_o and_o that_o hearty_o and_o full_o in_o every_o thing_n no_o more_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o say_v than_o we_o do_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o our_o eye_n and_o our_o ear_n report_v to_o we_o or_o of_o those_o which_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o upon_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o which_o end_n it_o shall_v be_v our_o endeavour_n that_o our_o faith_n may_v rest_v upon_o a_o sure_a and_o strong_a foundation_n and_o be_v lay_v on_o such_o ground_n that_o it_o may_v stand_v the_o fast_o in_o a_o time_n of_o temptation_n the_o ignorant_a man_n faith_n indeed_o may_v be_v as_o strong_a as_o his_o that_o know_v most_o and_o what_o he_o have_v learn_v by_o education_n may_v be_v so_o confirm_v by_o custom_n that_o he_o will_v never_o stir_v from_o it_o but_o be_v only_o the_o effect_n of_o nature_n which_o produce_v the_o same_o resolution_n in_o those_o who_o be_v of_o other_o religion_n the_o christian_a way_n of_o obtain_v a_o strong_a faith_n be_v first_o to_o see_v the_o son_n and_o then_o to_o believe_v on_o he_o to_o everlasting_a life_n as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o teach_v we_o vi_fw-mi john_n 40._o to_o see_v he_o be_v to_o perceive_v and_o discern_v by_o evident_a token_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o true_a way_n to_o life_n upon_o which_o sight_n and_o plain_a demonstration_n we_o ought_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o submit_v unto_o he_o as_o our_o lord_n that_o be_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o flow_v from_o knowledge_n and_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o understanding_n of_o what_o such_o witness_n as_o these_o say_v concern_v jesus_n it_o rely_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o confirm_v by_o water_n and_o blood_n and_o
study_n and_o labour_n with_o these_o the_o devil_n bait_v his_o hook_n to_o catch_v soul_n and_o they_o who_o do_v not_o bite_v at_o one_o will_v be_v nibble_v at_o another_o they_o that_o be_v not_o tempt_v by_o the_o first_o to_o gluttony_n and_o drunkenness_n fornication_n and_o such_o like_a filthiness_n feel_v the_o second_o perhaps_o incline_v they_o to_o covetousness_n and_o the_o sordid_a love_n of_o money_n with_o a_o thirst_n and_o greediness_n of_o another_o kind_n or_o if_o they_o can_v escape_v and_o despise_v these_o they_o may_v notwithstanding_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o humour_n of_o prodigality_n and_o affectation_n of_o vainglory_n or_o ambition_n of_o dignity_n which_o be_v attend_v with_o emulation_n envy_n and_o other_o dangerous_a vice_n as_o the_o african_a beast_n which_o some_o write_v of_o be_v catch_v with_o music_n and_o suffer_v its_o foot_n to_o be_v fetter_v while_o it_o listen_v to_o the_o lesson_n that_o be_v play_v to_o it_o so_o do_v the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n let_v their_o soul_n be_v ensnare_v and_o lead_v into_o a_o miserable_a captivity_n by_o the_o enchant_a voice_n of_o pleasure_n riches_n or_o glory_n whilst_o they_o harken_v to_o the_o bewitch_a melody_n which_o some_o of_o these_o court_n they_o withal_o they_o be_v take_v in_o the_o mighty_a hunter_n net_n and_o become_v a_o prey_n to_o he_o that_o lurk_v for_o soul_n and_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v and_o it_o have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o wise_a charmer_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o open_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o most_o of_o man_n and_o to_o convey_v the_o sense_n of_o better_a thing_n into_o they_o all_o the_o philosophy_n and_o learning_n that_o be_v so_o famous_a in_o former_a age_n can_v never_o obtain_v such_o numerous_a cheerful_a and_o obedient_a auditor_n as_o the_o siren_n song_n which_o these_o three_o sing_v in_o man_n care_n have_v always_o sound_a when_o the_o world_n therefore_o by_o that_o wisdom_n know_v not_o god_n it_o please_v god_n say_v s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n i_o 21._o by_o the_o foolishness_n of_o preach_v to_o save_v they_o that_o believe_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n direct_v and_o dispose_v we_o to_o avoid_v all_o those_o dangerous_a rock_n on_o which_o they_o split_v themselves_o who_o listen_v to_o those_o deceitful_a song_n now_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v he_o pull_v our_o foot_n out_o of_o the_o net_n and_o by_o his_o far_a more_o powerful_a charm_n so_o stop_v our_o ear_n to_o those_o enchantment_n that_o there_o be_v no_o entrance_n for_o they_o any_o more_o it_o seem_v a_o foolish_a thing_n indeed_o to_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o crucify_a jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o where_o this_o simple_a faith_n prevail_v it_o do_v more_o than_o all_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v able_a to_o effect_v before_o for_o it_o give_v they_o a_o new_a understanding_n and_o save_v they_o from_o perish_v by_o make_v they_o account_v it_o the_o great_a pleasure_n and_o glory_n and_o treasure_n to_o follow_v jesus_n and_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o he_o do_v the_o world_n they_o see_v pass_v away_o and_o the_o lust_n thereof_o if_o they_o do_v not_o leave_v we_o we_o must_v at_o last_o leave_v they_o but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n abide_v for_o ever_o so_o those_o three_o heavenly_a witness_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assure_v we_o who_o voice_n as_o it_o be_v most_o sweet_a and_o melodious_a so_o it_o be_v most_o powerful_a to_o disenchant_v we_o and_o to_o preserve_v those_o who_o receive_v their_o testimony_n from_o all_o the_o bewitch_a temptation_n of_o those_o other_o three_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n nay_o here_o be_v two_o three_o of_o infinite_o great_a virtue_n and_o efficacy_n to_o prevail_v with_o we_o than_o all_o that_o the_o world_n trinity_n can_v offer_v to_o we_o if_o we_o will_v but_o open_v our_o ear_n and_o diligent_o listen_v to_o their_o voice_n and_o how_o can_v we_o choose_v but_o listen_v when_o the_o father_n of_o heaven_n call_v to_o we_o so_o gracious_o when_o the_o word_n open_v his_o secret_n to_o we_o and_o the_o holy-ghost_n proclaim_v such_o a_o abundant_a love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o the_o water_n the_o blood_n the_o spirit_n they_o also_o with_o one_o consent_n conspire_v with_o those_o and_o all_o together_o sing_v this_o new_a song_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v this_o one_o note_n of_o they_o more_o ravish_v than_o all_o the_o pleasure_n and_o satisfaction_n which_o the_o world_n infatuate_v its_o follower_n withal_o heaven_n and_o earth_n can_v speak_v any_o thing_n more_o move_v in_o our_o ear_n than_o this_o which_o again_o and_o again_o salute_v they_o with_o new_a joy_n for_o what_o will_v you_o have_v they_o say_v will_v it_o please_v you_o to_o hear_v that_o infinite_a goodness_n love_v we_o that_o the_o heaven_n stand_v open_a to_o we_o and_o show_v we_o their_o glory_n that_o god_n be_v willing_a to_o receive_v we_o up_o thither_o that_o he_o will_v make_v we_o heir_n of_o a_o kingdom_n equal_a with_o the_o angel_n to_o hear_v their_o song_n and_o join_v with_o that_o celestial_a choir_n behold_v they_o be_v all_o include_v in_o this_o one_o sentence_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v god_n have_v give_v we_o his_o son_n this_o be_v the_o sweet_a air_n that_o can_v touch_v our_o ear_n this_o we_o can_v never_o be_v weary_a to_o hear_v this_o strike_v our_o soul_n if_o we_o understand_v it_o so_o grateful_o that_o we_o can_v but_o say_v let_v we_o hear_v that_o again_o and_o therefore_o after_o the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy-ghost_n have_v blessed_v our_o ear_n with_o this_o joyful_a sound_n here_o be_v three_o more_o that_o take_v it_o up_o and_o repeat_v it_o to_o we_o with_o the_o strong_a assurance_n that_o we_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o the_o often_o we_o listen_v to_o they_o and_o lend_v they_o our_o attention_n the_o more_o frequent_o i_o mean_v we_o think_v upon_o the_o reason_n we_o have_v to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n the_o more_o deaf_a shall_v we_o grow_v to_o all_o the_o sinful_a allurement_n of_o this_o world_n how_o invite_v soever_o before_o they_o have_v be_v for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v there_o be_v more_o real_a satisfaction_n in_o the_o very_a understanding_n of_o this_o one_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n than_o in_o all_o the_o delight_n of_o worldly_a man_n what_o be_v there_o i_o beseech_v you_o consider_v in_o all_o their_o sensuality_n comparable_a to_o the_o rational_a gust_n of_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o that_o one_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v my_o well_o belove_v son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v what_o riches_n be_v there_o to_o be_v equal_v with_o this_o treasure_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n that_o god_n have_v bestow_v his_o own_o son_n upon_o we_o what_o honour_n like_v to_o this_o to_o be_v prefer_v to_o be_v the_o friend_n yea_o the_o son_n of_o god_n can_v you_o hear_v any_o thing_n so_o delicious_a as_o that_o voice_n of_o the_o word_n to_o he_o that_o overcome_v will_v i_o give_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n two_o rev._n 7._o be_v there_o ever_o any_o jewel_n so_o precious_a as_o the_o inestimable_a gift_n wherewithal_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v enrich_v the_o church_n what_o music_n be_v there_o fit_a to_o bear_v a_o part_n with_o those_o hymn_n and_o psalm_n and_o spiritual_a song_n that_o it_o inspire_v the_o heart_n of_o christian_n withal_o do_v it_o not_o even_o ravish_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o pious_a man_n to_o think_v of_o they_o though_o he_o do_v not_o hear_v the_o like_a in_o these_o day_n what_o be_v there_o in_o all_o the_o break_a cistern_n of_o this_o world_n that_o taste_v like_o the_o river_n of_o live_a water_n that_o jesus_n have_v pour_v out_o unto_o we_o what_o peace_n do_v it_o speak_v to_o we_o like_o that_o which_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n be_v purchase_v for_o we_o or_o what_o power_n be_v there_o in_o any_o of_o this_o world_n temptation_n that_o can_v stand_v before_o the_o voice_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o say_v come_v and_o whosoever_o will_v let_v he_o take_v the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o xxii_o rev._n 17._o certain_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o such_o a_o faith_n so_o fortify_v so_o encourage_v by_o all_o these_o witness_n we_o may_v easy_o tread_v the_o world_n under_o our_o foot_n and_o make_v its_o most_o mighty_a temptation_n crouch_v to_o we_o whereas_o now_o for_o want_v of_o this_o solid_a faith_n we_o
shameful_o bow_v down_o to_o it_o and_o worship_n it_o let_v but_o any_o man_n remember_v when_o he_o read_v these_o word_n love_n not_o the_o world_n for_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n be_v not_o of_o the_o father_n but_o be_v of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n pass_v away_o and_o the_o lust_n thereof_o but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n abide_v for_o ever_o or_o when_o he_o read_v any_o other_o lesson_n in_o the_o holy_a book_n let_v he_o but_o remember_v that_o thus_o say_v the_o father_n of_o all_o and_o thus_o say_v his_o word_n and_o this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o witness_n who_o testify_v that_o jesus_n who_o teach_v these_o thing_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o then_o he_o will_v never_o be_v persuade_v to_o yield_v to_o the_o fair_a thing_n that_o ever_o eye_n behold_v or_o the_o sweet_a thing_n the_o mouth_n can_v taste_v or_o the_o great_a pleasure_n any_o other_o sense_n be_v capable_a to_o feel_v if_o it_o must_v be_v enjoy_v by_o the_o break_n of_o any_o of_o these_o commandment_n no_o he_o will_v yield_v himself_o unto_o god_n vi_fw-la rom._n 13._o and_o lay_v himself_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o word_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o dictate_v and_o sentence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n purity_n and_o be_v make_v conformable_a to_o his_o death_n and_o be_v lead_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o think_v it_o a_o honour_n to_o be_v conquer_v by_o such_o defendant_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o jesus_n o_o how_o hateful_a will_v every_o sin_n be_v to_o we_o though_o it_o dress_v up_o itself_o never_o so_o beautiful_o and_o court_v we_o with_o never_o such_o promise_n of_o pleasure_n or_o greatness_n do_v we_o but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n reflect_v upon_o these_o witness_n and_o remember_v what_o they_o have_v testify_v to_o we_o how_o shall_v we_o desire_v it_o how_o passionate_o shall_v we_o tear_v all_o its_o gaudy_a dress_n in_o piece_n how_o hearty_o shall_v we_o despise_v all_o its_o temptation_n which_o will_v have_v we_o slight_v all_o these_o great_a witness_n who_o tell_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o that_o he_o be_v come_v for_o this_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n 1_o john_n three_o 8._o every_o unlawful_a enjoyment_n will_v look_v like_o a_o manifest_a jeer_n to_o all_o these_o and_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v to_o they_o why_o do_v you_o trouble_v yourselves_o this_o be_v our_o darling_n our_o god_n and_o all_o your_o persuasion_n shall_v not_o prevail_v with_o we_o to_o let_v it_o go_v it_o will_v appear_v a_o contempt_n of_o god_n a_o laugh_v of_o his_o word_n to_o scorn_v who_o come_v upon_o so_o needless_a at_o least_o fruitless_a a_o errand_n a_o manifest_a challenge_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o by_o every_o sin_n be_v bold_o oppose_v and_o what_o heart_n can_v endure_v to_o think_v of_o be_v guilty_a of_o such_o madness_n which_o throw_v dirt_n into_o this_o pure_a water_n i_o mean_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n and_o tread_v his_o blood_n under_o foot_n and_o miscall_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v deceive_v the_o world_n when_o it_o tell_v they_o that_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n even_o our_o sanctification_n for_o god_n say_v s._n paul_n have_v not_o call_v we_o unto_o uncleanness_n but_o unto_o holiness_n he_o therefore_o that_o despise_v despise_v not_o man_n but_o god_n who_o have_v also_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o holy_a spirit_n 1_o thess_n four_o 3_o 7_o 8._o to_o conclude_v this_o you_o know_v what_o be_v common_o say_v and_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n of_o those_o who_o be_v bite_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o spider_n in_o italy_n which_o they_o call_v a_o tarantula_n that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o cure_v they_o of_o their_o pleasant_a frenzy_n but_o by_o such_o music_n as_o be_v appropriate_a to_o the_o motion_n which_o their_o poison_n make_v in_o the_o brain_n of_o he_o into_o who_o it_o be_v infuse_v let_v this_o be_v a_o emblem_n of_o the_o truth_n i_o have_v now_o deliver_v that_o the_o old_a serpent_n have_v envenom_v man_n soul_n poison_v their_o principle_n pervert_v their_o affection_n and_o deprave_v their_o life_n there_o be_v nothing_o of_o efficacy_n sufficient_a to_o recover_v they_o but_o only_o such_o charm_n as_o these_o which_o by_o this_o six_o string_a instrument_n as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o god_n have_v provide_v for_o our_o cure_n and_o this_o will_v certain_o do_v it_o by_o infuse_v the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n into_o we_o which_o be_v the_o victory_n whereby_o we_o overcome_v the_o world_n do_v but_o hearken_v diligent_o to_o these_o witness_n do_v but_o mind_v their_o sweet_a consent_n their_o harmony_n and_o agreement_n in_o the_o testimony_n they_o give_v to_o this_o great_a truth_n that_o jesus_n our_o master_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v no_o venom_n so_o deadly_a which_o this_o faith_n will_v not_o expel_v no_o love_n to_o the_o world_n so_o strong_a which_o it_o will_v not_o vanquish_v and_o subdue_v it_o will_v recover_v we_o to_o ourselves_o and_o make_v nothing_o seem_v so_o ridiculous_a as_o the_o folly_n and_o frantickness_n of_o worldly_a man_n yet_o it_o will_v advance_v we_o to_o a_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a spirit_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v apt_a to_o receive_v such_o pestilent_a infusion_n any_o more_o but_o keep_v ourselves_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n look_v for_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n unto_o eternal_a life_n vi_o for_o i_o must_v add_v now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n that_o this_o faith_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v unable_a to_o conquer_v all_o temptation_n which_o will_v hinder_v we_o from_o obey_v our_o saviour_n command_n that_o it_o give_v we_o power_n and_o strength_n to_o do_v our_o duty_n with_o cheerfulness_n so_o s._n john_n here_o tell_v we_o when_o he_o add_v to_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o keep_n of_o his_o commandment_n that_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a for_o as_o oecumenius_n well_o gloss_n what_o load_n be_v it_o for_o a_o man_n to_o love_v his_o brother_n what_o great_a burden_n be_v it_o to_o visit_v he_o if_o he_o be_v in_o prison_n god_n do_v not_o command_v thou_o to_o deliver_v he_o but_o only_o to_o visit_v he_o he_o do_v not_o bid_v thou_o knock_v off_o his_o chain_n but_o see_v how_o he_o bear_v they_o nor_o do_v he_o bid_v thou_o cure_v a_o sick_a man_n but_o only_o comfort_v and_o relieve_v he_o nor_o provide_v dainty_n for_o a_o poor_a man_n but_o only_o feed_v he_o nor_o give_v rich_a apparel_n to_o the_o naked_a but_o only_o clothe_v they_o and_o so_o we_o may_v conclude_v of_o the_o rest_n that_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o ease_n than_o a_o burden_n to_o be_v sober_a and_o chaste_a in_o all_o enjoyment_n of_o pleasure_n to_o be_v content_a with_o a_o small_a portion_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o other_o desire_v with_o a_o greedy_a and_o ravenous_a eye_n to_o bear_v with_o that_o patient_o which_o we_o can_v remedy_v to_o be_v careful_a for_o nothing_o but_o in_o every_o thing_n to_o make_v know_v our_o request_n to_o god_n with_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o be_v meek_a and_o peaceable_a among_o contentious_a people_n to_o forgive_v those_o that_o injure_v we_o to_o envy_v no_o man_n greatness_n and_o with_o a_o humble_a modesty_n to_o satisfy_v ourselves_o though_o we_o be_v not_o equal_a to_o they_o these_o and_o such_o like_a quality_n wherewith_o jesus_n will_v invest_v we_o be_v in_o themselves_o most_o desirable_a and_o though_o rich_a than_o cloth_n of_o gold_n be_v like_o our_o ordinary_a garment_n which_o be_v no_o load_n to_o those_o that_o wear_v they_o but_o they_o be_v the_o less_o grievous_a to_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o jesus_n who_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o above_o by_o receive_v the_o testimony_n of_o so_o many_o divine_a witness_n who_o assure_v they_o they_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n in_o the_o company_n of_o his_o son_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o direct_a road_n to_o that_o glorious_a place_n where_o jesus_n be_v and_o therefore_o why_o shall_v not_o they_o rejoice_v and_o be_v exceed_o glad_a to_o find_v themselves_o thus_o happy_a that_o load_n which_o to_o a_o sick_a man_n seem_v intolerable_a if_o it_o be_v lay_v on_o the_o neck_n of_o one_o in_o health_n be_v so_o easy_a that_o he_o can_v run_v away_o with_o it_o with_o pleasure_n and_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o keep_v god_n
as_o to_o show_v we_o by_o what_o mean_v we_o may_v become_v so_o exceed_o bless_v the_o serious_a reader_n i_o doubt_v not_o will_v be_v sensible_a of_o all_o this_o when_o he_o have_v peruse_v the_o follow_a work_n in_o which_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v those_o also_o who_o wish_v i_o have_v say_v something_o of_o that_o part_n of_o this_o record_n which_o i_o undertake_v to_o explain_v these_o three_o be_v one_o which_o word_n i_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v whatsoever_o the_o socinian_o have_v pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a be_v always_o a_o part_n of_o this_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o be_v allege_v by_o saint_n cyprian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o show_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o break_v that_o unity_n by_o the_o clash_n of_o our_o will_n which_o not_o only_a coheres_fw-la by_o celestial_a sacrament_n but_o proceed_v as_o he_o speak_v from_o the_o divine_a firmness_n for_o our_o lord_n say_v i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o and_o again_o it_o be_v write_v of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n et_fw-fr hi_o tres_fw-la unum_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o by_o which_o that_o the_o apostie_a will_v have_v we_o to_o understand_v not_o mere_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o testimony_n though_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v but_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o nature_n or_o essence_n we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o think_v because_o there_o can_v no_o account_n be_v give_v why_o he_o shall_v not_o use_v the_o same_o form_n of_o speech_n here_o which_o follow_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o other_o three_o witness_n if_o these_o three_o in_o heaven_n be_v not_o otherwise_o three_o then_o those_o three_o in_o earth_n which_o be_v admit_v and_o if_o we_o take_v in_o the_o constant_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n to_o interpret_v the_o word_n we_o can_v make_v any_o far_a doubt_n of_o it_o that_o these_o three_o be_v one_o in_o their_o essence_n than_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v three_o person_n who_o essence_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o for_o else_o there_o will_v not_o be_v three_o witness_n in_o heaven_n but_o only_o one_o which_o will_v cross_v the_o design_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o scope_n be_v to_o show_v that_o our_o faith_n do_v not_o rely_v upon_o a_o single_a testimony_n and_o indeed_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o other_o place_n ascribe_v such_o action_n and_o work_n to_o each_o of_o they_o as_o be_v proper_a to_o person_n which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o the_o church_n to_o express_v the_o distinction_n that_o be_v between_o they_o by_o this_o name_n non_fw-la quia_fw-la scriptura_fw-la dicit_fw-la as_o st._n augustine_n 4._o augustine_n lib._n seven_o de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la cap._n 4._o speak_v concern_v this_o very_a business_n sed_fw-la quia_fw-la scriptura_fw-la non_fw-la contradicit_fw-la not_o because_o the_o scripture_n say_v they_o be_v person_n but_o because_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o say_v the_o contrary_a but_o rather_o i_o may_v add_v direct_v we_o to_o say_v they_o be_v for_o the_o reason_n before_o mention_v when_o humane_a scantness_n as_o that_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n go_v on_o endeavour_v to_o express_v in_o word_n that_o which_o it_o conceive_v in_o the_o secret_a of_o the_o mind_n concern_v our_o lord_n god_n the_o creator_n it_o be_v afraid_a to_o say_v there_o be_v three_o essence_n lest_o any_o diversity_n shall_v be_v think_v to_o be_v in_o that_o high_a equality_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o say_v there_o be_v not_o tria_fw-la quaedam_fw-la real_o three_o be_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n of_o sabellius_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o father_n or_o the_o son_n it_o seek_v therefore_o what_o three_o it_o shall_v call_v they_o and_o it_o say_v three_o person_n as_o the_o latin_a church_n speak_v by_o which_o name_n it_o will_v not_o have_v any_o diversity_n understand_v but_o only_a singularity_n that_o not_o only_a unity_n shall_v be_v there_o conceive_v because_o we_o say_v there_o be_v one_o essence_n but_o a_o trinity_n also_o because_o we_o say_v there_o be_v three_o person_n this_o faith_n we_o ought_v to_o defend_v and_o in_o this_o simple_a belief_n we_o ought_v i_o have_v show_v to_o acquiesce_v we_o ought_v to_o defend_v it_o because_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n according_a as_o they_o have_v be_v always_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a as_o st._n gregory_n nyssen_n 126._o nyssen_n lib._n iii._o contra_fw-la eunomium_fw-la p._n 126._o excellent_o discourse_n against_o those_o that_o demand_v more_o proof_n of_o these_o thing_n to_o the_o demonstration_n of_o this_o doctrine_n that_o we_o have_v a_o tradition_n descend_v to_o we_o like_o a_o inheritance_n by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o transmit_v through_o the_o hand_n of_o holy_a man_n that_o follow_v they_o they_o that_o will_v innovate_v need_v the_o help_n of_o mighty_a argument_n if_o they_o will_v go_v about_o to_o shake_v the_o faith_n not_o of_o man_n build_v on_o the_o sand_n and_o waver_v like_o euripus_n but_o grave_n settle_v and_o constant_a in_o their_o opinion_n and_o while_o we_o see_v nothing_o but_o mere_a discourse_n against_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v there_o so_o silly_a and_o brutish_a as_o to_o think_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n and_o of_o those_o light_n that_o succeed_v they_o in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v weak_a than_o their_o babble_n without_o demonstration_n but_o we_o shall_v not_o whole_o avoid_v the_o imputation_n of_o folly_n unless_o we_o also_o rest_v satisfy_v in_o this_o plain_a belief_n not_o busy_v ourselves_o in_o more_o curious_a inquiry_n for_o the_o great_a light_n in_o the_o church_n i_o have_v show_v will_v lead_v we_o no_o far_o but_o tell_v we_o we_o shall_v groap_v in_o darkness_n if_o we_o will_v needs_o pry_v too_o much_o into_o this_o mystery_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o discourse_v of_o as_o become_v divine_n not_o philosopher_n lest_o as_o henricus_fw-la à_fw-la gandava_n censure_v albertus_n magnus_n in_o his_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n whilst_o we_o follow_v too_o much_o the_o subtlety_n of_o secular_a philosophy_n we_o cloud_n the_o splendour_n of_o theological_a purity_n we_o must_v remember_v that_o we_o be_v man_n and_o that_o our_o understanding_n be_v but_o shallow_a which_o ought_v not_o therefore_o to_o venture_v bold_o into_o such_o depth_n as_o that_o of_o the_o divine_a essence_n there_o be_v nothing_o so_o much_o become_v we_o when_o we_o think_v of_o god_n as_o a_o holy_a fear_n and_o reverence_n produce_v in_o we_o low_a thought_n of_o ourselves_o without_o which_o we_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v illuminate_v from_o above_o nor_o can_v we_o shall_v we_o know_v never_o so_o much_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n quid_fw-la enim_fw-la prodest_fw-la alta_fw-la de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la disputare_fw-la si_fw-la careas_fw-la humilitate_fw-la unde_fw-la displiceas_fw-la trinitati_fw-la as_o thomas_n à_fw-fr kempis_n honest_o speak_v for_o what_o will_v it_o profit_v thou_o to_o dispute_v lofty_o of_o the_o trinity_n if_o through_o want_n of_o humility_n thou_o displease_v the_o trinity_n the_o way_n to_o eternal_a life_n it_o be_v certain_a lie_v in_o that_o road_n which_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o miss_v if_o we_o give_v ourselves_o too_o great_a a_o liberty_n of_o dispute_v about_o thing_n so_o much_o above_o our_o reach_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v aware_a of_o this_o artifice_n of_o the_o grand_a deceiver_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o draw_v we_o secret_o from_o attend_v to_o our_o know_a duty_n while_o we_o be_v amuse_v ourselves_o with_o sublime_a speculation_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n have_v careful_o observe_v and_o caution_v we_o against_o by_o their_o severe_a reproof_n what_o mean_v say_v saint_n gregory_n nazianzen_n 533._o nazianzen_n orat._n xxxiii_o p._n 533._o this_o ambitious_a humour_n of_o dispute_v and_o itch_n of_o the_o tongue_n what_o new_a disease_n and_o unsatiable_a appetite_n be_v this_o while_o our_o hand_n be_v bind_v why_o do_v we_o arm_v our_o tongue_n hospitality_n brotherly_a love_n conjugal_a affection_n virginity_n be_v no_o long_o praise_v feed_v the_o poor_a psalmody_n nocturnal_a station_n tear_n be_v not_o now_o in_o request_n we_o do_v not_o bring_v under_o the_o body_n by_o fast_n nor_o leave_v it_o a_o while_n to_o go_v to_o god_n by_o prayer_n we_o do_v not_o bring_v the_o worse_a in_o subjection_n to_o the_o better_a the_o dust_n i_o mean_v to_o the_o spirit_n we_o do_v not_o make_v our_o life_n a_o meditation_n of_o death_n
of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o that_o be_v good_a and_o amiable_a in_o this_o world_n who_o here_o entertain_v we_o with_o so_o many_o pleasure_n that_o by_o they_o we_o may_v guess_v what_o he_o be_v able_a and_o willing_a to_o do_v for_o they_o who_o have_v no_o great_a care_n than_o above_o all_o thing_n to_o please_v he_o they_o shall_v be_v fix_v in_o a_o steadfast_a sight_n that_o be_v enjoyment_n of_o he_o to_o their_o infinite_a satisfaction_n iv_o and_o if_o we_o mark_v the_o word_n of_o s._n john_n who_o speak_v this_o more_o full_o and_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o place_n before_o name_v we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v which_o he_o make_v the_o reason_n and_o cause_n of_o our_o be_v like_o he_o they_o will_v embolden_v we_o still_o to_o seek_v into_o a_o far_a meaning_n of_o this_o phrase_n and_o since_o we_o can_v enjoy_v nothing_o without_o a_o knowledge_n of_o it_o precede_v we_o be_v to_o understand_v that_o to_o see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v will_v be_v to_o have_v our_o mind_n fill_v with_o a_o knowledge_n of_o he_o so_o clear_a so_o distinct_a and_o strong_a that_o it_o will_v even_o turn_v we_o into_o his_o own_o nature_n life_n and_o bliss_n we_o shall_v not_o behold_v that_o be_v know_v he_o as_o we_o do_v now_o by_o similitude_n resemblance_n and_o expression_n borrow_v from_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v all_o our_o nature_n be_v here_o able_a to_o bear_v but_o by_o a_o clear_a notion_n of_o he_o form_v in_o our_o mind_n wherein_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v infinite_o please_v and_o feel_v his_o happiness_n come_v flow_v into_o they_o my_o meaning_n may_v be_v thus_o explain_v as_o it_o be_v a_o imperfect_a sight_n of_o a_o man_n which_o we_o have_v in_o a_o picture_n though_o draw_v by_o the_o most_o curious_a hand_n and_o strong_a fancy_n and_o the_o man_n himself_o if_o he_o stand_v before_o a_o looking-glass_n will_v in_o a_o moment_n draw_v a_o image_n more_o like_o he_o than_o the_o skilful_a artist_n can_v delineate_v all_o his_o life_n long_o especial_o if_o he_o never_o see_v the_o person_n but_o only_o have_v a_o description_n of_o he_o in_o a_o book_n or_o by_o report_n just_o such_o be_v the_o sight_n or_o knowledge_n that_o we_o have_v of_o god_n in_o this_o world_n either_o by_o his_o word_n or_o by_o his_o work_n or_o by_o the_o idea_n of_o our_o own_o mind_n a_o very_a imperfect_a thing_n and_o much_o like_o the_o picture_n of_o a_o person_n which_o we_o never_o yet_o have_v before_o our_o eye_n but_o hereafter_o when_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o appear_v to_o give_v we_o a_o more_o immediate_a sight_n of_o he_o without_o these_o help_n and_o present_v himself_o to_o our_o mind_n as_o the_o face_n to_o a_o glass_n this_o will_v be_v to_o know_v he_o indeed_o and_o to_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v now_o as_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o friend_n when_o he_o present_v himself_o to_o the_o eye_n do_v marvellous_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v we_o and_o there_o be_v a_o sense_n of_o pleasure_n impart_v to_o we_o in_o the_o very_o behold_v a_o rare_a beauty_n which_o we_o be_v not_o like_a perhaps_o to_o see_v any_o more_o so_o this_o see_v god_n be_v no_o barren_a thing_n but_o instant_o infuse_v the_o high_a satisfaction_n and_o delight_n into_o pure_a heart_n who_o by_o know_v his_o bless_a nature_n will_v find_v it_o imprint_v itself_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o they_o and_o make_v every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o be_v the_o bless_a image_n of_o it_o look_v what_o god_n be_v that_o they_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v he_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o as_o the_o image_n of_o a_o thing_n do_v in_o the_o glass_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v possess_v of_o he_o of_o his_o life_n of_o his_o joy_n by_o have_v a_o sensible_a perception_n of_o the_o wisdom_n the_o goodness_n the_o purity_n and_o all_o the_o other_o perfection_n that_o shine_v in_o himself_o v._o or_o if_o this_o be_v too_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v let_v we_o content_v ourselves_o to_o know_v that_o to_o see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v be_v to_o enjoy_v he_o as_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v according_a to_o that_o manner_n and_o measure_n wherein_o he_o show_v and_o manifest_v himself_o in_o those_o celestial_a place_n pious_a soul_n shall_v real_o perceive_v all_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o bounty_n wisdom_n and_o power_n which_o be_v know_v and_o communicate_v in_o that_o other_o world_n which_o as_o it_o be_v high_a than_o this_o so_o have_v more_o of_o god_n to_o be_v see_v in_o it_o then_o can_v be_v discover_v here_o all_o that_o the_o holy_a angel_n see_v and_o enjoy_v of_o he_o all_o that_o good_a which_o he_o let_v forth_o out_o of_o himself_o in_o that_o glorious_a place_n wherein_o above_o all_o other_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v shall_v be_v the_o portion_n of_o those_o happy_a soul_n who_o may_v be_v say_v therefore_o to_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v they_o shall_v not_o enjoy_v he_o in_o so_o low_a a_o manner_n as_o the_o high_a and_o the_o most_o high_o belove_v person_n have_v enjoy_v he_o in_o this_o world_n where_o there_o be_v but_o little_a of_o he_o but_o in_o the_o noble_a manner_n that_o he_o can_v be_v enjoy_v so_o as_o the_o heavenly_a minister_n yea_o our_o everblessed_n lord_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o he_o for_o when_o our_o lord_n pray_v that_o his_o disciple_n may_v behold_v or_o see_v his_o glory_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o xvii_o joh._n 24._o his_o meaning_n be_v according_a to_o what_o i_o have_v say_v of_o the_o word_n see_v that_o they_o may_v have_v their_o share_n at_o last_o with_o he_o in_o his_o happiness_n and_o be_v admit_v to_o take_v a_o part_n with_o he_o in_o that_o supreme_a dignity_n to_o which_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v advance_v and_o thus_o when_o st._n john_n invite_v other_o into_o the_o christian_a society_n tell_v they_o that_o their_o fellowship_n be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_fw-la christ_n 1_o joh._n i_o 3._o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o they_o can_v nowhere_o be_v so_o happy_a because_o it_o be_v the_o singular_a privilege_n of_o christian_a people_n to_o be_v admit_v unto_o a_o partnership_n with_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n in_o their_o most_o happy_a life_n and_o to_o have_v hope_n and_o expectation_n to_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o their_o eternal_a bliss_n vi_o which_o may_v very_o well_o give_v i_o occasion_n to_o add_v that_o since_o grace_n mercy_n and_o peace_n come_v to_o we_o now_o from_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v hope_v in_o this_o vision_n of_o god_n to_o have_v as_o well_o a_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o that_o everblessed_n trinity_n as_o a_o full_a communication_n from_o their_o ineffable_a love_n we_o shall_v understand_v that_o holy_a mystery_n which_o now_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o weakness_n forbid_v we_o to_o pry_v into_o and_o be_v able_a perhaps_o to_o unfold_v how_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o god_n without_o any_o diversity_n or_o separation_n of_o nature_n mamante_fw-la epist_n cxii_o ad_fw-la paulinam_fw-la cap._n 19_o homil._n de_fw-fr martyre_n mamante_fw-la as_o st._n austin_n express_v this_o mystery_n which_o i_o dare_v not_o in_o my_o former_a treatise_n adventure_n to_o explain_v for_o st._n basil_n have_v teach_v i_o to_o mark_v this_o in_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n x._o joh._n 27._o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n that_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o hear_v not_o question_n or_o dispute_v they_o believe_v he_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o do_v not_o ask_v how_o nor_o say_v if_o he_o be_v always_o than_o he_o be_v not_o beget_v or_o if_o he_o be_v beget_v than_o he_o be_v not_o always_o these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n who_o receive_v his_o voice_n and_o inquire_v no_o far_o and_o i_o have_v learn_v also_o from_o a_o great_a divine_a of_o our_o own_o nation_n church_n d●_n jackson_n pres_n to_o cathol_n church_n to_o who_o grave_a judgement_n i_o think_v there_o be_v a_o great_a veneration_n due_a then_o to_o the_o little_a forward_a censurer_n of_o this_o age_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v a_o argument_n more_o fit_a for_o meditation_n in_o prayer_n and_o soliloquy_n then_o for_o controversy_n or_o scholastic_a discourse_n we_o believe_v one_o divine_a nature_n in_o three_o person_n and_o that_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n require_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o transgression_n of_o man_n against_o his_o holy_a law_n and_o that_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n undertake_v to_o make_v
satisfaction_n for_o we_o in_o take_v our_o nature_n on_o he_o whereby_o he_o have_v by_o right_a of_o consanguinity_n the_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o redeem_v we_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v approve_v and_o seal_v as_o he_o speak_v this_o happy_a and_o everblessed_n compromise_n but_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o person_n and_o what_o manner_n of_o distinction_n be_v between_o the_o person_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v point_n twenty-five_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n chap._n twenty-five_o say_v he_o which_o i_o never_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o dispute_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o school_n but_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o admire_v what_o i_o know_v not_o to_o express_v for_o what_o be_v it_o that_o we_o can_v say_v of_o god_n who_o can_v conceive_v so_o little_a of_o he_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a say_n of_o plato_n that_o to_o conceive_v god_n be_v difficult_a to_o express_v he_o be_v impossible_a but_o he_o shall_v rather_o have_v say_v 34._o greg._n naz._n orat._n 34._o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o great_a man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v impossible_a to_o express_v he_o and_o more_o impossible_a to_o conceive_v he_o for_o that_o which_o we_o can_v conceive_v in_o our_o mind_n we_o may_v declare_v in_o word_n if_o not_o indifferent_o well_o yet_o at_o least_o obscure_o provide_v they_o that_o hear_v we_o be_v not_o dull_a of_o understanding_n but_o to_o comprehend_v in_o our_o mind_n so_o great_a a_o thing_n as_o god_n be_v utter_o impossible_a not_o only_o to_o the_o dull_a and_o stupid_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o to_o the_o most_o sublime_a soul_n and_o those_o who_o be_v lover_n of_o god_n alas_o all_o that_o come_v to_o we_o from_o he_o now_o 548._o ib_a p._n 548._o be_v but_o only_o a_o short_a glance_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o little_a beam_n of_o a_o great_a light_n we_o may_v call_v it_o a_o full_a knowledge_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n as_o origen_n 594._o origen_n in_o vi_fw-la bom._n p._n 633._o and_o see_v greg._n nazian_n orat._n 36._o p._n 594._o do_v when_o we_o can_v say_v the_o father_n be_v light_a and_o in_o his_o light_n which_o be_v the_o son_n we_o see_v light_n the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o how_o far_o short_a be_v this_o of_o what_o we_o long_o to_o know_v of_o these_o three_o in_o one_o how_o much_o be_v we_o in_o the_o dark_a still_o and_o what_o a_o satisfaction_n will_v it_o therefore_o be_v to_o see_v they_o clear_o shine_v on_o we_o and_o discover_v their_o bless_a nature_n to_o we_o which_o hitherto_o no_o man_n have_v be_v able_a to_o find_v out_o and_o whether_o ever_o any_o shall_v find_v let_v those_o inquire_v who_o have_v a_o mind_n in_o my_o opinion_n ibid._n greg._n naz._n ibid._n say_v the_o forename_a father_n than_o we_o shall_v find_v when_o this_o divine_a this_o godlike_a thing_n our_o mind_n and_o reason_n shall_v be_v intimate_o join_v with_o its_o heavenly_a kindred_n and_o the_o image_n shall_v return_v to_o its_o archetype_n or_o original_a pattern_n of_o who_o acquaintance_n it_o be_v now_o so_o desirous_a and_o this_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v that_o which_o be_v so_o much_o discourse_v of_o to_o know_v as_o we_o be_v know_v now_o we_o know_v only_o in_o part_n say_v st._n paul_n to_o who_o word_n he_o have_v respect_n 1_o cor._n xiii_o 11_o 12._o we_o behold_v rather_o the_o image_n of_o thing_n than_o the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o those_o also_o but_o dark_o and_o in_o a_o cloud_n but_o then_o we_o shall_v see_v face_n to_o face_n and_o behold_v god_n so_o clear_o that_o we_o shall_v know_v he_o as_o he_o know_v we_o he_o have_v a_o double_a knowledge_n say_v elias_n cretensis_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o nazianzen_n one_o whereby_o he_o simple_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o another_o whereby_o he_o know_v his_o own_o image_n when_o it_o be_v not_o quite_o spoil_v which_o be_v accompany_v with_o love_n and_o delight_n and_o in_o this_o latter_a sense_n gregory_n here_o understand_v it_o for_o look_v how_o much_o serenity_n and_o stillness_n void_a of_o all_o perturbation_n god_n behold_v in_o his_o own_o image_n so_o much_o of_o his_o knowledge_n will_v he_o bestow_v upon_o it_o give_v to_o every_o one_o a_o measure_n of_o illumination_n answerable_a to_o its_o purity_n and_o holiness_n then_o we_o may_v hope_v to_o discover_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v secret_n now_o and_o no_o more_o understand_v by_o we_o than_o a_o child_n understand_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n for_o if_o st._n paul_n himself_o as_o st._n chrysostome_n discourse_n upon_o those_o word_n he_o who_o know_v so_o much_o compare_v himself_o to_o a_o infant_n while_o h●_n be_v in_o this_o state_n what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o ourselves_o how_o childish_a be_v ou●_n thought_n and_o how_o like_a child_n do_v w●_n speak_v about_o divine_a matter_n especial_o of_o the_o transcendent_a nature_n of_o god_n th●_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o how_o resplendent_a then_o must_v the_o conception_n be_v of_o our_o grow_a estate_n since_o in_o this_o infancy_n of_o knowledge_n god_n have_v reveal_v so_o much_o of_o himself_o to_o we_o beyond_o the_o thought_n of_o former_a time_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o bright_a which_o we_o see_v now_o but_o in_o a_o glass_n and_o obscure_o too_o think_v what_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o face_n will_v be_v and_o the_o better_a to_o understand_v this_o difference_n and_o to_o dart_v a_o ray_n of_o light_n say_v he_o though_o but_o duskish_a into_o thy_o mind_n look_v upon_o those_o thing_n under_o the_o law_n now_o that_o grace_n shine_v before_o grace_n come_v they_o appear_v great_a and_o wonderful_a but_o hear_v now_o what_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o they_o after_o grace_n 2_o cor._n three_o 10._o that_o even_o those_o glorious_a thing_n have_v no_o glory_n in_o this_o respect_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o glory_n that_o excel_v such_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o knowledge_n we_o now_o have_v and_o that_o which_o we_o shall_v have_v hereafter_o even_o what_o we_o see_v of_o god_n here_o though_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v so_o exceed_v glorious_a have_v no_o light_n in_o it_o in_o this_o respect_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o light_n which_o transcend_v and_o therefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n pronounce_v his_o disciple_n bless_v because_o their_o eye_n see_v and_o their_o ear_n hear_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o old_a prophet_n and_o just_a man_n have_v long_v to_o see_v and_o hear_v but_o can_v not_o attain_v that_o happiness_n how_o much_o more_o bless_a shall_v we_o find_v ourselves_o when_o we_o come_v to_o see_v thing_n as_o much_o beyond_o what_o be_v now_o manifest_v as_o this_o revelation_n be_v beyond_o the_o ignorance_n of_o former_a age_n we_o shall_v both_o wonder_v at_o our_o childish_a presumption_n in_o offer_v to_o talk_v of_o thing_n so_o much_o above_o our_o reach_n and_o wonder_v at_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o everblessed_n trinity_n which_o have_v conduct_v we_o notwithstanding_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o undivided_a glory_n vii_o but_o it_o be_v time_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o of_o this_o promise_n of_o be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o see_v god_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o sense_n to_o be_v make_v of_o it_o which_o will_v admit_v the_o body_n as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n to_o a_o share_n with_o he_o in_o those_o supreme_a felicity_n for_o when_o a_o exceed_a great_a splendour_n beyond_o any_o create_a light_n appear_v to_o holy_a man_n in_o ancient_a time_n they_o call_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n who_o be_v hereby_o represent_v to_o be_v present_a with_o they_o and_o the_o behold_v this_o be_v call_v seeing_n god_n as_o when_o moses_n see_v the_o bush_n in_o a_o flame_n and_o from_o thence_o a_o light_n break_v forth_o at_o noonday_n as_o greg._n 172._o de_fw-fr vita_fw-la mosis_fw-la p._n 172._o nyssen_n speak_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bright_a than_o that_o of_o the_o sun_n we_o read_v that_o he_o think_v of_o approach_v to_o behold_v with_o his_o eye_n the_o wonder_n of_o that_o light_n but_o which_o be_v more_o wonderful_a as_o the_o same_o father_n go_v on_o he_o have_v his_o ear_n illuminate_v with_o its_o beam_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o voice_n of_o that_o light_n forbid_v he_o to_o come_v near_o the_o mountain_n whereupon_o he_o present_o apprehend_v that_o there_o be_v a_o divine_a presence_n in_o the_o bush_n and_o it_o be_v say_v he_o hide_v his_o face_n out_o of_o reverence_n and_o a_o holy_a dread_n and_o be_v afraid_a to_o look_v upon_o god_n iii._o exod._n 6._o thence_o this_o mountain_n be_v call_v the_o mount_n of_o
be_v more_o employ_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o certainty_n of_o this_o then_o to_o know_v what_o the_o good_a be_v we_o shall_v enjoy_v which_o will_v be_v best_a know_v by_o possess_v it_o and_o herein_o now_o we_o may_v admire_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o see_v how_o liberal_a he_o be_v of_o his_o bounty_n where_o we_o be_v capable_a to_o receive_v they_o though_o he_o have_v say_v little_a to_o make_v we_o particular_o understand_v the_o life_n of_o the_o next_o world_n yet_o he_o have_v say_v very_o much_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o happy_a life_n where_o we_o can_v understand_v and_o comprehend_v his_o mind_n there_o he_o full_o express_v himself_o and_o therefore_o where_o he_o be_v more_o silent_a it_o be_v no_o doubt_n because_o shall_v he_o speak_v of_o such_o matter_n we_o can_v understand_v he_o we_o be_v able_a to_o conceive_v any_o thing_n that_o he_o shall_v declare_v for_o the_o reason_n of_o our_o hope_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o it_o high_o concern_v we_o to_o be_v very_o well_o satisfy_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o such_o expectation_n in_o a_o future_a world_n and_o therefore_o herein_o our_o gracious_a god_n have_v not_o be_v spare_v to_o reveal_v himself_o but_o have_v grant_v we_o the_o strong_a evidence_n for_o our_o claim_n to_o such_o a_o inheritance_n which_o make_v i_o conclude_v that_o if_o we_o be_v as_o capable_a to_o receive_v instruction_n concern_v the_o inheritance_n itself_o and_o to_o have_v a_o terrier_n as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o or_o particular_a description_n of_o that_o heavenly_a country_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o life_n and_o all_o the_o fruit_n grow_v there_o deliver_v to_o we_o he_o that_o have_v be_v so_o large_a in_o the_o assurance_n he_o have_v give_v we_o will_v not_o have_v deny_v we_o also_o this_o satisfaction_n well_o therefore_o it_o be_v for_o we_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a reason_n why_o we_o want_v it_o and_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v be_v because_o we_o can_v till_o we_o be_v change_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o so_o great_a a_o knowledge_n and_o well_o be_v it_o for_o we_o that_o we_o have_v also_o so_o good_a a_o cause_n to_o think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a reason_n because_o god_n have_v manifest_v himself_o so_o full_o to_o we_o in_o other_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o our_o happiness_n by_o give_v we_o the_o most_o firm_a ground_n whereon_o to_o build_v our_o future_a hope_n this_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o this_o present_a treatise_n chief_o intend_v to_o show_v as_o god_n himself_o speak_v concern_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n xxi_o rev._n 5._o that_o these_o word_n be_v faithful_a and_o true_a there_o be_v no_o cozenage_n or_o deceit_n in_o these_o promise_n no_o fraud_n or_o collusion_n in_o the_o draw_v they_o up_o nor_o any_o alteration_n in_o god_n mind_n since_o they_o be_v make_v and_o he_o have_v set_v such_o seal_n to_o they_o but_o i_o may_v say_v as_o he_o there_o do_v to_o st._n john_n who_o it_o be_v possible_a may_v doubt_v of_o what_o the_o angel_n have_v show_v he_o behold_v or_o as_o andrea_n caesariensis_n read_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d behold_v behold_v i_o make_v all_o thing_n new_a see_v here_o and_o observe_v i_o myself_o who_o sit_v upon_o my_o throne_n assure_v thou_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o these_o vision_n if_o thou_o will_v take_v my_o word_n i_o here_o pass_v it_o to_o thou_o that_o i_o will_v fulfil_v all_o these_o promise_n such_o i_o say_v be_v the_o unquestionable_a credit_n of_o the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n god_n himself_o have_v speak_v they_o he_o have_v bid_v we_o believe_v they_o yea_o he_o have_v say_v we_o must_v account_v he_o a_o liar_n if_o we_o do_v not_o rely_v upon_o they_o for_o this_o say_v st._n john_n be_v the_o record_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n and_o this_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n before_o i_o come_v to_o a_o particular_a examination_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v and_o do_v to_o verify_v this_o let_v i_o note_v these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o have_v a_o record_n of_o this_o truth_n which_o be_v attest_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o several_a infallible_a witness_n who_o have_v depose_v what_o they_o see_v and_o hear_v about_o it_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o all_o those_o that_o will_v consider_v their_o testimony_n there_o be_v such_o a_o record_n that_o be_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o doubt_v of_o the_o eternal_a life_n he_o promise_v but_o upon_o the_o very_a same_o ground_n that_o we_o believe_v the_o one_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v the_o other_o if_o the_o father_n the_o word_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o the_o other_o witness_n have_v prove_v the_o former_a by_o undeniable_a testimony_n then_o at_o the_o sametime_o they_o prove_v this_o also_o that_o we_o shall_v live_v by_o he_o for_o 1._o it_o be_v evident_a that_o if_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n send_v by_o he_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n into_o the_o world_n to_o act_v in_o his_o stead_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o or_o that_o other_o by_o his_o commission_n and_o authority_n have_v declare_v he_o to_o be_v now_o if_o we_o look_v into_o his_o gospel_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o most_o earnest_o affirm_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v before_o abraham_n be_v viij_o joh._n 58._o and_o to_o have_v have_v a_o glory_n with_o god_n before_o the_o world_n be_v xvii_o 5._o and_o to_o be_v so_o one_o with_o the_o father_n that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o the_o father_n x._o 30_o 38._o and_o they_o who_o be_v his_o inspire_a witness_n who_o he_o say_v he_o will_v send_v as_o the_o father_n send_v he_o xx_o 21._o and_o who_o be_v fill_v by_o he_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v god_n word_n who_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n i._n joh._n 1_o 2._o the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o character_n of_o his_o person_n who_o in_o the_o beginning_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n i_o col._n 15._o i._n heb._n 3_o 10._o from_o all_o which_o we_o may_v certain_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o authority_n but_o by_o nature_n beget_v of_o he_o before_o all_o world_n of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v be_v confident_a 2._o that_o he_o be_v thus_o near_o relate_v to_o god_n must_v needs_o know_v his_o mind_n and_o be_v acquaint_v with_o his_o most_o secret_a purpose_n and_o resolution_n to_o which_o he_o be_v so_o privy_a that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v then_o in_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v come_v down_o to_o reveal_v they_o to_o man_n three_o joh._n 13._o so_o that_o we_o may_v safe_o look_v upon_o the_o promise_n he_o make_v we_o of_o eternal_a life_n as_o the_o declaration_n of_o god_n gracious_a will_n and_o pleasure_n which_o shall_v undoubted_o be_v fulfil_v no_o man_n indeed_o as_o st._n john_n speak_v i_o 18._o have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o onely-begotten_a son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o for_o who_o can_v dive_v into_o god_n mind_n and_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v in_o his_o thought_n what_o man_n can_v enter_v into_o his_o breast_n and_o see_v what_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o do_v for_o we_o none_o but_o his_o onely-begotten_a son_n who_o be_v in_o his_o bosom_n and_o privy_a to_o his_o most_o secret_a counsel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v declare_v or_o expound_v he_o i._n e._n his_o hide_a will_n and_o decree_n which_o else_o have_v not_o be_v reveal_v to_o we_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o maimonides_n in_o several_a part_n of_o his_o work_n etc._n work_n l._n de_fw-fr fund_z legis_fw-la cap._n i._n n._n 10._o more_o nev._n part_n i_o c._n 37._o 54._o etc._n etc._n that_o when_o moses_n pray_v god_n to_o show_v he_o his_o glory_n he_o mean_v his_o essence_n of_o which_o he_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o distinct_a conception_n as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o such_o as_o we_o have_v of_o a_o man_n when_o we_o have_v see_v his_o face_n and_o by_o the_o image_n of_o he_o remain_v in_o our_o mind_n can_v distinguish_v he_o from_o all_o other_o man_n but_o there_o be_v other_o of_o their_o learned_a man_n who_o by_o his_o glory_n understand_v the_o reward_n he_o will_v give_v the_o pious_a and_o the_o prosperity_n he_o sometime_o bestow_v on_o the_o
also_o to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n and_o make_v we_o rejoice_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o so_o much_o may_v suffice_v to_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o perfect_o agree_v with_o the_o other_o two_o of_o the_o father_z and_z of_o the_o son_n who_o be_v all_o one_o you_o see_v still_o in_o their_o testimony_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o nature_n so_o i_o express_v myself_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o my_o former_a discourse_n about_o these_o three_o witness_n 235._o witness_n chap._n four_o pag._n 235._o suppose_v these_o word_n though_o few_o will_v have_v sufficient_o testify_v my_o right_a belief_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o that_o none_o will_v have_v imagine_v i_o wave_v the_o far_a explication_n of_o that_o passage_n these_o three_o be_v one_o because_o i_o entertain_v a_o sense_n of_o it_o differ_v from_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n i_o be_v not_o conscious_a to_o myself_o of_o any_o such_o heresy_n and_o therefore_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v solicitous_a to_o prevent_v this_o accusation_n by_o divert_v from_o the_o subject_n i_o have_v in_o hand_n unto_o another_o argument_n but_o some_o i_o have_v hear_v have_v be_v so_o unkind_a to_o say_v no_o more_o let_v they_o examine_v their_o heart_n from_o what_o ground_n as_o to_o whisper_v such_o suspicion_n and_o therefore_o i_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o take_v occasion_n here_o to_o declare_v that_o i_o believe_v these_o three_o to_o be_v one_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o all_o catholic_n writer_n have_v do_v who_o have_v treat_v of_o the_o everblessed_n trinity_n and_o st._n augustine_n assure_v i_o 4._o i_o l._n 1._o de_fw-fr trin._n c._n 4._o that_o every_o one_o who_o meddle_v with_o this_o argument_n before_o he_o intend_v to_o teach_v this_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n enjoy_v the_o divine_a unity_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n in_o a_o inseparable_a equality_n haec_fw-la mea_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la catholica_fw-la fides_fw-la as_o he_o conclude_v that_o chapter_n this_o be_v my_o faith_n because_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n we_o have_v but_o one_o god_n because_o there_o be_v but_o one_o godhead_n and_o they_o that_o be_v of_o he_o have_v relation_n to_o one_o though_o we_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v three_o for_o this_o be_v not_o more_o god_n and_o that_o less_o nor_o be_v this_o before_o and_o that_o behind_o nor_o be_v they_o separate_v in_o will_n or_o divide_v in_o power_n nor_o be_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n to_o be_v find_v there_o which_o belong_v to_o divide_a being_n but_o to_o speak_v all_o in_o a_o few_o word_n there_o be_v one_o undivided_a godhead_n in_o several_a person_n as_o in_o three_o sun_n cohere_v together_o there_o be_v one_o commixture_n of_o light_n they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o st._n greg._n nazianzen_n 601._o orat._n xxxvii_o p._n 601._o who_o these_o whisperer_n sure_a if_o they_o have_v read_v he_o take_v for_o a_o catholic_n writer_n in_o his_o discourse_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o which_o i_o will_v add_v what_o st._n aug._n again_o write_v in_o his_o book_n of_o faith_n to_o petrus_n diaconus_fw-la chap._n i._n if_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o person_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o there_o be_v one_o substance_n there_o will_v be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v true_o call_v a_o trinity_n and_o again_o if_o as_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v distinct_a from_o each_o other_o in_o the_o propriety_n of_o person_n they_o be_v also_o sever_v by_o diversity_n of_o nature_n there_o will_v indeed_o be_v a_o true_a trinity_n but_o this_o trinity_n will_v not_o be_v one_o god_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o trinity_n in_o one_o true_a god_n it_o be_v true_a not_o only_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n but_o also_o that_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n therefore_o that_o true_a god_n be_v in_o person_n three_o but_o in_o one_o nature_n one._n thus_o our_o bless_a saviour_n xi_o cateche_n xi_o st._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n observe_v do_v not_o say_v i_o be_o the_o father_n but_z i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o again_o he_o do_v not_o say_v i_o and_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_o one_o but_z 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v one_o that_o we_o may_v neither_o exclude_v the_o son_n from_o the_o godhead_n nor_o confound_v he_o with_o the_o father_n one_o as_o to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o divinity_n because_o god_n beget_v god_n one_o as_o to_o their_o kingdom_n for_o the_o father_n do_v not_o rule_v over_o some_o and_o the_o son_n over_o other_o as_o absalon_n who_o oppose_v his_o father_n but_o over_o who_o the_o father_n reign_v over_o those_o reign_v the_o son_n one_o because_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n nor_o any_o distance_n between_o they_o for_o the_o father_n do_v not_o will_n one_o thing_n and_o the_o son_n another_z one_o because_o the_o son_n do_v not_o make_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o father_n another_o but_o there_o be_v one_o workmanship_n of_o all_o the_o father_n make_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o son_n i_o suppose_v this_o excellent_a man_n will_v pass_v for_o orthodox_n among_o our_o censurer_n though_o he_o mention_v many_o other_o regard_v wherein_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n i_o may_v add_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o beside_o that_o of_o their_o divinity_n and_o therefore_o i_o may_v just_o wonder_v why_o any_o shall_v find_v fault_n with_o i_o if_o they_o be_v so_o well_o skilled_a in_o christian_a writer_n as_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v be_v think_v for_o say_v these_o three_o be_v one_o in_o their_o testimony_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o nature_n i_o take_v it_o for_o a_o catholic_n exposition_n else_o i_o will_v have_v reject_v it_o and_o if_o this_o be_v its_o only_a fault_n that_o it_o be_v too_o short_a i_o hope_v they_o will_v rest_v satisfy_v now_o that_o i_o have_v make_v it_o long_o unless_o they_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n speak_v of_o who_o judge_v their_o brethren_n as_o if_o they_o have_v a_o faculty_n to_o see_v into_o their_o heart_n and_o resolve_v not_o to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o any_o word_n they_o can_v speak_v though_o in_o all_o appearance_n they_o have_v no_o other_o design_n in_o the_o world_n but_o only_o according_a to_o the_o best_a of_o their_o understanding_n sincere_o to_o serve_v god_n and_o his_o church_n as_o for_o those_o who_o will_v have_v a_o far_o search_v make_v into_o this_o mystery_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o themselves_o if_o they_o please_v thus_o to_o employ_v their_o time_n after_o they_o have_v consider_v what_o the_o most_o catholic_n writer_n have_v think_v of_o such_o inquiry_n we_o ought_v to_o acknowledge_v say_v st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n 445._o nazianzen_n orat._n xxvi_o p._n 445._o one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o himself_o and_o unbegotten_a and_o one_o son_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n and_o one_o spirit_n have_v its_o substance_n of_o god_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n the_o same_o dignity_n the_o same_o glory_n and_o the_o same_o honour_n in_o all_o thing_n the_o same_o but_o only_o that_o he_o be_v not_o unbegotten_a as_o the_o father_n nor_o beget_v as_o the_o son_n these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v know_v these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v confess_v within_o these_o thing_n we_o must_v fix_v leave_v that_o long_a babble_n and_o profane_a novelty_n of_o word_n to_o those_o who_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v and_o the_o forenamed_a st._n cyrill_n pass_v the_o same_o sentence_n on_o those_o who_o curious_o pry_v into_o this_o secret_a in_o his_o day_n he_o that_o beget_v say_v he_o only_o know_v he_o that_o be_v beget_v and_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o he_o know_v he_o that_o beget_v he_o believe_v then_o that_o god_n have_v a_o son_n but_o how_o do_v not_o inquire_v for_o if_o thou_o do_v thou_o shall_v not_o find_v tell_v i_o first_o who_o he_o be_v that_o beget_v and_o then_o i_o will_v tell_v thou_o who_o the_o beget_v be_v but_o if_o thou_o can_v not_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o he_o that_o beget_v do_v not_o curious_o ask_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o son_n be_v be_v beget_v ☜_o ☜_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o piety_n to_o know_v that_o god_n have_v only_o one_o son_n one_o natural_o beget_v who_o do_v not_o begin_v to_o be_v when_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o bethlehem_n but_o be_v before_o all_o world_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v in_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v no_o more_o he_o have_v not_o tell_v we_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n out_o of_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d why_o then_o do_v thou_o
amen_n chap._n ix_o concern_v the_o witness_n on_o earth_n and_o first_o of_o the_o water_n you_o have_v see_v already_o how_o many_o there_o be_v that_o solicit_v our_o affection_n and_o persuade_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o hearty_o consent_v to_o he_o in_o whatsoever_o he_o require_v so_o many_o that_o how_o we_o shall_v deny_v he_o after_o he_o himself_o have_v appear_v so_o often_o with_o the_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o the_o father_n also_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v commend_v he_o to_o we_o as_o the_o prince_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n it_o be_v hard_a to_o give_v any_o reason_n than_o it_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o he_o be_v eternal_a life_n for_o as_o if_o these_o witness_n be_v not_o sufficient_a or_o that_o we_o may_v be_v bear_v down_o by_o numerous_a testimony_n there_o be_v three_o more_o who_o be_v our_o neighbour_n as_o i_o may_v say_v with_o who_o we_o be_v well_o acquaint_v and_o who_o witness_n none_o can_v ever_o deny_v that_o speak_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n and_o affirm_v it_o as_o strong_o as_o the_o other_o that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o his_o son_n jesus_n let_v we_o call_v they_o in_o too_o and_o hear_v what_o they_o say_v in_o the_o same_o order_n wherein_o we_o examine_v they_o before_o in_o the_o former_a business_n first_o take_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o water_n then_o of_o the_o blood_n and_o then_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o water_n by_o water_n i_o have_v show_v we_o be_v to_o understand_v either_o that_o purity_n whereof_o it_o be_v the_o instrument_n which_o be_v most_o eminent_a both_o in_o christ_n doctrine_n and_o life_n or_o else_o baptism_n both_o john_n and_o his_o own_o by_o which_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o s●n_n of_o god_n let_v we_o have_v so_o much_o patience_n as_o to_o hear_v all_o these_o once_o more_o and_o consider_v what_o they_o say_v to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n i._o and_o as_o for_o the_o purity_n and_o holiness_n of_o his_o doctrine_n there_o be_v much_o in_o it_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o he_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o will_v bestow_v it_o upon_o his_o follower_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o 1._o it_o natural_o lift_v up_o the_o mind_n towards_o heaven_n and_o dispose_v those_o that_o entertain_v it_o to_o look_v for_o eternal_a life_n for_o which_o it_o be_v but_o a_o preparation_n for_o it_o teach_v we_o to_o abstract_n our_o heart_n from_o this_o flesh_n wherewith_o we_o be_v clothe_v and_o from_o this_o world_n wherein_o we_o live_v as_o not_o worthy_a of_o all_o those_o thought_n and_o that_o care_n which_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o bestow_v upon_o they_o the_o very_a intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o it_o we_o can_v but_o see_v be_v to_o wean_v our_o mind_n from_o earthly_a enjoyment_n and_o to_o take_v off_o our_o affection_n from_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sense_n to_o make_v riches_n and_o the_o praise_n of_o man_n seem_v little_a thing_n and_o to_o give_v we_o contentment_n with_o our_o portion_n of_o present_a good_n though_o never_o so_o small_a in_o short_a ●o_o render_v we_o something_o like_a to_o god_n himself_o whilst_o we_o be_v at_o this_o distance_n from_o he_o what_o can_v any_o man_n make_v of_o this_o but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o preparation_n for_o another_o life_n a_o institution_n which_o design_n to_o form_n man_n and_o make_v they_o fit_a for_o a_o high_a world_n do_v but_o take_v a_o review_n of_o that_o compendium_n which_o i_o have_v draw_v of_o this_o doctrine_n in_o my_o former_a book_n and_o you_o will_v be_v satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o contrivance_n to_o make_v we_o heavenly_a and_o intend_v to_o guide_v we_o to_o such_o a_o life_n as_o be_v a_o prevention_n of_o heaven_n a_o beginning_n of_o the_o celestial_a state_n whereby_o we_o shall_v live_v in_o part_n as_o man_n of_o another_o world_n and_o not_o of_o this_o which_o future_a world_n 2._o it_o be_v manifest_a his_o heavenly_a doctrine_n suppose_v or_o else_o it_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o that_o wisdom_n which_o be_v eminent_a in_o he_o that_o it_o will_v be_v the_o great_a absurdity_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v for_o it_o teach_v we_o if_o his_o service_n require_v it_o to_o deny_v ourselves_o even_o in_o the_o most_o innocent_a and_o lawful_a enjoyment_n of_o this_o life_n to_o forsake_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o house_n and_o land_n for_o his_o name_n be_v sake_n yea_o to_o lay_v down_o our_o very_a life_n rather_o than_o forsake_v his_o doctrine_n and_o violate_v his_o command_n these_o be_v express_a lesson_n which_o his_o sermon_n teach_v his_o disciple_n but_o be_v thing_n so_o sublime_a so_o much_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o it_o will_v be_v the_o vain_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o propose_v they_o to_o man_n observance_n without_o the_o hope_n of_o something_o in_o another_o life_n to_o reward_v such_o hard_a service_n he_o will_v have_v have_v no_o follower_n on_o these_o term_n have_v he_o not_o make_v it_o as_o plain_a and_o evident_a as_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o doctrine_n that_o he_o will_v be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o they_o that_o will_v obey_v he_o man_n be_v not_o so_o fond_a of_o trouble_n and_o torment_n and_o death_n as_o to_o expose_v themselves_o to_o the_o danger_n of_o they_o if_o they_o have_v not_o see_v the_o great_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o their_o master_n will_v recompense_v their_o present_a suffering_n with_o a_o future_a happiness_n so_o incomparable_o great_a that_o it_o will_v be_v the_o high_a folly_n to_o avoid_v they_o none_o can_v suppose_v the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o religion_n to_o be_v so_o weak_a as_o not_o to_o understand_v that_o man_n will_v never_o embrace_v this_o profession_n unless_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o call_v they_o to_o this_o high_a pitch_n of_o piety_n he_o call_v they_o also_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v to_o his_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n and_o therefore_o without_o all_o doubt_n our_o lord_n take_v care_n to_o preach_v this_o as_o the_o principal_a thing_n and_o to_o give_v good_a assurance_n of_o a_o bless_a state_n to_o come_v because_o without_o this_o it_o have_v be_v the_o most_o ungrounded_a and_o foolish_a undertake_n that_o ever_o man_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v the_o world_n to_o be_v so_o mortify_v to_o quit_v all_o present_a possession_n and_o to_o part_v with_o their_o life_n for_o his_o sake_n he_o must_v have_v be_v the_o most_o unreasonable_a of_o all_o other_o man_n in_o preach_v such_o doctrine_n and_o suppose_v the_o world_n void_a of_o all_o reason_n if_o he_o expect_v to_o have_v it_o believe_v have_v he_o not_o be_v certain_a himself_o and_o be_v able_a by_o evident_a proof_n to_o persuade_v other_o that_o all_o those_o who_o hearken_v to_o he_o shall_v be_v no_o loser_n but_o exceed_v great_a gainer_n by_o quit_v all_o thing_n upon_o his_o account_n if_o he_o have_v not_o hold_v this_o truth_n in_o his_o hand_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o they_o who_o will_v follow_v he_o shall_v be_v immortal_o happy_a he_o may_v have_v stretch_v they_o out_o long_o enough_o before_o he_o have_v draw_v so_o much_o as_o one_o follower_n after_o he_o the_o tree_n will_v as_o soon_o have_v follow_v he_o as_o man_n who_o will_v never_o have_v stir_v a_o foot_n in_o such_o a_o narrow_a path_n unless_o he_o have_v show_v they_o plain_o that_o it_o lead_v to_o everlasting_a life_n let_v we_o consider_v and_o illustrate_v this_o a_o little_a will_v not_o he_o expose_v himself_o to_o laughter_n and_o scorn_n that_o shall_v earnest_o persuade_v his_o neighbour_n to_o go_v and_o labour_v hard_a in_o his_o field_n all_o day_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v get_v just_a nothing_o for_o their_o pain_n at_o night_n will_v it_o not_o seem_v a_o piece_n of_o strange_a mockery_n and_o contempt_n of_o we_o and_o as_o strange_a a_o folly_n in_o he_o that_o shall_v invite_v we_o to_o enter_v into_o his_o service_n which_o he_o confess_v will_v make_v we_o sweat_v and_o engage_v we_o in_o many_o toilsome_a employment_n and_o when_o we_o inquire_v what_o wage_n he_o give_v shall_v be_v able_a to_o assure_v we_o never_o a_o farthing_n that_o lie_v in_o his_o power_n or_o will_v to_o bestow_v upon_o we_o will_v they_o not_o be_v equal_o ridiculous_a he_o that_o shall_v make_v and_o they_o that_o shall_v embrace_v such_o a_o proposal_n may_v not_o such_o a_o trifler_n expect_v rather_o to_o be_v kick_v then_o to_o be_v follow_v by_o the_o multitude_n shall_v we_o not_o hear_v they_o express_v their_o indignation_n in_o such_o speech_n as_o these_o what_o do_v you_o take_v
and_o to_o have_v endeavour_v to_o make_v any_o part_n of_o his_o holy_a book_n more_o clear_o understand_v especial_o if_o what_o i_o write_v shall_v increase_v the_o faith_n of_o any_o christian_a soul_n and_o fill_v it_o with_o a_o assure_a hope_n in_o jesus_n by_o abide_v constant_a in_o this_o belief_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o witness_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o search_v a_o little_a into_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o phrase_n before_o we_o take_v their_o examination_n about_o it_o and_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o though_o jesus_n be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o the_o father_n god_n of_o god_n beget_v of_o he_o before_o all_o world_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o always_o mean_v when_o he_o be_v call_v his_o son_n which_o be_v a_o name_n in_o the_o holy_a stile_n not_o so_o much_o express_v his_o nature_n as_o his_o high_a authority_n and_o sovereign_a power_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v as_o the_o mediator_n between_o he_o and_o we_o from_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n so_o i_o think_v we_o be_v here_o to_o understand_v the_o apostle_n who_o under_o the_o name_n jesus_n comprehend_v all_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o person_n both_o his_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n and_o affirm_v that_o this_o person_n have_v sovereign_a authority_n commit_v to_o he_o by_o god_n the_o father_n of_o all_o who_o have_v give_v he_o commission_n and_o depute_v he_o in_o his_o stead_n to_o declare_v his_o mind_n and_o acquaint_v we_o with_o his_o will_n and_o have_v by_o himself_o purge_v our_o sin_n promote_v he_o to_o sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a as_o that_o great_a king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o by_o who_o we_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v now_o and_o to_o be_v judge_v at_o the_o last_o day_n sure_o i_o be_o in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o meaning_n be_v expound_v in_o other_o place_n to_o be_v this_o that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o the_o anoint_a of_o god_n that_o be_v jesus_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n crucify_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o afterward_o appoint_v s._n john_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o preach_v those_o thing_n to_o all_o nation_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o holy_a gospel_n be_v indeed_o send_v of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a prophecy_n with_o his_o own_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o be_v now_o by_o the_o suffering_n of_o death_n crown_v with_o glory_n and_o honour_n to_o be_v our_o king_n and_o sovereign_a lord_n who_o we_o be_v all_o to_o obey_v and_o from_o who_o alone_o we_o be_v to_o expect_v all_o our_o reward_n and_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n to_o think_v that_o these_o be_v phrase_n of_o the_o very_a same_o import_n here_o in_o s._n john_n if_o we_o compare_v but_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n with_o the_o five_o in_o the_o former_a we_o read_v that_o whosoever_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n in_o the_o latter_a he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o who_o overcome_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o faith_n no_o doubt_n whereby_o we_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o whereby_o we_o overcome_v the_o world_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n express_v it_o how_o you_o please_v either_o of_o these_o way_n this_o alone_a be_v the_o faith_n which_o can_v regenerate_v a_o man_n and_o put_v a_o divine_a spirit_n into_o he_o that_o be_v make_v he_o a_o conqueror_n over_o the_o world_n as_o jesus_n be_v let_v the_o second_o chapter_n of_o this_o epistle_n ver_fw-la 22._o be_v consult_v also_o and_o there_o you_o will_v find_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o son_n be_v term_n equivalent_a and_o have_v the_o same_o signification_n to_o which_o if_o you_o add_v some_o place_n in_o the_o evangelist_n they_o will_v make_v you_o see_v this_o more_o evident_o when_o s._n peter_n make_v this_o confession_n xuj_o matth._n 16._o that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n there_o be_v no_o more_o mean_v one_o will_v think_v by_o those_o word_n the_o son_n of_o god_n than_o what_o the_o other_o word_n christ_n include_v because_o when_o our_o saviour_n will_v have_v they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o they_o as_o yet_o to_o divulge_v this_o truth_n which_o s._n peter_n confess_v he_o only_o charge_v his_o disciple_n ver_fw-la 20._o that_o they_o shall_v tell_v no_o man_n that_o he_o be_v jesus_n the_o christ_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o ground_n enough_o to_o conclude_v the_o identity_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o these_o word_n the_o other_o evangelist_n will_v put_v it_o out_o of_o doubt_n for_o s._n mark_n make_v the_o confession_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o have_v be_v no_o more_o than_o this_o thou_o be_v the_o christ_n viij_o 29._o and_o s._n luke_n relate_v it_o not_o much_o otherwise_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v our_o saviour_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n of_o god_n ix_o 20._o to_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o to_o be_v the_o son_n the_o christ_n of_o god_n or_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o understanding_n of_o these_o divine_a writer_n be_v the_o very_a same_o and_o in_o these_o place_n nothing_o different_a and_o indeed_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o s._n hieroms_n opinion_n be_v true_a who_o believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o yet_o such_o proficient_o as_o to_o understand_v the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n from_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o father_n for_o we_o find_v they_o very_o ignorant_a of_o divers_a thing_n that_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v learn_v than_o this_o which_o if_o they_o have_v know_v they_o will_v not_o have_v expect_v to_o see_v he_o settle_v his_o throne_n upon_o earth_n nor_o doubt_v of_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o many_o other_o thing_n as_o they_o do_v but_o the_o compare_v of_o two_o other_o place_n will_v make_v this_o still_o more_o manifest_a in_o the_o xxvi_o matth._n 63._o we_o read_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n adjure_v our_o saviour_n to_o tell_v he_o if_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o all_o expect_v one_o to_o appear_v under_o this_o character_n this_o be_v the_o common_a title_n of_o that_o great_a person_n who_o they_o believe_v will_v short_o come_v but_o they_o mean_v no_o more_o by_o it_o than_o one_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o be_v their_o king_n as_o be_v apparent_a from_o s._n luke_n who_o relate_v that_o question_n bare_o thus_o xxii_o 67._o be_v thou_o the_o christ_n tell_v we_o and_o after_o our_o saviour_n have_v make_v that_o answer_n which_o we_o read_v both_o in_o he_o and_o s._n matthew_n he_o tell_v we_o ver_fw-la 70._o they_o all_o reply_v again_o be_v thou_o then_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o to_o say_v must_v we_o take_v this_o for_o confess_v then_o that_o thou_o affirm_v thyself_o to_o be_v send_v anoint_a and_o set_v over_o we_o by_o god_n will_v thou_o stand_v to_o that_o which_o thou_o just_o now_o ow_v when_o we_o ask_v thou_o that_o question_n for_o without_o all_o doubt_n the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o scribe_n intend_v nothing_o by_o that_o phrase_n the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o what_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o other_o the_o christ_n and_o therefore_o when_o pilate_n upon_o their_o accusation_n examine_v he_o upon_o the_o same_o matter_n he_o ask_v nothing_o else_o but_o this_o as_o this_o apostle_n s._n john_n relate_v xviii_o 33._o be_v thou_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v the_o plain_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n christ_n for_o that_o be_v not_o the_o proper_a name_n of_o any_o person_n as_o lactantius_n 7._o lactantius_n nuncupatio_fw-la potestatis_fw-la &_o regni_fw-la sic_fw-la enim_fw-la judaei_n reges_fw-la suos_fw-la appellabant_fw-la l._n 4._o cap._n 7._o right_o observe_v but_o a_o name_n of_o power_n and_o dominion_n signify_v he_o to_o be_v their_o sovereign_n for_o in_o this_o stile_n say_v he_o the_o jew_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v of_o their_o king_n who_o they_o call_v christ_n or_o god_n anoint_v once_o more_o when_o they_o be_v enrage_v at_o our_o saviour_n for_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o s._n john_n tell_v we_o chap._n x._o he_o justify_v himself_o by_o a_o reason_n which_o signify_v no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o christ_n the_o anoint_a of_o god_n as_o you_o
may_v read_v ver_fw-la 34_o 35_o 36._o if_o they_o be_v call_v god_n in_o old_a time_n to_o who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v i._n e._n who_o receive_v commission_n and_o authority_n from_o god_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o ruler_n of_o his_o people_n than_o it_o can_v be_v no_o offence_n much_o less_o a_o blasphemy_n for_o he_o who_o god_n have_v sanctify_v i._n e._n set_v apart_o and_o anoint_a to_o this_o office_n of_o be_v their_o lord_n and_o king_n to_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o so_o he_o be_v by_o his_o place_n and_o there_o be_v no_o need_n he_o shall_v say_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n that_o be_v in_o he_o well_o then_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v the_o christ_n be_v but_o different_a expression_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o the_o word_n christ_n signify_v anoint_v one_o set_v apart_o to_o a_o high_a office_n and_o in_o its_o eminent_a sense_n that_o person_n who_o be_v to_o sustain_v the_o place_n of_o god_n in_o this_o world_n to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n yea_o the_o governor_n and_o ruler_n of_o all_o mankind_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v here_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o god_n the_o person_n who_o he_o sanctify_v by_o the_o unction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o send_v into_o the_o world_n to_o who_o he_o have_v now_o give_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n that_o every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v to_o he_o as_o the_o sovereign_a lord_n of_o the_o world_n who_o we_o be_v to_o hear_v and_o obey_v and_o depend_v upon_o in_o all_o thing_n for_o this_o be_v the_o stile_n you_o may_v observe_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n from_o whence_o you_o may_v learn_v the_o rise_n and_o original_n of_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n which_o call_v those_o king_n who_o derive_v their_o authority_n immediate_o from_o god_n by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n because_o when_o they_o be_v anoint_v by_o his_o order_n they_o be_v make_v what_o they_o be_v not_o before_o and_o beget_v as_o they_o speak_v again_o and_o be_v create_v by_o god_n to_o their_o new_a dignity_n they_o be_v therefore_o call_v his_o son_n the_o first_o time_n we_o meet_v with_o the_o phrase_n be_v in_o the_o story_n of_o the_o first_o king_n of_o israel_n 1_o sam._n xiii_o 1._o where_o saul_n be_v call_v as_o the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n the_o son_n of_o one_o year_n in_o his_o kingdom_n because_o there_o be_v but_o a_o year_n pass_v since_o the_o time_n of_o his_o unction_n by_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v god_n vicegerent_n and_o as_o you_o read_v x._o 6._o turn_v into_o another_o man_n and_o indeed_o we_o find_v this_o imitate_v in_o ethnic_a writer_n who_o call_v the_o day_n their_o emperor_n enter_v upon_o their_o reign_n their_o birthday_n so_o we_o read_v in_o spartianus_n that_o adrian_n be_v inform_v by_o letter_n that_o trajan_n have_v name_v he_o for_o his_o successor_n cause_v the_o birthday_n of_o his_o adoption_n to_o be_v celebrate_v and_o two_o day_n after_o hear_v of_o his_o death_n he_o order_v they_o shall_v keep_v the_o birthday_n of_o his_o empire_n celebrandum_fw-la empire_n natalem_fw-la imperii_fw-la instituit_fw-la celebrandum_fw-la but_o i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o launch_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a story_n where_o we_o find_v this_o more_o plain_o deliver_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o succeed_a king_n of_o israel_n for_o when_o the_o philistine_n the_o moabite_n the_o syrian_n the_o ammonite_n and_o other_o neighbour_a people_n with_o their_o prince_n conspire_v after_o they_o have_v be_v conquer_v by_o david_n against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o anointed_n resolve_v to_o cast_v off_o their_o yoke_n the_o psalmist_n show_v psal_n 2._o how_o vain_a and_o idle_a their_o attempt_n will_v prove_v because_o god_n have_v appoint_v he_o who_o he_o send_v a_o prophet_n to_o anoint_v to_o be_v his_o king_n this_o decree_n of_o god_n he_o averr_v and_o open_o declare_v ver_fw-la 6_o 7._o that_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n i._n e._n when_o he_o anoint_v he_o i_o have_v beget_v thou_o so_o that_o to_o rise_v against_o he_o be_v to_o war_n with_o god_n almighty_a who_o son_n that_o be_v vicegerent_n he_o be_v in_o those_o country_n and_o therefore_o if_o they_o be_v well_o advise_v he_o exhort_v they_o all_o to_o go_v and_o kiss_v the_o son_n ver_fw-la 12._o i._n e._n submit_v themselves_o by_o that_o token_n of_o humble_a subjection_n to_o he_o who_o have_v his_o authority_n immediate_o from_o god_n nay_o be_v his_o first-born_a the_o most_o eminent_a prince_n that_o be_v that_o ever_o he_o make_v lxxxix_o psal_n 27._o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v the_o prime_a type_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n to_o who_o these_o word_n be_v apply_v because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n that_o great_a king_n who_o be_v to_o reign_v over_o they_o for_o ever_o as_o the_o angel_n say_v i._n luke_n 33._o and_o if_o you_o pass_v from_o hence_o to_o the_o next_o king_n solomon_n who_o have_v a_o particular_a unction_n also_o and_o in_o who_o reign_n be_v prefigure_v the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n you_o will_v find_v that_o god_n say_v by_o a_o prophet_n concern_v he_o i_o will_v be_v his_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n 2_o sam._n seven_o 14._o which_o word_n be_v a_o promise_n to_o make_v solomon_n king_n and_o settle_v he_o on_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n so_o he_o understand_v it_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o speech_n which_o david_n make_v not_o long_o before_o his_o death_n to_o all_o the_o great_a man_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 1_o chron._n xxviii_o where_o he_o tell_v they_o ver_fw-la 4._o that_o as_o jesse_n have_v many_o son_n yet_o god_n like_v he_o only_o to_o make_v he_o king_n over_o all_o israel_n so_o of_o the_o many_o son_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v he_o ver_fw-la 5._o he_o have_v choose_v solomon_n to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o be_v evident_a say_v he_o from_o those_o word_n of_o god_n speak_v by_o nathan_n ver_fw-la 6._o i_o have_v choose_v he_o to_o be_v my_o son_n and_o i_o will_v be_v hit_v father_z i._n e._n make_v choice_n of_o he_o to_o be_v king_n of_o israel_n in_o thy_o room_n and_o as_o i_o have_v be_v to_o thou_o so_o i_o will_v be_v to_o he_o thus_o solomon_n one_o will_v think_v interpret_v these_o word_n when_o he_o pray_v god_n who_o have_v make_v good_a one_o part_n of_o his_o promise_n to_o perform_v the_o other_o also_o 2_o chron._n i_o 8_o 9_o thou_o have_v show_v great_a mercy_n unto_o david_n my_o father_n and_o have_v make_v i_o reign_v in_o his_o stead_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v make_v i_o thy_o son_n now_o o_o lord_n god_n let_v thy_o promise_n unto_o my_o father_n be_v establish_v that_o be_v of_o be_v a_o father_n to_o i_o now_o that_o i_o be_o become_v thy_o son_n and_o set_v by_o thou_o over_o a_o people_n like_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o multitude_n by_o this_o time_n i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v no_o wonder_n to_o any_o intelligent_a person_n that_o these_o king_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o do_v not_o only_o govern_v in_o that_o country_n which_o be_v call_v it_o be_v well_o know_v god_n land_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n whereof_o be_v his_o peculiar_a people_n but_o be_v appoint_v by_o his_o special_a direction_n and_o anoint_v with_o his_o holy_a oil_n lxxxix_o psal_n 20._o and_o have_v as_o it_o be_v their_o be_v and_o birth_n from_o god_n who_o promote_v they_o to_o sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n and_o to_o be_v king_n for_o the_o lord_n god_n as_o you_o read_v 2_o chron._n ix_o 8._o so_o that_o the_o kingdom_n itself_o be_v call_v in_o that_o book_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n xiii_o 8._o and_o the_o judge_n also_o in_o the_o court_n of_o that_o kingdom_n be_v say_v to_o exercise_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o of_o man_n nineteeen_o 6._o that_o be_v to_o sit_v there_o in_o god_n stead_n to_o do_v man_n justice_n and_o because_o of_o this_o great_a power_n and_o trust_v commit_v to_o they_o by_o he_o be_v call_v as_o you_o hear_v lxxxii_o psal_n 1_o 6._o god_n and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a who_o deputy_n they_o be_v and_o for_o who_o they_o judge_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o less_o wonder_n that_o when_o this_o great_a prince_n come_v among_o they_o to_o who_o all_o judgement_n be_v commit_v and_o who_o have_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o and_o appoint_v by_o god_n
pregnant_a reason_n accompany_v it_o to_o win_v credit_n to_o itself_o if_o that_o which_o stand_v as_o a_o reason_n for_o all_o that_o a_o man_n say_v be_v not_o itself_o ground_v upon_o the_o clear_a and_o most_o undeniable_a it_o turn_v against_o he_o and_o prove_v nothing_o but_o a_o confutation_n of_o all_o that_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o assert_v now_o jesus_n pretend_v not_o only_a to_o this_o honour_n of_o come_v from_o god_n which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o say_v in_o his_o name_n but_o also_o to_o a_o high_a dignity_n of_o be_v his_o son_n and_o so_o of_o be_v privy_a to_o all_o his_o secret_n of_o lie_v in_o his_o very_a bosom_n and_o be_v invest_v with_o a_o power_n equal_a to_o the_o almighty_n if_o he_o and_o his_o apostle_n who_o affirm_v the_o same_o of_o he_o after_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o that_o as_o a_o malefactor_n shall_v be_v defective_a in_o their_o proof_n of_o so_o lofty_a and_o weighty_a a_o pretention_n he_o will_v be_v render_v of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o contemptible_a and_o they_o become_v man_n most_o ridiculous_a for_o obtrude_a he_o on_o the_o world_n in_o such_o a_o quality_n upon_o slight_a or_o no_o demonstration_n for_o the_o great_a and_o more_o concern_v any_o assertion_n be_v which_o we_o propound_v to_o man_n belief_n the_o strong_a and_o more_o plentiful_a argument_n they_o just_o expect_v to_o induce_v a_o persuasion_n which_o if_o they_o be_v want_v it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o fault_n not_o to_o surrender_v their_o soul_n to_o that_o proposition_n that_o it_o be_v a_o virtue_n to_o refuse_v admittance_n and_o they_o can_v not_o excuse_v themselves_o from_o a_o great_a guilt_n shall_v they_o be_v so_o easy_a as_o to_o let_v it_o find_v entertainment_n nay_o it_o be_v a_o commendable_a piece_n of_o caution_n and_o wariness_n to_o suspend_v our_o belief_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o very_o great_a importance_n though_o there_o be_v some_o considerable_a proof_n offer_v if_o they_o be_v not_o proportionable_a to_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o thing_n unto_o which_o we_o be_v to_o deliver_v up_o no_o less_o than_o our_o soul_n let_v we_o see_v therefore_o what_o evidence_n this_o follower_n and_o favourite_n as_o i_o may_v call_v he_o of_o jesus_n produce_v and_o lay_v before_o we_o to_o make_v good_a this_o which_o he_o preach_v for_o a_o certain_a truth_n that_o he_o be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o son_n of_o god_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o his_o witness_n say_v for_o so_o he_o call_v his_o proof_n to_o this_o great_a point_n and_o consider_v whether_o they_o speak_v so_o home_o to_o it_o that_o we_o can_v reasonable_o refuse_v to_o believe_v it_o the_o office_n of_o a_o witness_n be_v to_o give_v in_o all_o the_o evidence_n he_o can_v for_o the_o clear_n of_o any_o matter_n in_o question_n for_o this_o very_a end_n that_o there_o by_o the_o controversy_n may_v be_v decide_v upon_o his_o credit_n when_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o call_v for_o his_o witness_n who_o be_v ready_a he_o say_v to_o justify_v this_o which_o he_o assert_n if_o any_o body_n make_v a_o doubt_n of_o it_o or_o be_v not_o well_o settle_v in_o this_o belief_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o it_o rely_v upon_o such_o solid_a ground_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o deny_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n the_o christ_n of_o god_n unless_o he_o can_v disprove_v the_o authority_n of_o his_o witness_n which_o he_o be_v sure_a will_v never_o be_v in_o any_o man_n power_n to_o do_v they_o be_v of_o such_o know_a verity_n if_o this_o be_v call_v in_o question_n whether_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o no_o if_o any_o list_n to_o bring_v it_o to_o trial_n and_o examine_v it_o before_o the_o bar_n of_o impartial_a reason_n s._n john_n here_o offer_v his_o witness_n faithful_a and_o just_a of_o undoubted_a truth_n and_o integrity_n who_o shall_v make_v it_o good_a so_o that_o if_o you_o will_v hear_v they_o and_o consider_v what_o they_o say_v and_o then_o give_v sentence_n according_a to_o their_o evidence_n you_o must_v needs_o judge_v that_o he_o be_v what_o he_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n most_o high_a and_o quit_v he_o in_o your_o conscience_n of_o all_o the_o calumny_n &_o aspersion_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o say_v he_o be_v a_o deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n now_o the_o witness_n that_o he_o bring_v you_o see_v dwell_v in_o two_o very_a distant_a place_n three_o of_o they_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o other_o three_o in_o the_o earth_n from_o these_o two_o several_a region_n they_o give_v their_o testimony_n the_o former_a from_o above_o the_o late_a here_o beneath_o for_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o there_o be_v three_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d testify_a or_o bear_v witness_n in_o the_o heaven_n and_o as_o many_o that_o do_v the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o the_o earth_n the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o first_o three_o give_v their_o testimony_n to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o last_o three_o to_o those_o that_o be_v on_o earth_n but_o that_o the_o first_o three_o witness_n be_v themselves_o in_o heaven_n and_o the_o other_o three_o be_v on_o earth_n and_o so_o from_o thence_o they_o give_v their_o testimony_n to_o jesus_n they_o that_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n deliver_v their_o testimony_n and_o justify_v this_o truth_n from_o above_o and_o the_o other_o reside_v on_o the_o earth_n do_v there_o speak_v to_o it_o and_o make_v it_o good_a let_v we_o first_o hear_v these_o supreme_a and_o heavenly_a witness_n and_o take_v under_o examination_n what_o they_o declare_v concern_v he_o who_o we_o acknowledge_v for_o our_o lord_n and_o what_o authority_n he_o have_v according_a to_o their_o testimony_n to_o exact_v all_o obedience_n of_o we_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o first_o of_o all_o let_v we_o begin_v with_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o father_z for_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o as_o he_o be_v the_o first_o and_o the_o beginning_n of_o all_o thing_n so_o he_o do_v first_o testify_v of_o jesus_n and_o by_o his_o voice_n from_o heaven_n proclaim_v he_o to_o be_v his_o son_n before_z he_o or_o any_o else_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o affirm_v it_o and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o first_o do_v bear_v witness_n to_o he_o before_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n speak_v a_o word_n so_o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o these_o heavenly_a witness_n he_o give_v his_o testimony_n of_o he_o three_o time_n i._o the_o first_o time_n be_v when_o our_o saviour_n begin_v to_o appear_v public_o among_o the_o people_n come_v out_o of_o his_o privacy_n from_o nazareth_n of_o galilee_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o john_n in_o jordan_n 1.9_o matt._n 3.13_o mark_v 1.9_o he_o have_v no_o need_n indeed_o of_o that_o baptism_n as_o john_n affirm_v and_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o as_o become_v one_o who_o have_v put_v himself_o into_o the_o state_n of_o our_o meanness_n and_o appear_v in_o our_o sinful_a flesh_n he_o will_v omit_v nothing_o that_o belong_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o pious_a person_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v the_o baptist_n do_v to_o he_o as_o he_o do_v to_o other_o know_v that_o he_o exercise_v this_o ministry_n by_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n who_o institution_n ought_v to_o be_v reverence_v and_o to_o who_o will_n all_o good_a man_n ought_v to_o conform_v themselves_o now_o he_o have_v no_o soon_o give_v this_o example_n of_o humble_a obedience_n but_o as_o he_o come_v out_o of_o the_o water_n god_n the_o father_n of_o heaven_n declare_v he_o in_o express_a term_n to_o be_v what_o s._n john_n here_o say_v he_o be_v his_o only_a son_n which_o testimony_n of_o he_o be_v record_v by_o no_o less_o than_o three_o evangelist_n as_o you_o may_v find_v if_o you_o read_v iii._o matth._n 17._o i._n mark_v 11._o iii._o luke_n 22._o who_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o see_v the_o heaven_n at_o that_o time_n open_v to_o he_o and_o a_o divine_a glory_n come_v from_o thence_o and_o settle_v upon_o he_o which_o be_v follow_v with_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v so_o s._n matthew_n report_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o father_z from_o who_o this_o voice_n come_v it_o be_v plain_a because_o he_o call_v jesus_n his_o son_n or_o as_o they_o may_v be_v render_v more_o emphatical_o this_o be_v that_o son_n of_o i_o that_o belove_v one_o who_o the_o prophet_n promise_v particular_o xlii_o isaiah_n 1_o god_n will_v send_v to_o they_o as_o tertullian_n well_o expound_v it_o who_o be_v most_o dear_a to_o i_o and_o shall_v declare_v my_o whole_a will_n and_o pleasure_n there_o
be_v a_o mark_n set_v before_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lo_o or_o behold_v that_o we_o may_v all_o attend_v and_o listen_v diligent_o to_o this_o voice_n for_o now_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v to_o he_o as_o he_o speak_v in_o another_o place_n i_o tell_v you_o concern_v those_o who_o be_v call_v god_n under_o the_o old_a law_n x._o john_n 35._o and_o in_o a_o audible_a manner_n authorize_v he_o to_o begin_v to_o act_v as_o the_o christ_n of_o god_n who_o he_o have_v anoint_v as_o you_o shall_v hear_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n just_a at_o this_o moment_n when_o he_o declare_v he_o his_o son_n by_o this_o voice_n from_o heaven_n which_o if_o you_o careful_o observe_v it_o be_v express_v by_o the_o other_o evangelist_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o we_o may_v understand_v it_o be_v direct_v to_o himself_o as_o that_o commission_n which_o be_v send_v he_o from_o heaven_n to_o give_v he_o power_n to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o god_n supreme_a and_o only_a minister_n in_o this_o world_n in_o who_o alone_o he_o be_v well_o please_v and_o in_o none_o else_o but_o by_o he_o for_o s._n mark_n say_v the_o voice_n be_v in_o these_o word_n thou_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v which_o plain_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o speak_v to_o jesus_n and_o not_o mere_o of_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v confident_a he_o be_v the_o person_n who_o god_n have_v now_o sanctify_v and_o send_v into_o the_o world_n and_o so_o s._n luke_n have_v record_v it_o more_o full_o and_o express_o thou_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o thou_o i_o be_o well_o please_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v thou_o be_v the_o person_n to_o who_o i_o have_v a_o favour_n above_o all_o other_o i_o have_v anoint_v thou_o above_o all_o thy_o fellow_n none_o that_o have_v have_v this_o name_n be_v so_o dear_a to_o i_o as_o thou_o be_v to_o who_o i_o commit_v my_o authority_n and_o invest_v with_o my_o power_n and_o intrust_v with_o all_o my_o mind_n and_o will_n now_o because_o we_o all_o suspect_v private_a revelation_n and_o think_v it_o no_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o believe_v one_o that_o say_v god_n speak_v to_o he_o unless_o he_o can_v bring_v some_o other_o very_o credible_a person_n beside_o himself_o to_o attest_v that_o he_o also_o hear_v it_o or_o be_v able_a otherways_o to_o demonstrate_v it_o god_n be_v please_v therefore_o not_o only_o by_o other_o mean_n to_o verify_v this_o but_o so_o to_o direct_v s._n matthew_n pen_n that_o he_o have_v as_o good_a as_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o voice_n which_o be_v direct_v to_o jesus_n himself_o tell_v he_o he_o be_v his_o son_n be_v utter_v likewise_o in_o the_o audience_n of_o john_n baptist_n a_o person_n fame_v for_o his_o sanctity_n reverence_v by_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n though_o it_o be_v deliver_v i_o believe_v in_o those_o word_n and_o syllable_n wherein_o s._n mark_n or_o s._n luke_n have_v set_v it_o down_o for_o as_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o he_o iii._o matth._n 16._o and_o he_o see_v the_o spirit_n descend_v so_o the_o voice_n which_o accompany_v it_o speak_v in_o all_o likelihood_n unto_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v hear_v also_o by_o john_n who_o have_v baptize_v he_o and_o who_o see_v all_o that_o go_v before_o it_o as_o he_o himself_o declare_v it_o be_v as_o if_o god_n have_v say_v to_o he_o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o so_o s._n matthew_n relate_v it_o the_o father_n almighty_a by_o this_o voice_n awaken_v the_o attention_n of_o the_o baptist_n and_o bid_v he_o as_o it_o be_v mark_v it_o that_o this_o person_n to_o who_o he_o now_o speak_v be_v the_o messiah_n who_o now_o enter_v upon_o his_o office_n be_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v increase_v and_o grow_v as_o he_o present_o after_o discern_v iii._o john_n 30._o till_o he_o come_v to_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n as_o s._n paul_n speak_v i._n rom._n 4._o that_o be_v with_o all_o the_o power_n belong_v to_o his_o office_n of_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n till_o this_o time_n he_o know_v no_o more_o of_o the_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o be_v come_v god_n have_v order_v he_o to_o make_v way_n for_o he_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v immediate_o appear_v and_o be_v so_o much_o superior_a to_o he_o iii._o matth._n 11._o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v one_o of_o his_o mean_a servant_n his_o countenance_n he_o be_v not_o acquaint_v withal_o nor_o can_v he_o say_v this_o be_v the_o person_n when_o he_o meet_v with_o he_o as_o he_o himself_o confess_v i._n john_n 31._o but_o thus_o much_o he_o be_v tell_v by_o he_o that_o send_v he_o to_o baptise_v as_o he_o there_o declare_v ver_fw-la 33._o that_o on_o who_o he_o shall_v see_v the_o spirit_n descend_v and_o remain_v he_o shall_v conclude_v that_o person_n be_v the_o messiah_n from_o who_o they_o may_v expect_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o have_v be_v so_o long_o a_o stranger_n to_o their_o nation_n and_o according_o have_v some_o intimation_n of_o he_o from_o the_o spirit_n as_o soon_o as_o jesus_n offer_v himself_o to_o receive_v his_o baptism_n iii._o matth._n 14._o immediate_o after_o he_o be_v confirm_v in_o his_o belief_n that_o this_o be_v the_o christ_n by_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o former_a sign_n i._n john_n 32._o and_o thereupon_o publish_v it_o open_o to_o all_o in_o these_o word_n ver_fw-la 34._o i_o see_v and_o bare_a record_n i._n e._n give_v my_o testimony_n of_o he_o that_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o god_n himself_o teach_v he_o to_o call_v our_o saviour_n for_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o the_o word_n of_o s._n matthew_n that_o he_o have_v this_o further_a ground_n to_o believe_v it_o and_o so_o be_v furnish_v with_o great_a ability_n to_o testify_v it_o that_o he_o hear_v the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n as_o well_o as_o see_v the_o spirit_n descend_v upon_o he_o though_o the_o father_n speak_v the_o word_n to_o jesus_n yet_o it_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n and_o hear_n of_o this_o person_n who_o be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o be_v his_o witness_n i._n john_n 6_o 7._o and_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v to_o he_o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n mind_n what_o i_o say_v go_v and_o testify_v that_o this_o be_v he_o in_o who_o i_o delight_v above_o all_o other_o thou_o may_v be_v sure_a of_o it_o for_o i_o tell_v thou_o so_o who_o give_v thou_o all_o the_o authority_n thou_o have_v and_o according_o you_o read_v that_o he_o go_v and_o do_v his_o office_n for_o which_o he_o be_v send_v that_o be_v he_o bare_a witness_n of_o he_o and_o cry_v say_v this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o i_o speak_v he_o that_o come_v after_o i_o be_v prefer_v before_o i_o for_o he_o be_v before_o i_o 1._o john_n 15._o which_o he_o repeat_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n as_o his_o record_n ver_fw-la 19_o in_o behalf_n of_o our_o saviour_n on_o two_o other_o occasion_n ver_fw-la 27._o and_o 30._o to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o the_o person_n of_o who_o he_o give_v this_o testimony_n before_o he_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o be_v now_o come_v and_o exalt_v to_o a_o far_o high_a dignity_n than_o himself_o be_v a_o more_o mighty_a person_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o evangelist_n speak_v no_o less_o than_o the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o he_o mean_v by_o be_v prefer_v before_o he_o appoint_v by_o the_o father_n of_o all_o to_o a_o incomparable_o more_o excellent_a office_n which_o he_o enter_v upon_o after_o the_o preach_n and_o baptism_n of_o john_n who_o begin_v indeed_o his_o ministry_n before_o jesus_n but_o it_o be_v not_o because_o he_o be_v great_a but_o rather_o because_o he_o be_v less_o and_o come_v to_o prepare_v his_o way_n who_o be_v as_o he_o acknowledge_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first_o of_o the_o two_o not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o sublime_a office_n into_o which_o he_o be_v now_o put_v by_o be_v pronounce_v the_o belove_a son_n of_o god_n by_o this_o voice_n from_o heaven_n which_o the_o devil_n himself_o one_o will_v think_v hear_v and_o understand_v to_o be_v such_o a_o testimony_n concern_v jesus_n as_o commit_v the_o great_a ministry_n to_o he_o and_o be_v a_o divine_a warrant_n to_o go_v in_o god_n name_n to_o the_o world_n as_o moses_n after_o the_o angel_n speak_v to_o he_o out_o of_o the_o bush_n do_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o when_o immediate_o after_o this_o our_o saviour_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o
spirit_n into_o the_o wilderness_n the_o devil_n will_v have_v have_v he_o give_v some_o proof_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n as_o moses_n do_v or_o rather_o show_v himself_o by_o a_o great_a evidence_n than_o moses_n give_v to_o be_v great_a than_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v satisfy_v jesus_n be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o voice_n declare_v he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o you_o read_v four_o matth._n 3._o that_o the_o first_o thing_n he_o say_v to_o he_o be_v if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n command_v that_o these_o stone_n be_v make_v bread_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v thou_o be_v now_o in_o a_o starve_a condition_n for_o he_o have_v take_v no_o provision_n with_o he_o into_o the_o wilderness_n resolve_v to_o depend_v on_o that_o god_n who_o have_v express_v such_o love_n to_o he_o as_o to_o own_v he_o for_o his_o son_n here_o be_v a_o fit_a opportunity_n for_o thou_o to_o exercise_v thy_o power_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o by_o bid_v these_o stone_n turn_v into_o loaf_n which_o will_v be_v a_o great_a wonder_n than_o moses_n his_o bring_v manna_n out_o of_o the_o cloud_n and_o show_v indeed_o that_o thou_o be_v god_n son_n to_o which_o our_o saviour_n answer_v as_o you_o read_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n out_o of_o moses_n himself_o viij_o deut._n 3_o and_o tell_v he_o he_o may_v learn_v from_o that_o story_n of_o the_o manna_n there_o be_v no_o need_n he_o shall_v employ_v his_o power_n which_o god_n have_v commit_v to_o he_o on_o this_o fashion_n for_o as_o the_o israelite_n be_v maintain_v in_o the_o wilderness_n after_o a_o miraculous_a manner_n so_o may_v he_o who_o will_v prove_v himself_o to_o be_v his_o son_n not_o this_o way_n by_o turn_v stone_n into_o bread_n but_o by_o trust_v in_o god_n and_o leave_v he_o to_o provide_v for_o he_o as_o he_o think_v good_a that_o be_v his_o meaning_n when_o he_o say_v man_n shall_v not_o live_v by_o bread_n alone_o but_o by_o every_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n and_o so_o in_o the_o follow_a temptation_n he_o still_o hold_v to_o this_o that_o he_o be_v sufficient_o satisfy_v he_o be_v god_n son_n and_o will_v not_o demand_v any_o far_a proof_n of_o it_o but_o such_o as_o he_o himself_o will_v give_v who_o at_o last_o ver_fw-la 11._o order_v the_o angel_n to_o go_v and_o minister_v unto_o he_o to_o carry_v he_o food_n it_o be_v like_a and_o congratulate_v this_o his_o first_o victory_n over_o the_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n who_o be_v not_o so_o dull_a but_o he_o learn_v by_o this_o and_o many_o other_o thing_n afterward_o wherein_o he_o feel_v his_o power_n that_o this_o voice_n from_o heaven_n be_v no_o vain_a rumour_n no_o empty_a insignificant_a sound_n but_o a_o true_a report_n of_o the_o very_a mind_n of_o almighty_a god_n which_o he_o himself_o be_v force_v to_o proclaim_v as_o loud_o as_o any_o body_n else_o for_o you_o find_v he_o not_o long_o after_o this_o with_o a_o whole_a legion_n of_o his_o companion_n acknowledge_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n most_o high_a and_o with_o humble_a prostration_n worship_v he_o who_o he_o have_v the_o confidence_n before_o to_o persuade_v to_o worship_v himself_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n for_o god_n sake_n that_o he_o will_v not_o torment_v he_o v._o mark_v 6_o 7_o 8._o viij_o luke_n 28._o nay_o he_o be_v sensible_a one_o will_v think_v of_o this_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o that_o temptation_n be_v end_v for_o you_o read_v that_o immediate_o after_o it_o jesus_n return_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n into_o galilee_n four_o luke_n 14._o and_o there_o at_o capernaum_n meet_v with_o a_o man_n that_o have_v a_o spirit_n of_o a_o unclean_a devil_n who_o cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n say_v i_o know_v thou_o who_o thou_o be_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o god_n ver_fw-la 34._o which_o be_v thus_o interpret_v ver_fw-la 41._o the_o devil_n come_v out_o of_o many_o cry_v out_o and_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o they_o know_v that_o he_o be_v christ_n but_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o be_v behold_v to_o they_o for_o their_o suffrage_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o god_n have_v declare_v he_o his_o son_n and_o that_o john_n baptist_n attest_v as_o much_o and_o that_o the_o work_n which_o he_o do_v particular_o his_o dispossess_v they_o of_o their_o strong_a hold_n bare_a witness_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o impose_v silence_n on_o they_o as_o the_o evangelist_n there_o tell_v we_o both_o because_o they_o may_v by_o their_o loud_a acclamation_n to_o he_o give_v the_o pharisee_n occasion_n to_o calumniate_v he_o who_o be_v too_o forward_o to_o say_v he_o have_v confederacy_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v this_o shall_v be_v publish_v in_o so_o many_o word_n no_o not_o by_o his_o apostle_n xuj_o matth._n 20._o till_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o his_o ascension_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o demonstrate_v he_o be_v complete_o make_v both_o lord_n and_o christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n then_o open_o declare_v two_o act_n 36._o but_o till_o then_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n alone_o or_o principal_o to_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o for_o john_n baptist_n be_v his_o voice_n cry_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o the_o work_v our_o saviour_n do_v be_v those_o which_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o to_o finish_v and_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n which_o point_v man_n to_o he_o as_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v and_o bid_v they_o receive_v he_o as_o his_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v and_o shall_v we_o not_o receive_v this_o for_o the_o great_a truth_n when_o god_n himself_o say_v it_o shall_v we_o not_o let_v he_o dispose_v of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o he_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o possible_a for_o he_o to_o falsify_v or_o deceive_v or_o do_v we_o imagine_v he_o can_v declare_v his_o mind_n and_o speak_v to_o we_o as_o we_o do_v one_o to_o another_o he_o that_o form_v the_o mouth_n can_v he_o speak_v be_v his_o power_n less_o than_o we_o can_v we_o manifest_v what_o we_o will_v have_v and_o make_v it_o understand_v and_o can_v he_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n make_v we_o know_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n if_o his_o express_a testimony_n then_o be_v of_o any_o force_n here_o you_o have_v it_o by_o a_o audible_a voice_n from_o heaven_n and_o john_n the_o baptist_n who_o the_o jew_n the_o enemy_n of_o our_o saviour_n dare_v not_o but_o reverence_n bare_a record_n to_o he_o thereupon_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n now_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o this_o rely_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o single_a person_n and_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v hear_v amiss_o though_o there_o be_v no_o colour_n for_o such_o a_o objection_n he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o acknowledge_v so_o to_o be_v by_o those_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v our_o saviour_n yet_o that_o this_o great_a truth_n may_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o john_n baptist_n alone_o though_o a_o man_n well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o manner_n of_o divine_a revelation_n the_o father_z be_v please_v a_o second_o time_n and_o in_o the_o audience_n of_o more_o witness_n than_o one_o to_o declare_v again_o what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o that_o he_o be_v his_o son_n ii_o this_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a mount_n as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o xvii_o matth._n 5._o and_o in_o the_o two_o follow_a evangelist_n ix_o mark_v 7._o ix_o luke_n 35._o where_o the_o father_n of_o all_o be_v please_v to_o declare_v in_o the_o same_o term_n as_o he_o have_v do_v at_o his_o baptism_n and_o with_o a_o audible_a voice_n which_o astonish_v those_o that_o hear_v it_o xvii_o matth._n 6._o that_o he_o be_v his_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v to_o which_o declaration_n he_o add_v this_o command_n hear_v he_o that_o be_v be_v assure_v that_o what_o he_o say_v to_o you_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o what_o i_o speak_v to_o the_o world_n it_o shall_v be_v by_o his_o mouth_n now_o this_o voice_n be_v utter_v in_o the_o hear_n of_o no_o less_o than_o three_o person_n who_o our_o saviour_n have_v select_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o company_n to_o attend_v he_o unto_o this_o mountain_n where_o god_n appear_v to_o bear_v witness_n to_o he_o of_o which_o three_o this_o disciple_n s._n john_n be_v one_o who_o therefore_o may_v with_o the_o great_a confidence_n urge_v here_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n which_o he_o himself_o hear_v and_o unless_o they_o to_o who_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n can_v
find_v he_o false_a and_o guilty_a of_o forgery_n in_o any_o other_o relation_n they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o call_v in_o question_n his_o honesty_n and_o faithfulness_n in_o this_o report_n which_o be_v the_o more_o considerable_a because_o there_o be_v other_o who_o hear_v it_o as_o well_o as_o he_o who_o may_v be_v appeal_v unto_o and_o ask_v about_o it_o one_o of_o those_o who_o be_v there_o present_a and_o hear_v it_o together_o with_o he_o be_v s._n peter_n a_o man_n timorous_a enough_o and_o apt_a to_o deny_v a_o truth_n and_o therefore_o of_o no_o such_o courage_n as_o to_o support_v a_o lie_n with_o the_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n who_o write_v to_o christian_a people_n as_o s._n john_n here_o do_v commend_v this_o voice_n to_o they_o as_o a_o sure_a witness_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o he_o be_v short_o to_o seal_v with_o his_o blood_n and_o profess_v his_o own_o sincerity_n in_o the_o relate_n of_o it_o read_v with_o attention_n 2_o pet._n 1.14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o where_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o our_o lord_n have_v show_v he_o he_o must_v short_o die_v when_o it_o be_v no_o time_n to_o dissemble_v with_o god_n or_o man_n he_o will_v endeavour_v to_o settle_v in_o their_o mind_n such_o a_o solid_a ground_n of_o faith_n that_o when_o he_o be_v go_v they_o shall_v stand_v unshaken_a if_o they_o do_v but_o remember_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n he_o have_v receive_v by_o hear-say_n much_o less_o a_o devise_a story_n that_o have_v be_v forge_v in_o his_o own_o brain_n but_o a_o matter_n of_o which_o he_o be_v a_o eye_n and_o earwitness_n of_o which_o he_o and_o other_o also_o have_v a_o certain_a clear_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n for_o they_o see_v then_o the_o glory_n wherein_o jesus_n be_v and_o they_o hear_v the_o forename_a voice_n come_v from_o that_o excellent_a glory_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n then_o and_o there_o in_o that_o mount_n jesus_n receive_v from_o the_o father_n honour_n and_o glory_n when_o there_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n this_o voice_n in_o all_o their_o hear_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v here_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o voice_n as_o all_o of_o they_o relate_v it_o be_v direct_v not_o to_o he_o but_o to_o those_o who_o be_v there_o present_a with_o he_o none_o of_o they_o say_v that_o it_o speak_v thus_o thou_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n according_a as_o s._n mark_n and_o s._n lake_n report_v the_o former_a voice_n but_o they_o unanimous_o tell_v we_o in_o these_o four_o place_n which_o i_o have_v name_v that_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o other_o form_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o company_n that_o attend_v he_o and_o bid_v they_o observe_v that_o here_o he_o own_v this_o person_n to_o stand_v in_o such_o a_o relation_n to_o he_o as_o he_o and_o john_n baptist_n have_v profess_v the_o former_a voice_n may_v come_v for_o his_o sake_n but_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o his_o further_a satisfaction_n this_o be_v for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v steadfast_o believe_v and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v competent_a witness_n of_o he_o and_o persuade_v other_o to_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o which_o upon_o their_o own_o certain_a knowledge_n they_o can_v affirm_v be_v the_o very_a mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n hereafter_o to_o make_v a_o further_a enquiry_n into_o both_o these_o testimony_n which_o the_o father_n give_v to_o his_o son_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v now_o dismiss_v they_o with_o some_o observation_n concern_v this_o which_o will_v much_o help_n to_o illustrate_v it_o and_o add_v to_o the_o force_n of_o it_o the_o first_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n have_v at_o this_o time_n sequester_v himself_o with_o three_o of_o his_o apostle_n into_o a_o high_a mountain_n to_o pray_v to_o god_n be_v transfigure_v before_o they_o as_o he_o be_v pray_v xvii_o matth._n 2._o ix_o luke_n 29._o so_o that_o his_o face_n do_v shine_v as_o the_o sun_n and_o his_o very_a garment_n be_v all_o glister_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o s._n greg._n nazianzen_n speak_v 575._o speak_v orat._n 35._o p._n 575._o show_v beforehand_o what_o he_o be_v to_o be_v hereafter_o and_o make_v a_o introduction_n to_o the_o glory_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v shine_v in_o the_o high_a and_o holy_a place_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n where_o he_o make_v perpetual_a intercession_n for_o we_o for_o to_o shine_v as_o the_o sun_n be_v a_o phrase_n express_v something_o belong_v to_o celestial_a majesty_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o father_n xiii_o matth._n 43._o the_o white_a and_o splendid_a garment_n also_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v be_v proper_a to_o king_n and_o those_o who_o wait_v on_o they_o iii._o revel_v 4._o the_o minister_n and_o royal_a attendant_n in_o the_o heavenly_a court_n be_v wont_v always_o to_o appear_v in_o such_o radiant_a brightness_n though_o short_a of_o this_o wherein_o our_o saviour_n now_o begin_v to_o shine_v as_o the_o king_n ere_o long_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o so_o s._n john_n say_v i_o 14._o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n and_o s._n peter_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o this_o say_v 2_o i_o 16._o we_o be_v eye-witness_n of_o his_o majesty_n of_o which_o that_o they_o may_v be_v assure_v this_o be_v a_o true_a representation_n you_o may_v observe_v second_o how_o they_o see_v a_o very_a great_a glory_n appear_v and_o approach_v towards_o they_o call_v by_o s._n mark_n and_o s._n luke_n simple_o a_o cloud_n but_o by_o s._n matthew_n xvii_o 5._o a_o bright_a cloud_n which_o have_v usual_o be_v the_o token_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v by_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o place_n before_o name_v ver_fw-la 17._o the_o excellent_a or_o magnificent_a glory_n and_o the_o voice_n which_o come_v out_o of_o it_o be_v say_v ver_fw-la 18._o to_o come_v from_o heaven_n because_o it_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n of_o which_o this_o bright_a cloud_n be_v the_o visible_a sign_n for_o so_o he_o appear_v ancient_o to_o the_o israelite_n in_o a_o cloud_n that_o have_v a_o splendour_n or_o shine_a light_n in_o it_o like_v to_o the_o hot_a fire_n which_o sometime_o bright_o glister_v and_o sometime_o be_v obscure_v so_o you_o read_v nineteeen_o exod._n 18._o that_o the_o lord_n descend_v in_o fire_n upon_o the_o famous_a mount_n sinai_n and_o a_o little_a after_o xxiv_o exod._n 16_o 17._o how_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n dwell_v upon_o that_o mount_n and_o the_o cloud_n cover_v it_o i._n e._n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o space_n of_o six_o day_n and_o then_o on_o the_o seven_o day_n he_o call_v unto_o moses_n out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o that_o cloud_n and_o the_o aspect_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v as_o fire_v that_o burn_a or_o glow_v with_o great_a ardency_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n that_o glory_n be_v reveal_v and_o break_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o cloud_n wherein_o for_o six_o day_n it_o have_v be_v wrap_v up_o and_o hide_v from_o their_o sight_n and_o so_o you_o read_v in_o the_o xl_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o moses_n have_v rear_v up_o the_o tabernacle_n for_o the_o constant_a habitation_n of_o this_o divine_a presence_n the_o cloud_n cover_v it_o and_o rest_v upon_o it_o without_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n fill_v it_o within_o ver_fw-la 34_o 35._o which_o be_v present_o after_o explain_v to_o be_v a_o fire_n which_o by_o night_n appear_v upon_o the_o tabernacle_n to_o guide_v they_o in_o their_o journey_n this_o be_v that_o bright_a flame_n which_o fright_v they_o when_o they_o murmur_v against_o moses_n call_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n xuj_o exod._n 7.10_o and_o xuj_o numb_a 42._o threaten_v to_o devour_v they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o more_o obedient_a such_o a_o glory_n but_o more_o pure_a and_o more_o delightful_a to_o behold_v there_o be_v now_o upon_o this_o holy_a mount_n as_o s._n peter_n call_v it_o to_o make_v they_o apprehensive_a that_o now_o they_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n who_o as_o he_o do_v on_o that_o mount_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o tertullian_n initiate_v their_o forefather_n in_o the_o religion_n of_o moses_n by_o show_v his_o glory_n and_o by_o his_o voice_n so_o here_o on_o this_o 22._o this_o agnosce_fw-la formam_fw-la loci_fw-la etc._n etc._n l._n 4._o
adv_n marcionem_fw-la c._n 22._o be_v go_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n to_o give_v testimony_n to_o they_o concern_v his_o son_n jesus_n and_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v teach_v they_o for_o three_o this_o be_v not_o mut●_n nubes_fw-la as_o the_o same_o tertullian_n there_o speak_v a_o dumb_a cloud_n a_o silent_a glory_n but_o a_o voice_n come_v out_o of_o it_o which_o be_v novum_n patris_fw-la testimonium_fw-la super_fw-la filio_fw-la the_o father_n new_a testimony_n concern_v his_o son_n in_o which_o testimony_n he_o be_v please_v to_o apply_v those_o very_a word_n to_o jesus_n which_o have_v be_v speak_v by_o moses_n concern_v a_o prophet_n who_o he_o have_v bid_v they_o look_v for_o after_o he_o for_o in_o the_o xviii_o of_o deuteronomy_n he_o tell_v they_o from_o god_n himself_o ver_fw-la 17._o that_o there_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o they_o a_o prophet_n like_o unto_o he_o into_o who_o mouth_n ver_fw-la 18._o the_o lord_n will_v put_v his_o own_o word_n and_o who_o shall_v speak_v all_o that_o he_o shall_v command_v he_o unto_o he_o shall_v you_o harken_v ver_fw-la 15._o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v be_v sure_o you_o attend_v to_o his_o word_n and_o give_v obedience_n to_o they_o now_o these_o very_a word_n and_o syllable_n hear_v he_o be_v by_o that_o god_n who_o make_v that_o promise_n to_o moses_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n to_o the_o disciple_n with_o a_o manifest_a application_n to_o jesus_n clear_o denote_v he_o to_o be_v the_o person_n who_o moses_n foretell_v the_o lord_n their_o god_n will_v send_v to_o declare_v his_o mind_n unto_o they_o as_o he_o himself_o already_o have_v do_v and_o that_o this_o be_v real_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n as_o much_o as_o that_o voice_n which_o speak_v to_o moses_n we_o have_v the_o great_a reason_n to_o conclude_v from_o this_o follow_v which_o be_v the_o four_o observation_n that_o moses_n now_o stand_v by_o and_o hear_v it_o and_o from_o thence_o learn_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o he_o know_v when_o he_o write_v his_o book_n that_o this_o person_n of_o who_o he_o speak_v be_v more_o than_o a_o prophet_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n dear_a love_n for_o these_o word_n which_o declare_v he_o so_o be_v speak_v there_o where_o he_o be_v present_a who_o dare_v not_o contradict_v they_o as_o sure_o he_o will_v have_v do_v have_v he_o not_o know_v they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a voice_n of_o god_n and_o no_o delusion_n i_o need_v not_o enlarge_v this_o because_o the_o evangelist_n tell_v we_o so_o plain_o that_o not_o only_o he_o appear_v in_o glory_n talk_v with_o our_o saviour_n upon_o this_o mountain_n but_o elias_n also_o accompany_v he_o which_o be_v next_o to_o be_v consider_v who_o be_v a_o great_a prophet_n may_v pretend_v as_o fair_o as_o any_o other_o man_n to_o be_v the_o person_n design_v by_o moses_n in_o the_o word_n forenamed_a and_o yet_o consent_v by_o his_o silence_n to_o the_o same_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o moses_n be_v not_o till_o now_o fufil_v but_o have_v its_o utmost_a completion_n in_o jesus_n and_o indeed_o this_o voice_n from_o heaven_n make_v such_o a_o open_a proclamation_n concern_v jesus_n before_o he_o that_o give_v the_o law_n and_o before_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o prophet_n who_o have_v assert_v it_o and_o be_v hear_v by_o they_o with_o the_o profound_a silence_n without_o any_o contradiction_n it_o do_v as_o good_a as_o tell_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v be_v assure_v this_o be_v he_o of_o who_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v who_o they_o be_v now_o to_o give_v ear_n unto_o and_o that_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n must_v from_o henceforth_o give_v way_n to_o a_o high_a revelation_n from_o god_n by_o this_o jesus_n if_o this_o have_v not_o be_v true_a we_o can_v but_o think_v that_o this_o great_a zealot_n elias_n who_o have_v be_v always_o so_o jealous_a for_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n 1_o king_n nineteeen_o 14._o and_o this_o trusty_a servant_n of_o god_n moses_n who_o be_v so_o faithful_a in_o all_o his_o house_n twelve_o num._n 7._o will_v have_v present_o enter_v their_o protestation_n against_o it_o and_o require_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o give_v heed_n only_o to_o their_o voice_n but_o not_o to_o this_o which_o now_o may_v the_o rather_o be_v believe_v to_o come_v from_o heaven_n because_o these_o inspire_a person_n reverence_v it_o and_o dare_v not_o venture_v in_o the_o least_o to_o speak_v against_o it_o when_o they_o be_v high_o concern_v so_o to_o do_v if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v ask_v how_o these_o disciple_n can_v tell_v that_o these_o two_o be_v moses_n and_o elias_n who_o they_o never_o see_v i_o think_v theophylact_fw-mi have_v well_o resolve_v it_o that_o they_o know_v they_o not_o by_o their_o face_n but_o by_o their_o discourse_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o person_n live_v in_o far_o distant_a country_n know_v to_o other_o mere_o by_o their_o work_n and_o manner_n of_o writing_n have_v after_o a_o little_a converse_n at_o a_o unexpected_a meeting_n be_v challenge_v by_o the_o name_n that_o their_o book_n carry_v without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o note_a character_n in_o their_o face_n to_o distinguish_v they_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a than_o the_o story_n of_o erasmus_n who_o his_o friend_n here_o in_o england_n greet_v by_o his_o name_n after_o a_o few_o repartee_n pass_v between_o they_o though_o he_o have_v never_o see_v he_o and_o little_a thought_n then_o to_o embrace_v he_o now_o we_o be_v express_o tell_v by_o all_o the_o three_o evangelist_n that_o moses_n and_o elias_n talk_v with_o jesus_n and_o by_o s._n luke_n that_o their_o discourse_n be_v concern_v his_o decease_n or_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n which_o he_o shall_v accomplish_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a of_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v to_o follow_v it_o by_o his_o resurrection_n which_o conference_n the_o apostle_n hear_v they_o may_v easy_o know_v though_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o their_o picture_n which_o many_o of_o that_o nation_n hold_v it_o unlawful_a to_o be_v make_v yet_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o their_o word_n and_o discourse_n wherein_o either_o jesus_n or_o they_o before_o it_o be_v do_v have_v occasion_n to_o mention_v their_o name_n or_o their_o office_n or_o to_o describe_v their_o person_n that_o they_o be_v none_o else_o but_o those_o two_o man_n who_o then_o appear_v to_o they_o and_o it_o be_v possible_a as_o theophylact_fw-mi add_v that_o moses_n may_v say_v i_o acknowledge_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o person_n who_o death_n i_o prefigure_v by_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v slay_v at_o the_o passeover_n and_o elias_n may_v join_v with_o he_o and_o say_v thou_o be_v he_o who_o resurrection_n i_o do_v likewise_o fore-show_a by_o call_v again_o the_o widow_n son_n to_o life_n some_o such_o kind_n of_o discourse_n we_o may_v reasonable_o conceive_v pass_v between_o they_o whereby_o they_o discover_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o one_o the_o lawgiver_n the_o other_o the_o noble_a of_o all_o the_o prophet_n who_o now_o come_v to_o wait_v upon_o jesus_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v great_a than_o they_o as_o the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n present_o testify_v which_o declare_v he_o the_o belove_a son_n of_o god_n to_o who_o now_o all_o must_v attend_v as_o they_o have_v former_o do_v to_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v very_o remarkable_a which_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n i_o shall_v observe_v that_o no_o soon_o be_v this_o voice_n hear_v but_o moses_n and_o elias_n vanish_v and_o be_v see_v no_o more_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o jesus_n alone_o be_v now_o to_o be_v hear_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n be_v go_v and_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o only_o to_o serve_v he_o so_o s._n mark_n relate_v ix_o 8._o that_o sudden_o when_o they_o have_v look_v round_o about_o after_o the_o hear_n of_o this_o voice_n they_o see_v no_o man_n any_o more_o save_v jesus_n only_o with_o themselves_o they_o turn_v their_o eye_n every_o way_n to_o look_v for_o moses_n and_o elias_n but_o there_o be_v no_o further_a news_n of_o they_o nay_o s._n luke_n tell_v we_o ix_o 36._o that_o in_o the_o very_o utter_v of_o the_o voice_n from_o that_o heavenly_a glory_n they_o disappear_v so_o those_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d plain_o signify_v while_o the_o voice_n be_v speak_v jesus_n be_v find_v alone_o the_o clould_n out_o of_o which_o it_o come_v cover_v they_o and_o take_v they_o into_o it_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o open_v itself_o to_o manifest_v he_o and_o to_o obscure_v they_o that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_a
the_o voice_n speak_v of_o he_o alone_o and_o none_o else_o there_o be_v no_o body_n but_o he_o to_o be_v see_v by_o his_o disciple_n when_o it_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n so_o you_o read_v in_o all_o the_o evangelist_n that_o the_o cloud_n which_o appear_v over-shadowed_n they_o viz._n moses_n and_o elias_n whereupon_o the_o disciple_n be_v afraid_a as_o s._n luke_n tell_v we_o ix_o 34._o as_o they_o that_o be_v moses_n and_o elias_n enter_v ●●to_o the_o cloud_n imagine_v it_o be_v like_a that_o it_o will_v approach_v near_o and_o spread_v itself_o over_o they_o who_o dread_v to_o enter_v into_o it_o as_o they_o see_v those_o two_o person_n do_v but_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n it_o only_o part_v moses_n and_o elias_n from_o jesus_n and_o leave_v he_o alone_o and_o then_o come_v the_o voice_n out_o of_o that_o cloud_n where_o moses_n and_o elias_n be_v with_o god_n give_v their_o assent_n to_o what_o it_o say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n hear_v he_o he_o i_o say_v non_fw-fr mosen_n jam_fw-la &_o eliam_fw-la as_o tertullian_n 22._o tertullian_n l._n 4._o adv_n marc._n c._n 22._o i_o now_o observe_v interpret_v it_o not_o moses_n and_o elias_n who_o be_v show_v as_o his_o language_n be_v in_o the_o prerogative_n of_o brightness_n and_o then_o dismiss_v as_o be_v now_o discharge_v both_o of_o their_o office_n and_o of_o their_o honour_n thus_o i_o have_v brief_o explain_v the_o second_o testimony_n which_o god_n the_o father_n give_v he_o in_o the_o audience_n of_o three_o of_o his_o disciple_n who_o have_v a_o vision_n also_o at_o the_o same_o time_n of_o the_o glory_n wherein_o he_o be_v to_o shine_v after_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n to_o which_o testimony_n our_o saviour_n will_v not_o have_v those_o disciple_n as_o yet_o to_o add_v they_o but_o to_o keep_v this_o as_o a_o secret_a till_o he_o be_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a xvii_o matth._n 9_o it_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o father_n alone_o to_o speak_v now_o from_o who_o they_o be_v to_o learn_v what_o jesus_n be_v that_o be_v full_o satisfy_v they_o may_v be_v the_o better_a able_a to_o speak_v of_o he_o then_o upon_o their_o own_o knowledge_n who_o have_v be_v eye_n and_o ear-witness_n of_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o god_n the_o father_n when_o there_o come_v such_o a_o voice_n to_o he_o from_o the_o excellent_a glory_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v and_o this_o voice_n s._n peter_n i_o tell_v you_o open_o aver_v 2_o i_o 17_o 18._o he_o and_o other_o hear_v when_o they_o be_v with_o he_o in_o the_o holy_a mount_n but_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v be_v so_o suspicious_a and_o distrustful_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o three_o person_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o beget_v belief_n in_o we_o of_o such_o a_o wonderful_a thing_n as_o this_o be_v that_o god_n declare_v jesus_n to_o be_v his_o son_n though_o there_o be_v no_o just_a reason_n to_o doubt_v of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v establish_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o but_o two_o good_a witness_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o condescension_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n that_o he_o be_v please_v a_o little_a before_o our_o saviour_n decease_n which_o moses_n and_o elias_n speak_v of_o to_o give_v his_o testimony_n to_o he_o again_o and_o to_o declare_v this_o more_o public_o which_o be_v short_o to_o be_v proclaim_v in_o all_o the_o world_n iii_o for_o this_o three_o voice_n which_o the_o father_n be_v please_v to_o send_v from_o heaven_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o he_o be_v not_o hear_v by_o so_o few_o as_o two_o or_o three_o but_o by_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n which_o make_v our_o belief_n of_o this_o truth_n to_o rely_v still_o upon_o sure_a ground_n for_o you_o read_v in_o the_o twelve_o john_n 1_o 2_o etc._n etc._n that_o a_o great_a company_n of_o people_n have_v hear_v what_o a_o miracle_n our_o saviour_n have_v wrought_v upon_o lazarus_n who_o he_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a a_o little_a before_o at_o a_o neighbour_a town_n flock_v out_o of_o jerusalem_n to_o meet_v he_o as_o he_o be_v come_v thither_o to_o the_o seast_z of_o the_o passeover_n and_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o be_v that_o king_n of_o israel_n who_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n have_v promise_v to_o send_v in_o his_o name_n they_o meet_v he_o with_o palm_n of_o joy_n and_o triumph_v in_o their_o hand_n and_o with_o the_o loud_a acclamation_n of_o praise_n in_o their_o mouth_n spread_v their_o garment_n also_o in_o the_o way_n as_o other_o evangelist_n tell_v we_o to_o do_v he_o the_o great_a honour_n and_o wish_v he_o all_o prosperity_n in_o his_o new_a kingdom_n in_o this_o crowd_n or_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n who_o be_v come_v to_o worship_n at_o the_o feast_n there_o be_v certain_a greek_n as_o you_o read_v ver_fw-la 20._o who_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v jesus_n who_o the_o multitude_n thus_o magnify_v and_o it_o be_v likely_a wish_v to_o have_v some_o proof_n give_v they_o that_o he_o be_v such_o a_o person_n as_o fame_n report_v he_o now_o the_o first_o thing_n our_o saviour_n answer_v to_o those_o who_o present_v they_o to_o he_o which_o must_v be_v diligent_o note_v be_v that_o ere_o long_o he_o shall_v be_v glorify_v but_o first_o he_o must_v take_v the_o cross_n in_o his_o way_n and_o then_o the_o glory_n he_o shall_v attain_v thereby_o will_v be_v exceed_o great_a for_o his_o death_n will_v produce_v most_o precious_a fruit_n and_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o enlarge_a his_o kingdom_n and_o bring_v innumerable_a such_o gentile_n as_o these_o be_v unto_o god_n ver_fw-la 23_o 24._o and_o thereupon_o he_o persuade_v his_o disciple_n ver_fw-la 25_o 26._o to_o adventure_v their_o life_n according_a to_o his_o example_n for_o the_o good_a of_o mankind_n which_o will_v redound_v also_o very_o much_o to_o their_o own_o honour_n as_o they_o may_v see_v already_o in_o moses_n and_o elias_n who_o appear_v s._n chrysostom_n think_v for_o this_o end_n among_o other_o to_o strengthen_v and_o encourage_v their_o christian_a resolution_n in_o their_o suffering_n matth._n suffering_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hom._n 56._o in_o matth._n but_o shall_v be_v more_o full_o satisfy_v when_o they_o see_v he_o ascend_v to_o that_o glory_n after_o his_o suffering_n of_o which_o they_o have_v behold_v but_o a_o shadow_n when_o those_o two_o illustrious_a person_n come_v to_o wait_v upon_o he_o a_o difficult_a work_n indeed_o it_o be_v at_o the_o thought_n of_o which_o he_o himself_o can_v not_o but_o be_v something_o sad_a ver_fw-la 27._o and_o wish_v according_a to_o the_o inclination_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v some_o other_o way_n if_o god_n please_v to_o deliver_v mankind_n but_o since_o he_o have_v send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n for_o this_o end_n that_o he_o shall_v lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o our_o redemption_n he_o resolve_v present_o to_o submit_v to_o god_n and_o desire_v only_o this_o one_o thing_n of_o he_o ver_fw-la 28._o father_n glorify_v thy_o name_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v i_o know_v thou_o be_v my_o father_z and_o since_o it_o be_v thy_o pleasure_n to_o which_o i_o will_v always_o submit_v behold_v i_o offer_v myself_o now_o to_o be_v a_o instrument_n of_o thy_o glory_n by_o my_o passion_n as_o i_o have_v be_v hitherto_o by_o my_o preach_n and_o the_o work_v thou_o have_v do_v by_o my_o hand_n i_o be_o content_a to_o receive_v the_o glory_n which_o i_o expect_v and_o just_a now_o tell_v my_o disciple_n i_o shall_v receive_v in_o this_o way_n of_o humble_a suffering_n thy_o will_n and_o pleasure_n i_o be_o desirous_a thou_o shall_v first_o be_v glorify_v and_o if_o my_o death_n will_v serve_v that_o end_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o part_v with_o my_o life_n for_o i_o know_v thou_o will_v be_v much_o more_o glorify_v by_o my_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n there_o be_v no_o reasonable_a doubt_n to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o interpretation_n for_o they_o glorify_v god_n most_o remarkable_o who_o die_v for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n xxi_o john_n 19_o it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o he_o that_o they_o love_v he_o more_o than_o their_o life_n and_o will_v take_v his_o word_n for_o their_o recompense_n in_o a_o invisible_a world_n this_o our_o saviour_n himself_o call_v god_n be_v glorify_v in_o he_o xiii_o john_n 31._o and_o therefore_o i_o make_v no_o question_n he_o desire_v here_o that_o his_o father_n name_n may_v be_v glorify_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n now_o to_o this_o humble_a request_n of_o he_o god_n the_o father_n reply_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v i_o have_v both_o glorify_v it_o and_o will_v glorify_v
to_o the_o throne_n of_o thy_o glory_n in_o heaven_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o mankind_n with_o all_o the_o love_n they_o have_v be_v too_o small_a a_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o thou_o who_o love_n be_v like_o thyself_o far_o beyond_o all_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o express_v o_o that_o our_o love_n and_o affection_n to_o thou_o be_v so_o likewise_o a_o most_o grateful_a resentment_n of_o thy_o kindness_n to_o we_o great_a than_o can_v be_v utter_v o_o that_o our_o mind_n and_o will_n to_o make_v some_o poor_a expression_n of_o their_o thankfulness_n may_v most_o humble_o bow_v themselves_o and_o perfect_o stoop_v to_o thou_o who_o have_v thus_o gracious_o condescend_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v with_o the_o most_o thankful_a heart_n receive_v thy_o testimony_n concern_v thy_o son_n sincere_o reverence_v he_o as_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o obedient_o hearken_v to_o his_o voice_n believe_v his_o revelation_n follow_v his_o instruction_n submit_v to_o his_o precept_n and_o rejoice_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o precious_a promise_n there_o be_v all_o reason_n that_o we_o shall_v thus_o study_v to_o approve_v ourselves_o to_o thou_o and_o it_o be_v our_o interest_n also_o to_o be_v careful_a to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n as_o our_o saviour_n do_v that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n at_o present_a and_o a_o joyful_a hope_n to_o be_v open_o commend_v and_o praise_v by_o thou_o hereafter_o when_o we_o shall_v hear_v that_o voice_n of_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n call_v to_o we_o and_o say_v come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n amen_n chap._n iii_o concern_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v time_n now_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o next_o witness_n which_o be_v the_o word_n and_o to_o weigh_v the_o evidence_n which_o he_o give_v concern_v jesus_n that_o be_v concern_v he_o who_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n and_o call_v by_o that_o name_n who_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o we_o shall_v find_v his_o testimony_n as_o full_a and_o as_o strong_a as_o the_o former_a to_o verify_v this_o when_o we_o have_v in_o a_o few_o word_n according_a to_o my_o intend_a brevity_n declare_v who_o this_o word_n be_v who_o now_o come_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v hear_v as_o a_o witness_n for_o jesus_n and_o we_o be_v tell_v by_o this_o very_a apostle_n in_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o his_o gospel_n that_o the_o word_n be_v a_o divine_a be_v which_o have_v a_o subsistence_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o he_o be_v then_o with_o god_n the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v god_n that_o be_v god_n of_o god_n the_o father_n to_o who_o he_o have_v such_o a_o relation_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o s._n greg._n nazianzen_n as_o a_o word_n or_o inward_a thought_n have_v to_o the_o mind_n not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o generation_n 36._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d orat._n 36._o without_o any_o passion_n but_o because_o of_o his_o intimate_a conjunction_n with_o he_o and_o of_o his_o power_n to_o declare_v he_o for_o the_o father_n be_v know_v by_o the_o son_n who_o be_v a_o brief_a and_o easy_a demonstration_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n as_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v beget_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o silent_a word_n of_o that_o which_o beget_v it_o now_o this_o word_n who_o the_o ancient_n call_v the_o eternal_a reason_n the_o wisdom_n the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n s._n john_n there_o tell_v we_o ver_fw-la 14._o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o become_v so_o relate_v to_o that_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n as_o to_o dwell_v in_o he_o and_o be_v make_v one_o with_o he_o a_o mystery_n as_o gregory_n thaumaturgus_n excellent_o speak_v innunc_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n serm._n 3._o in_o innunc_fw-la which_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v not_o scrupulous_o and_o nice_o weigh_v to_o be_v discourse_v of_o in_o divine_a word_n not_o measure_v by_o humane_a reason_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o of_o it_o but_o that_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o afterward_o the_o whole_a person_n god-man_n be_v call_v the_o word_n as_o you_o read_v in_o the_o very_a entrance_n of_o this_o epistle_n of_o s._n john_n where_o the_o word_n be_v describe_v to_o be_v such_o a_o person_n as_o may_v be_v see_v and_o feel_v and_o handle_v as_o well_o as_o hear_v and_o he_o be_v very_o proper_o call_v by_o this_o name_n because_o it_o be_v his_o office_n to_o declare_v the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n to_o man_n as_o we_o by_o our_o speech_n declare_v we_o one_o to_o another_o which_o otherways_o we_o can_v not_o know_v for_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n i._n john_n 18._o the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o in_o these_o word_n we_o have_v a_o plain_a and_o full_a account_n why_o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o mere_o because_o he_o have_v reveal_v to_o we_o the_o counsel_n and_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n for_o so_o do_v the_o ancient_a prophet_n and_o the_o holy_a apostle_n but_o first_o because_o he_o be_v the_o immediate_a interpreter_n of_o the_o divine_a mind_n and_o will_n as_o the_o word_n which_o we_o speak_v be_v of_o we_o for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o very_a bosom_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v know_v his_o mind_n not_o by_o the_o instruction_n of_o a_o angel_n not_o by_o vision_n or_o dream_n nor_o only_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o by_o a_o more_o intimate_a discovery_n of_o god_n counsel_n and_o purpose_n to_o he_o as_o a_o person_n that_o be_v one_o with_o he_o we_o can_v understand_v less_o by_o his_o be_v in_o his_o father_n bosom_n which_o be_v a_o phrase_n that_o signify_v he_o have_v the_o near_a familiarity_n with_o he_o and_o be_v privy_a to_o his_o most_o secret_a counsel_n which_o he_o be_v able_a also_o to_o accomplish_v and_o bring_v to_o pass_v and_o for_o that_o reason_n which_o be_v the_o second_o may_v be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o he_o have_v such_o a_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o at_o his_o word_n or_o command_v all_o thing_n be_v present_o do_v according_a to_o his_o will_n for_o jesus_n be_v represent_v you_o may_v observe_v in_o a_o vision_n to_o s._n john_n as_o the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n clothe_v in_o a_o purple_a i.e._n a_o royal_a robe_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 13_o nineteeen_o rev._n 13_o after_o he_o have_v do_v publish_v god_n mind_n and_o will_n and_o be_v then_o only_o execute_v some_o of_o his_o decree_n by_o that_o power_n which_o he_o have_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n a_o power_n so_o great_a that_o he_o can_v by_o his_o word_n alone_o as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v in_o other_o case_n of_o god_n almighty_n xxxiii_o psalm_n 6._o without_o any_o visible_a mean_n to_o effect_v it_o compass_v his_o end_n and_o fulfil_v what_o he_o have_v speak_v either_o in_o his_o threat_n or_o promise_n and_o last_o the_o article_n before_o this_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n denote_v he_o to_o be_v the_o person_n to_o who_o this_o title_n so_o particular_o and_o eminent_o belong_v that_o it_o can_v be_v give_v to_o none_o else_o because_o he_o have_v most_o perfect_o declare_v god_n mind_n and_o will_n to_o we_o and_o reveal_v to_o we_o all_o his_o secret_a purpose_n concern_v we_o in_o the_o full_a manner_n that_o can_v be_v and_o have_v a_o power_n far_o surmount_v all_o creature_n to_o do_v every_o thing_n as_o he_o have_v declare_v and_o thus_o i_o suppose_v we_o be_v to_o take_v the_o word_n in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n that_o be_v for_o jesus_n himself_o who_o manifest_v his_o own_o greatness_n and_o glory_n as_o you_o have_v begin_v to_o discern_v already_o and_o bare_a witness_n concern_v himself_o in_o a_o very_a eminent_a and_o glorious_a manner_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o you_o must_v not_o expect_v that_o i_o shall_v here_o produce_v all_o the_o demonstration_n which_o he_o give_v of_o this_o truth_n from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o come_v to_o dwell_v among_o we_o no_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v now_o speak_v of_o those_o witness_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o thence_o give_v their_o testimony_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o at_o present_a seek_v for_o any_o
other_o be_v say_v to_o have_v see_v god_n who_o behold_v some_o very_a bright_a appearance_n a_o extraordinary_a light_n shine_v before_o their_o eye_n which_o excel_v all_o that_o ever_o they_o have_v see_v or_o can_v imagine_v and_o be_v the_o token_n of_o the_o divine_a presence_n thus_o moses_n be_v afraid_a to_o look_v upon_o god_n iii._o exod._n 6._o and_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n be_v say_v to_o see_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n xxiv_o 20._o which_o place_v maimonides_n think_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o the_o text_n be_v plain_o against_o he_o which_o tell_v we_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a appearance_n of_o some_o unusual_a astonish_a brightness_n and_o therefore_o he_o confess_v that_o if_o any_o man_n do_v conceive_v those_o word_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v of_o some_o create_a light_n as_o he_o speak_v place_n speak_v more_n nevoch_n part._n 1._o cap._n 5._o and_o many_o other_o place_n that_o be_v the_o visible_a apparition_n of_o a_o divine_a majesty_n or_o of_o a_o angel_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n in_o such_o a_o apprehension_n and_o indeed_o no_o man_n can_v serious_o read_v the_o book_n of_o moses_n but_o he_o will_v see_v plain_o they_o speak_v of_o a_o sensible_a glory_n which_o be_v exceed_v dazzle_a and_o sometime_o too_o great_a for_o the_o weak_a eye_n of_o man_n to_o behold_v i_o have_v describe_v it_o before_o when_o i_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o flame_a light_n which_o shine_v from_o that_o amaze_a devour_a fire_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n thus_o abarbanel_n expound_v that_o place_n i_o mention_v before_o xuj_o exod._n 7._o in_o the_o morning_n than_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o provide_v they_o bread_n or_o flesh_n in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n but_o of_o the_o fire_n which_o appear_v to_o all_o the_o people_n to_o reprove_v and_o punish_v they_o for_o their_o murmur_n and_o so_o lyra_n say_v it_o be_v a_o unusual_a refulgent_a brightness_n or_o lightning_n represent_v the_o divine_a power_n ready_a to_o chastise_v they_o for_o their_o mutiny_n against_o his_o servant_n and_o it_o be_v very_o common_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o cal●_n such_o a_o great_a splendour_n by_o the_o name_n of_o glory_n as_o the_o shine_a of_o moses_n his_o face_n i●_n call_v by_o s._n paul_n 2_o cor._n three_o 7._o the_o glory_n 〈◊〉_d his_o countenance_n and_o in_o the_o same_o stile_n he●_n speak_v of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o heavenly_a body_n when_o he_o say_v 1_o cor._n xv_o 41._o there_o be_v on●_n glory_n of_o the_o sun_n another_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o another_o glory_n of_o the_o star_n for_o one_o star_n differ_v from_o another_o star_n in_o glory_n that_o be_v in_o the_o brightness_n and_o splendour_n of_o its_o light_n such_o a_o glory_n it_o be_v that_o now_o s._n steven_n behold_v but_o far_o more_o splendid_a more_o pure_a and_o illustrious_a than_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o any_o other_o that_o have_v be_v mention_v which_o be_v a_o representation_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n who_o use_v in_o this_o manner_n to_o make_v man_n sensible_a of_o his_o transcendent_a invisible_a glory_n and_o there_o in_o the_o divine_a presence_n he_o see_v our_o lord_n in_o the_o most_o high_a and_o honourable_a place_n next_o to_o god_n the_o father_n himself_o for_o that_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o appear_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n or_o of_o that_o great_a glory_n he_o see_v in_o the_o heaven_n the_o right_a hand_n be_v the_o principal_a place_n belong_v to_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n when_o he_o appear_v together_o with_o the_o king_n his_o father_n and_o therefore_o the_o divine_a writer_n to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v there_o never_o be_v any_o angel_n see_v there_o they_o only_o stand_v or_o minister_v before_o god_n or_o before_o his_o throne_n but_o to_o which_o of_o they_o do_v he_o say_v at_o any_o time_n sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n i._o hebr._fw-la 13._o this_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n alone_o the_o great_a king_n the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o glory_n the_o psalmist_n describe_v in_o that_o place_n cx_o psal_n 1._o from_o whence_o these_o word_n be_v cite_v that_o be_v prophecy_n of_o his_o kingly_a power_n in_o the_o heaven_n as_o s._n paul_n clear_o expound_v this_o phrase_n of_o sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n 1_o cor._n xv_o 25._o for_o he_o must_v reign_v till_o he_o have_v put_v all_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n he_o be_v a_o king_n and_o he_o reign_v and_o he_o have_v a_o throne_n i._n hebr._fw-la 8._o but_o when_o he_o be_v compare_v with_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o when_o he_o appear_v together_o with_o he_o to_o show_v that_o he_o reign_v under_o he_o and_o for_o he_o he_o be_v represent_v as_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n or_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n for_o so_o his_o kingly_a power_n be_v express_v in_o other_o place_n he_o be_v set_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o heaven_n hebr._n viij_o 1._o twelve_o 2._o that_o be_v he_o reign_v together_o with_o god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o celestial_a glory_n for_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n signify_v in_o the_o scripture_n phrase_n as_o the_o forename_a maimonides_n observe_v that_o place_n where_o god_n majesty_n manifest_v itself_o in_o a_o visible_a splendour_n and_o glory_n the_o sit_v of_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o that_o throne_n or_o that_o glory_n denote_v nothing_o else_o but_o his_o be_v seat_v in_o the_o high_a honour_n that_o can_v be_v give_v to_o any_o one_o in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n next_o in_o greatness_n power_n and_o majesty_n to_o god_n himself_o under_o who_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o angel_n and_o man_n and_o all_o creature_n there_o be_v nothing_o of_o which_o this_o holy_a martyr_n be_v more_o assure_v to_o who_o this_o heavenly_a king_n appear_v not_o in_o his_o usual_a posture_n of_o sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n as_o one_o possess_v of_o his_o royal_a power_n but_o stand_v there_o as_o if_o he_o be_v minister_a in_o the_o heavenly_a sanctuary_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o royal_a high-priest_n for_o that_o be_v the_o posture_n of_o those_o that_o minister_v in_o the_o temple_n cxxxiu_o psal_n 1._o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o all_o christian_a people_n and_o of_o himself_o especial_o or_o rather_o as_o ready_a to_o come_v to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o those_o implacable_a enemy_n who_o have_v kill_v he_o and_o now_o persecute_v his_o servant_n which_o be_v a_o notable_a instance_n of_o his_o royal_a power_n at_o god_n right_a hand_n for_o there_o the_o psalmist_n say_v he_o must_v reign_v till_o he_o have_v subdue_v all_o those_o that_o oppose_v his_o authority_n and_o tread_v they_o under_o his_o foot_n and_o as_o for_o the_o second_o enquiry_n how_o he_o can_v know_v this_o to_o be_v jesus_n who_o he_o see_v in_o this_o heavenly_a majesty_n it_o be_v easy_o resolve_v that_o he_o appear_v to_o he_o with_o such_o a_o countenance_n as_o he_o have_v here_o upon_o earth_n only_o more_o shine_a and_o bright_a as_o be_v now_o in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o so_o he_o tell_v the_o jew_n i_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o very_a person_n he_o mean_v who_o use_v to_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o man_n who_o you_o crucify_v and_o dishonourable_o treat_v i_o now_o see_v so_o exalt_v that_o i_o have_v rather_o die_v as_o he_o do_v than_o not_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o he_o say_v he_o be_v when_o he_o die_v this_o be_v the_o first_o testimony_n which_o be_v give_v to_o this_o truth_n by_o the_o word_n who_o bear_v witness_n in_o a_o most_o illustrious_a manner_n to_o himself_o when_o he_o appear_v thus_o to_o a_o person_n of_o the_o great_a credit_n in_o the_o divine_a glory_n and_o in_o the_o high_a place_n of_o celestial_a dignity_n as_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v and_o rise_v up_o from_o his_o throne_n as_o if_o he_o be_v come_v to_o be_v avenge_v of_o his_o adversary_n to_o succour_v all_o his_o servant_n and_o to_o welcome_v this_o martyr_n into_o glory_n with_o himself_o so_o s._n steven_n very_o think_v for_o he_o resign_v up_o his_o soul_n to_o jesus_n with_o the_o same_o confidence_n and_o almost_o in_o the_o same_o word_n that_o jesus_n give_v up_o he_o to_o god_n the_o
that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n able_a to_o reward_v his_o patient_a servant_n and_o moreover_o send_v letter_n by_o he_o to_o several_a church_n of_o the_o saint_n testify_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n which_o he_o make_v he_o see_v and_o hear_v in_o several_a vision_n they_o be_v record_v in_o that_o book_n which_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o very_a first_o word_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o send_v and_o signify_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o angel_n to_o his_o servant_n john_n who_o have_v already_o bear_v record_n so_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o be_v render_v for_o 2._o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o see_v have_v declare_v that_o be_v in_o his_o gospel_n jesus_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o make_v know_v that_o which_o he_o testify_v to_o be_v god_n will_v concern_v man_n together_o with_o all_o the_o evidence_n by_o miracle_n and_o other_o way_n which_o he_o have_v see_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o jesus_n testify_v there_o can_v not_o be_v a_o fit_a person_n than_o he_o who_o perhaps_o also_o be_v the_o only_a apostle_n now_o remain_v in_o the_o world_n to_o hold_v communication_n with_o this_o word_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v new_a revelation_n from_o jesus_n he_o be_v at_o this_o time_n likewise_o banish_v and_o confine_v to_o the_o isle_n which_o be_v call_v patmos_n ver_fw-la 9_o for_o the_o cause_n now_o name_v that_o be_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o this_o lonesome_a place_n separate_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o earth_n our_o lord_n open_v heaven_n to_o he_o and_o show_v he_o the_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v there_o for_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o rapture_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n ver_fw-la 10._o and_o hear_v one_o speak_v behind_o he_o with_o a_o voice_n as_o loud_o as_o a_o trumpet_n say_v i_o be_o before_o and_o after_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o write_v what_o thou_o see_v in_o a_o book_n and_o send_v it_o to_o the_o seven_o church_n which_o be_v in_o asia_n who_o name_n be_v there_o express_v ver_fw-la 11._o whereupon_o he_o turn_v about_o to_o see_v whence_o this_o voice_n come_v and_o then_o he_o behold_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n represent_v those_o church_n a_o very_a glorious_a person_n appear_v in_o the_o most_o royal_a majesty_n and_o power_n he_o do_v not_o ask_v he_o as_o s._n paul_n do_v who_o he_o be_v for_o he_o have_v be_v long_o acquaint_v heretofore_o with_o that_o countenance_n and_o know_v he_o perfect_o well_o to_o be_v our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o by_o his_o very_a habit_n wherein_o he_o appear_v declare_v himself_o to_o be_v as_o he_o have_v say_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o who_o have_v no_o superior_a nor_o any_o second_o in_o that_o kingdom_n which_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o but_o dispose_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o sole_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n for_o he_o behold_v he_o clothe_v with_o a_o garment_n down_o to_o the_o foot_n and_o gird_v about_o the_o pap_n with_o a_o golden_a girdle_n etc._n etc._n ver_fw-la 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o he_o see_v that_o be_v as_o irenaeus_n true_o express_v it_o 37._o l._n 4._o cap._n 37._o sacerdotalem_fw-la &_o gloriosum_fw-la regni_fw-la ejus_fw-la adventum_fw-la he_o appear_v in_o his_o priestly_a and_o glorious_a kingdom_n for_o a_o long_a robe_n and_o a_o golden_a girdle_n belong_v both_o to_o king_n and_o to_o the_o highpriest_n in_o the_o jewish_a nation_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o description_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v be_v a_o plain_a representation_n of_o a_o person_n shine_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o invest_v with_o such_o a_o irresistible_a power_n in_o the_o heaven_n as_o may_v justy_a make_v all_o his_o friend_n rejoice_v who_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n most_o high_a and_o all_o his_o enemy_n quake_v and_o tremble_v who_o oppose_v his_o sovereign_a authority_n in_o short_a so_o glorious_a be_v the_o sight_n that_o s._n john_n himself_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v it_o but_o when_o he_o see_v he_o fall_v at_o his_o foot_n as_o dead_a ver_fw-la 17._o till_o the_o word_n as_o irenaeus_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o place_n on_o who_o breast_n he_o have_v repose_v himself_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n revive_v and_o comfort_v he_o with_o these_o gracious_a word_n fear_v not_o i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o i_o be_o he_o that_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a and_o behold_v i_o be_o alive_a for_o evermore_o amen_n and_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o of_o death_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v thou_o be_v not_o deceive_v when_o thou_o think_v thou_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n appear_v to_o thou_o it_o be_v i_o indeed_o therefore_o be_v not_o so_o afraid_a though_o now_o thou_o behold_v i_o in_o such_o heavenly_a majesty_n and_o divine_a glory_n for_o thou_o ought_v rather_o to_o rejoice_v to_o think_v that_o i_o be_o the_o eternal_a god_n i_o who_o thou_o know_v when_o i_o live_v upon_o earth_n and_o who_o thou_o see_v shameful_o put_v to_o death_n be_o now_o alive_a as_o thou_o see_v also_o never_o to_o die_v any_o more_o and_o be_o entrust_v with_o a_o power_n to_o rescue_v you_o from_o death_n and_o raise_v you_o out_o of_o your_o grave_n it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o if_o i_o shall_v tell_v you_o all_o that_o he_o say_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o those_o church_n to_o assert_v his_o title_n to_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o he_o express_o take_v to_o himself_o in_o one_o of_o they_o two_o rev._n 18_o and_o to_o declare_v his_o royal_a power_n which_o he_o exercise_v in_o all_o the_o world_n especial_o in_o his_o church_n the_o house_n of_o the_o live_a god_n where_o he_o have_v such_o a_o absolute_a authority_n express_v by_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n etc._n etc._n iii._o 7._o that_o none_o can_v contradict_v he_o either_o by_o preserve_v any_o man_n in_o the_o divine_a favour_n if_o he_o reject_v he_o or_o by_o exclude_v any_o man_n from_o it_o if_o he_o receive_v he_o it_o may_v suffice_v to_o observe_v these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o letter_n but_o it_o begin_v with_o some_o such_o description_n of_o our_o saviour_n sovereign_a majesty_n as_o this_o now_o mention_v for_o the_o character_n he_o have_v give_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n be_v again_o repeat_v by_o part_n in_o the_o follow_a message_n to_o the_o church_n where_o he_o sometime_o call_v himself_o he_o that_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n two_o 1._o that_o be_v inspect_n and_o govern_v they_o sometime_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o which_o be_v dead_a and_o be_v alive_a ver_fw-la 8._o that_o be_v the_o lord_n god_n who_o can_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a who_o part_n with_o his_o life_n for_o i_o and_o to_o name_n no_o more_o he_o call_v himself_o ver_fw-la 12._o he_o that_o have_v the_o sharp_a sword_n with_o two_o edge_n to_o cut_v in_o piece_n either_o they_o or_o their_o enemy_n according_a as_o they_o deserve_v of_o he_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n which_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n to_o be_v observe_v or_o a_o supreme_a governor_n to_o punish_v offender_n and_o to_o reward_v virtuous_a person_n he_o constant_o assume_v both_o these_o power_n to_o himself_o in_o every_o one_o of_o these_o seven_o letter_n tell_v they_o what_o evil_n shall_v befall_v they_o from_o his_o hand_n if_o they_o do_v not_o amend_v and_o what_o blessing_n he_o will_v bestow_v upon_o they_o if_o they_o do_v overcome_v which_o be_v a_o plain_a declaration_n of_o his_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n which_o he_o now_o have_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n there_o s._n john_n see_v he_o in_o a_o second_o vision_n as_o irenaeus_n call_v it_o v._o rev._n 6._o where_o he_o appear_v in_o such_o power_n with_o god_n that_o none_o have_v the_o like_a for_o there_o be_v a_o majesty_n represent_v to_o the_o apostle_n sit_v on_o a_o throne_n with_o a_o book_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n ver_fw-la 1._o which_o none_o can_v open_v or_o read_v or_o so_o much_o as_o look_v into_o and_o then_o behold_v this_o lamb_n of_o god_n who_o have_v be_v slay_v come_v and_o appear_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n be_v the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n as_o one_o of_o the_o elder_n call_v he_o ver_fw-la 5._o that_o royal_a person_n who_o
testimony_n of_o myself_o because_o i_o do_v but_o repeat_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n which_o the_o father_n have_v say_v before_o i_o for_o though_o alone_a as_o i_o have_v confess_v heretofore_o my_o testimony_n of_o myself_o be_v worth_a nothing_o and_o can_v challenge_v belief_n yet_o add_v unto_o so_o high_a a_o testimony_n as_o he_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v due_o regard_v and_o accept_v but_o beside_o this_o i_o must_v add_v another_o consideration_n of_o great_a moment_n which_o be_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o word_n concern_v himself_o now_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o heaven_n be_v of_o great_a validity_n even_o single_o consider_v though_o it_o have_v no_o such_o authority_n alone_o when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n for_o during_o his_o stay_n here_o on_o earth_n it_o can_v not_o appear_v by_o his_o bare_a say_n so_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n because_o he_o be_v in_o a_o poor_a mean_a and_o low_a condition_n altogether_o unlike_o a_o king_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n have_v not_o testify_v so_o much_o none_o can_v have_v believe_v on_o he_o but_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o heaven_n than_o what_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o carry_v great_a authority_n and_o power_n with_o it_o because_o he_o can_v not_o say_v those_o word_n to_o any_o one_o but_o he_o must_v appear_v as_o a_o king_n in_o glory_n there_o be_v thing_n as_o well_o as_o word_n to_o speak_v for_o he_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o bare_a witness_n of_o himself_o they_o to_o who_o he_o speak_v must_v needs_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o testimony_n by_o the_o royal_a state_n and_o majesty_n wherein_o they_o behold_v he_o if_o the_o question_n shall_v be_v whether_o a_o person_n be_v alive_a his_o own_o appear_v in_o court_n will_v be_v the_o best_a testimony_n that_o can_v be_v give_v of_o it_o if_o whether_o such_o a_o one_o be_v a_o king_n his_o sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n with_o his_o crown_n on_o his_o head_n in_o his_o royal_a palace_n and_o his_o minister_n round_o about_o he_o will_v be_v the_o sure_a evidence_n that_o can_v be_v desire_v to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o doubt_n in_o this_o case_n therefore_o where_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o no_o there_o can_v be_v expect_v a_o better_a resolution_n of_o it_o than_o his_o own_o witness_n to_o himself_o by_o appear_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n there_o several_a person_n of_o unblemished_a credit_n behold_v he_o and_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o venture_v their_o life_n upon_o the_o certain_a knowledge_n they_o have_v that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v from_o thence_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o and_o direct_v they_o to_o speak_v and_o carry_v his_o message_n to_o other_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o let_v it_o but_o be_v remember_v which_o i_o note_v at_o the_o beginning_n that_o we_o be_v now_o examine_v those_o witness_n which_o speak_v from_o heaven_n and_o not_o those_o which_o speak_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o than_o you_o will_v soon_o discern_v that_o these_o testimony_n of_o the_o word_n though_o concern_v himself_o aught_o to_o be_v receive_v with_o great_a reverence_n and_o to_o be_v judge_v very_o full_a and_o powerful_a to_o prove_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n especial_o since_o beside_o his_o own_o word_n for_o it_o we_o have_v also_o the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n who_o several_a time_n call_v he_o his_o son_n and_o that_o before_o he_o take_v this_o honour_n to_o himself_o a_o prayer_n let_v all_o mankind_n therefore_o honour_v thou_o o_o bless_a jesus_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n be_v thou_o adore_v every_o where_n upon_o earth_n with_o the_o same_o reverence_n and_o love_n wherewith_o all_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n worship_v thou_o who_o they_o and_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n the_o bright_a morning_n star_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o prince_n of_o life_n the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o the_o lord_z of_o lord_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o thou_o be_v the_o king_n of_o glory_n o_o christ_n thou_o be_v the_o everlasting_a son_n of_o the_o father_n the_o beginner_n and_o the_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n unto_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v thou_o o_o how_o happy_a be_v they_o that_o know_v thou_o and_o steadfast_o believe_v in_o thou_o and_o sincere_o love_v thou_o and_o hearty_o obey_v thou_o and_o have_v a_o good_a hope_n that_o thou_o will_v bless_v they_o and_o employ_v thy_o power_n for_o their_o promotion_n to_o that_o glory_n wherein_o thou_o reign_v i_o rejoice_v to_o hear_v thou_o say_v that_o thou_o who_o be_v dead_a art_n alive_a for_o evermore_o amen_n and_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o of_o death_n i_o thank_v thou_o for_o appear_v so_o often_o to_o assure_v our_o soul_n that_o thou_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o have_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n great_a be_v the_o consolation_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v we_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o that_o glory_n wherein_o thy_o first_o martyr_n behold_v thou_o ready_a to_o succour_v all_o thy_o faithful_a servant_n marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n o_o lord_n for_o which_o all_o thy_o church_n will_v for_o ever_o praise_v thou_o in_o call_v s._n paul_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n separate_v unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n adore_v be_v thy_o glorious_a majesty_n which_o appear_v to_o he_o for_o this_o purpose_n to_o make_v he_o a_o minister_n and_o a_o witness_n of_o what_o he_o see_v and_o hear_v that_o he_o may_v go_v and_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o turn_v they_o from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o inheritance_n among_o they_o which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o o_o how_o full_a of_o comfort_n be_v that_o revelation_n which_o thou_o have_v make_v of_o thyself_o to_o thy_o servant_n john_n who_o receive_v the_o bright_a discovery_n of_o thy_o glory_n in_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o most_o desolate_a condition_n upon_o earth_n who_o behold_v thy_o care_n over_o thy_o church_n and_o thy_o conquest_n over_o thy_o enemy_n thy_o priestly_a and_o thy_o royal_a power_n to_o the_o perpetual_a joy_n of_o those_o that_o love_v thou_o and_o the_o terror_n of_o all_o those_o that_o oppose_v thou_o o_o bless_a jesus_n far_o be_v it_o from_o any_o of_o we_o in_o the_o least_o to_o contradict_v thy_o will_n who_o be_v so_o high_o advance_v far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o only_o in_o this_o world_n but_o also_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v may_v every_o christian_a soul_n be_v so_o sensible_o affect_v with_o the_o belief_n of_o thy_o glory_n as_o to_o prostrate_v itself_o before_o thou_o and_o say_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o thy_o bless_a apostle_n s._n paul_n do_v when_o thou_o appear_v unto_o he_o lord_n what_o will_v thou_o have_v i_o to_o do_v may_v that_o ardent_a love_n burn_v in_o every_o one_o of_o our_o breast_n towards_o thou_o and_o towards_o one_o another_o which_o be_v in_o thy_o belove_a disciple_n who_o bare_a record_n of_o thou_o and_o testify_v to_o we_o these_o thing_n and_o may_v none_o of_o we_o prove_v so_o false_a and_o unkind_a as_o to_o leave_v our_o first_o love_n but_o our_o work_n and_o charity_n and_o service_n and_o faith_n and_o patience_n may_v be_v ever_o commend_v by_o thou_o and_o the_o last_o be_v more_o than_o the_o first_o then_o shall_v we_o be_v able_a with_o a_o cheerful_a countenance_n to_o look_v up_o unto_o thou_o and_o to_o think_v of_o thy_o majesty_n and_o glory_n with_o exultation_n and_o triumph_n and_o not_o with_o terror_n and_o amazement_n of_o spirit_n we_o will_v joy_v in_o thy_o strength_n o_o lord_n and_o in_o thy_o salvation_n how_o great_o shall_v we_o rejoice_v we_o will_v rejoice_v even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o tribulation_n and_o though_o we_o walk_v through_o the_o valley_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n we_o will_v fear_v no_o evil_n but_o steadfast_o look_v up_o unto_o heaven_n call_v upon_o thou_o o_o lord_n jesus_n and_o beseech_v thou_o to_o receive_v our_o spirit_n into_o thy_o hand_n be_v they_o recommend_v both_o now_o and_o ever_o with_o most_o earnest_a desire_n and_o hope_n that_o thou_o will_v help_v thy_o servant_n who_o thou_o have_v redeem_v with_o thy_o precious_a blood_n and_o make_v they_o to_o be_v
may_v have_v open_v their_o eye_n to_o see_v who_o our_o saviour_n be_v without_o any_o further_o tell_v for_o what_o can_v he_o say_v of_o himself_o more_o than_o this_o miracle_n speak_v which_o other_o report_v not_o he_o it_o tell_v they_o loud_o enough_o will_v they_o have_v hear_v that_o he_o have_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o he_o one_o of_o who_o prerogative_n it_o be_v cxlvi_o psal_n 8._o to_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o john_n baptist_n also_o have_v tell_v they_o plain_o that_o he_o see_v the_o spirit_n descend_v from_o heaven_n like_o a_o dove_n and_o it_o abide_v upon_o he_o i_o 32._o here_o be_v a_o unexceptionable_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o story_n which_o john_n present_o publish_v and_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v he_o because_o he_o that_o authorize_v he_o to_o administer_v that_o baptism_n which_o they_o receive_v give_v he_o this_o for_o a_o sign_n whereby_o he_o shall_v know_v the_o christ_n when_o he_o see_v he_o upon_o who_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o spirit_n descend_v and_o remain_v on_o he_o the_o same_o be_v he_o which_o baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o i_o see_v and_o bare_a record_n that_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 33_o 34._o he_o can_v be_v no_o less_o on_o who_o such_o a_o divine_a glory_n not_o only_o descend_v but_o also_o remain_v and_o take_v up_o its_o abode_n with_o he_o that_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v and_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o he_o have_v not_o a_o mere_a glance_n of_o this_o visible_a majesty_n which_o do_v not_o make_v a_o transient_a appearance_n but_o he_o see_v it_o remain_v on_o he_o it_o stay_v for_o some_o time_n there_o as_o if_o it_o intend_v to_o make_v he_o its_o habitation_n and_o dwell_a place_n and_o so_o it_o do_v for_o as_o he_o see_v the_o visible_a divine_a majesty_n or_o glory_n remain_v on_o he_o then_o so_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o it_o continue_v always_o and_o make_v all_o see_v if_o they_o will_v attend_v that_o he_o be_v the_o sanctuary_n or_o most_o holy_a place_n in_o which_o god_n be_v and_o have_v take_v up_o his_o residence_n for_o ever_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n as_o i_o say_v before_o be_v now_o become_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n not_o make_v by_o man_n but_o by_o god_n himself_o in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n there_o god_n manifest_v himself_o perpetual_o by_o sensible_a effect_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v you_o present_o declare_v jesus_n to_o be_v his_o son_n in_o who_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v bodily_a after_o this_o visible_a majesty_n disappear_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n within_o he_o be_v very_o apparent_a for_o he_o come_v away_o from_o jordan_n say_v s._n luke_n full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n four_o 1._o and_o have_v be_v tempt_v a_o while_n in_o the_o wilderness_n he_o return_v from_o thence_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n into_o galilee_n ver_fw-la 14._o there_o he_o teach_v in_o his_o own_o city_n and_o open_v the_o book_n at_o that_o very_a place_n of_o isaiah_n where_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o which_o scripture_n be_v that_o day_n fulfil_v in_o their_o ear_n ver_fw-la 18_o 21._o and_o at_o cana_n in_o that_o country_n he_o begin_v to_o work_v miracle_n and_o manifest_v forth_o his_o glory_n two_o john_n 11._o that_o be_v show_v indeed_o that_o the_o divine_a majesty_n speak_v of_o before_o remain_v in_o he_o of_o which_o glory_n they_o do_v not_o see_v so_o little_a as_o a_o flash_n or_o two_o but_o they_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n i_o 14._o he_o cast_v about_o every_o where_o such_o ray_n of_o glory_n and_o majesty_n as_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v no_o less_o person_n than_o god_n only_o beget_v son_n and_o these_o they_o behold_v and_o be_v constant_a eye-witness_n of_o to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n for_o he_o go_v about_o do_v good_a and_o heal_v all_o that_o be_v oppress_v of_o the_o devil_n for_o god_n be_v with_o he_o x._o act_n 38._o this_o be_v all_o his_o business_n to_o bestow_v benefit_n upon_o mankind_n and_o to_o relieve_v those_o who_o be_v otherways_o helpless_a but_o only_o by_o a_o divine_a power_n as_o be_v notorious_a in_o his_o frequent_a dispossession_n of_o devil_n and_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o he_o who_o be_v blind_a from_o his_o birth_n and_o after_o that_o raise_v lazarus_n from_o the_o dead_a in_o which_o great_a work_n they_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n xi_o john_n 40._o who_o do_v not_o give_v the_o spirit_n by_o measure_n to_o he_o that_o be_v with_o such_o restriction_n as_o he_o himself_o give_v it_o to_o his_o apostle_n at_o the_o first_o but_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n and_o have_v give_v all_o thing_n into_o his_o hand_n as_o the_o baptist_n speak_v iii._o joh._n 34_o 35._o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v i._o coloss_n 19_o so_o that_o none_o can_v have_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o from_o his_o hand_n and_o he_o can_v communicate_v what_o he_o please_v which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o he_o be_v the_o place_n where_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n now_o dwell_v and_o have_v take_v up_o its_o residence_n among_o man_n who_o must_v all_o repair_v to_o he_o if_o they_o will_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o any_o blessing_n from_o above_o what_o great_a argument_n can_v there_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n than_o this_o that_o he_o have_v all_o thing_n now_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n to_o do_v what_o he_o please_v on_o earth_n and_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o such_o a_o visible_a majesty_n as_o a_o pledge_n that_o he_o shall_v short_o have_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n too_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n it_o be_v fit_a that_o this_o glorious_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o he_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n which_o come_v out_o of_o that_o or_o the_o like_a cloud_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v so_o we_o shall_v have_v still_o far_a reason_n to_o acknowledge_v he_o if_o we_o do_v but_o make_v these_o follow_a reflection_n upon_o what_o have_v be_v here_o discourse_v one_o be_v that_o here_o be_v not_o so_o little_a as_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o angel_n to_o he_o by_o who_o god_n declare_v his_o will_n to_o the_o prophet_n but_o a_o far_o more_o illustrious_a manifestation_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n which_o come_v down_o upon_o he_o and_o declare_v he_o more_o than_o a_o prophet_n maimonides_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v 45._o say_v more_n nevoch_n part._n 3._o cap._n 45._o that_o all_o prophecy_n be_v by_o the_o mediation_n of_o angel_n xuj_o gen._n 9_o xxii_o 15._o moses_n himself_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n by_o this_o mean_n iii._o exod._n 2._o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n appear_v to_o he_o in_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n in_o the_o bush_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o think_v god_n afterward_o appoint_v two_o cherubim_n to_o cover_v the_o ark_n that_o the_o people_n may_v be_v breed_v up_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o angel_n and_o god_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v between_o they_o and_o to_o ride_v upon_o they_o because_o all_o prophecy_n be_v carry_v by_o they_o from_o god_n to_o man_n but_o here_o be_v something_o far_o beyond_o this_o way_n of_o communication_n between_o god_n and_o men._n for_o not_o a_o angel_n appear_v or_o speak_v unto_o he_o but_o that_o divine_a glory_n which_o dwell_v between_o the_o cherubim_n descend_v upon_o he_o and_o make_v he_o its_o rest_a place_n and_o god_n himself_o speak_v to_o he_o at_o the_o same_o time_n out_o of_o that_o glory_n call_v he_o his_o son_n and_o bid_v all_o hear_v he_o this_o be_v a_o manifest_a declaration_n of_o his_o high_a and_o singular_a prerogative_n and_o a_o sign_n that_o no_o less_o than_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v in_o he_o so_o that_o he_o know_v as_o i_o say_v before_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n not_o by_o vision_n and_o dream_n or_o by_o mediation_n of_o angel_n but_o by_o a_o more_o intimate_a familiarity_n with_o god_n dwell_v and_o reside_v in_o he_o for_o you_o may_v observe_v further_o which_o be_v another_o thing_n very_o remarkable_a that_o though_o there_o have_v be_v former_o a_o appearance_n of_o a_o schekinah_n of_o the_o divine_a presence_n that_o be_v or_o glory_n of_o god_n when_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v impart_v to_o some_o person_n yet_o we_o never_o read_v that_o this_o schekinah_n come_v down_o upon_o any_o man_n much_o less_o that_o it_o remain_v on_o he_o but_o upon_o jesus_n only_o
name_n as_o they_o have_v do_v he_o and_o by_o such_o mean_n as_o these_o prevent_v his_o faith_n from_o spread_v itself_o any_o further_a they_o be_v mighty_o mistake_v in_o the_o courage_n of_o these_o twelve_o man_n who_o rejoice_v that_o they_o be_v count_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v shame_n for_o his_o name_n and_o as_o unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a as_o they_o find_v they_o four_o act_n 13._o not_o only_o persuade_v many_o in_o that_o country_n to_o believe_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n but_o carry_v the_o fame_n of_o he_o to_o all_o nation_n for_o they_o receive_v another_o kind_n of_o mandate_n from_o he_o which_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o obey_v nothing_o doubt_v but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v go_v along_o with_o they_o to_o prosper_v their_o attempt_n the_o jewish_a ruler_n say_v speak_v not_o at_o all_o nor_o teach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n four_o act_n 18._o but_o jesus_n their_o master_n have_v say_v go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n xuj_o mark_v 15._o or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o s._n matthew_n xxviii_o 19_o 20._o go_v you_o and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o they_o dare_v not_o therefore_o but_o go_v especial_o when_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o upon_o they_o on_o purpose_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o speak_v in_o his_o name_n and_o win_v he_o subject_n in_o all_o the_o world_n by_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v perfect_o lord_n and_o christ_n and_o so_o you_o read_v in_o s._n luke_n xxiv_o 47.48_o 49._o it_o behove_v christ_n to_o die_v and_o rise_v again_o that_o repentance_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n among_o all_o nation_n and_o you_o be_v witness_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o behold_v i_o send_v you_o the_o promise_n of_o my_o father_n but_o tarry_v you_o at_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v before_o you_o go_v about_o this_o business_n until_o you_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o on_o high_a now_o here_o do_v but_o consider_v with_o i_o these_o three_o thing_n first_o the_o vastness_n of_o this_o design_n second_o the_o poorness_n of_o the_o mean_n and_o three_o the_o weakness_n and_o ineptitude_n of_o the_o instrument_n which_o be_v to_o be_v employ_v by_o he_o and_o you_o will_v soon_o see_v what_o service_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v he_o without_o who_o power_n he_o will_v never_o have_v attempt_v such_o thing_n or_o never_o have_v achieve_v they_o they_o be_v all_o in_o that_o place_n now_o mention_v xxviii_o matth._n 19_o go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n etc._n etc._n see_v here_o what_o a_o compass_n he_o take_v for_o his_o kingdom_n no_o less_o than_o all_o the_o world_n wherein_o he_o intend_v to_o settle_v new_a law_n and_o advance_v a_o government_n proper_a to_o himself_o establish_v upon_o a_o doctrine_n not_o at_o all_o take_n with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n who_o be_v there_o that_o ever_o go_v about_o any_o such_o thing_n or_o have_v such_o a_o thought_n in_o his_o mind_n not_o only_o to_o conquer_v but_o to_o change_v the_o religion_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o abolish_v those_o law_n and_o custom_n which_o have_v stand_v for_o so_o many_o age_n what_o arm_n or_o ammunition_n do_v he_o provide_v they_o withal_o for_o this_o purpose_n with_o what_o force_n do_v he_o send_v they_o or_o by_o what_o mean_n do_v he_o hope_v to_o win_v king_n and_o prince_n to_o resign_v their_o crown_n to_o he_o and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o his_o order_n behold_v here_o a_o new_a wonder_n which_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n i_o now_o name_v he_o bid_v they_o go_v and_o preach_v how_o can_v any_o one_o fancy_n he_o shall_v overcome_v nation_n with_o his_o breath_n can_v he_o take_v word_n to_o have_v such_o force_n in_o they_o as_o to_o persuade_v whole_a country_n that_o never_o see_v he_o to_o become_v his_o subject_n what_o strange_a orator_n must_v these_o be_v who_o can_v draw_v man_n of_o such_o different_a language_n nature_n and_o inclination_n in_o all_o the_o world_n after_o they_o where_o be_v they_o breed_v to_o learn_v such_o powerful_a rhetoric_n as_o shall_v charm_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o that_o hear_v they_o from_o what_o school_n do_v they_o come_v or_o by_o who_o be_v they_o instruct_v in_o the_o art_n of_o catch_v soul_n alas_o they_o be_v very_o illiterate_a and_o ignorant_a man_n fisherman_n and_o such_o like_a rustic_a people_n who_o christ_n call_v to_o be_v fisher_n for_o soul_n and_o send_v to_o draw_v heart_n to_o he_o and_o i_o remember_v plato_n in_o his_o phaedrus_n when_o he_o will_v express_v a_o block_n a_o rude_a and_o unbred_a fellow_n say_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d breed_v up_o among_o mariner_n very_o unlikely_a instrument_n these_o be_v for_o his_o purpose_n if_o he_o have_v be_v to_o take_v counsel_n of_o philosopher_n and_o intend_v to_o teach_v man_n by_o no_o strong_a argument_n than_o they_o they_o be_v the_o most_o unfit_a man_n that_o can_v be_v choose_v to_o be_v his_o ambassador_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o they_o have_v not_o go_v with_o other_o kind_n of_o instruction_n than_o the_o world_n have_v know_v before_o and_o that_o be_v the_o three_o wonder_n enough_o to_o astonish_v any_o consider_a man_n that_o they_o who_o as_o eusebius_n note_n can_v scarce_o speak_v their_o own_o language_n well_o but_o be_v mock_v for_o galilean_n who_o dialect_n be_v the_o most_o broad_a and_o ungentile_a of_o all_o the_o nation_n that_o these_o i_o say_v shall_v go_v to_o speak_v to_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n with_o hope_n to_o persuade_v they_o alas_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v master_n to_o so_o much_o as_o one_o single_a person_n much_o less_o to_o teach_v a_o country_n school_n how_o then_o can_v they_o undertake_v to_o teach_v the_o whole_a world_n what_o king_n what_o lawgiver_n what_o philosopher_n either_o greek_a or_o barbarian_a as_o the_o same_o eusebius_n proceed_v evang._n proceed_v lib._n 3._o demonstr_n evang._n ever_o dream_v of_o any_o such_o design_n as_o this_o they_o hold_v their_o labour_n well_o bestow_v if_o they_o can_v establish_v their_o doctrine_n and_o law_n in_o one_o city_n or_o perhaps_o in_o one_o country_n but_o never_o think_v themselves_o able_a to_o spread_v they_o any_o further_a whereas_o jesus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d meditate_v nothing_o that_o be_v common_a to_o mortal_a man_n nothing_o that_o be_v mere_o humane_a say_v confident_o to_o these_o contemptible_a man_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o be_v his_o emissary_n go_v now_o that_o i_o bid_v you_o and_o teach_v all_o nation_n but_o suppose_v the_o disciple_n shall_v have_v say_v to_o he_o as_o well_o they_o may_v though_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o thy_o sake_n yet_o how_o shall_v we_o accomplish_v this_o how_o for_o example_n shall_v we_o speak_v to_o the_o roman_n of_o who_o language_n we_o be_v ignorant_a or_o how_o shall_v we_o teach_v the_o egyptian_n and_o the_o indian_n and_o the_o scythian_n who_o have_v but_o one_o tongue_n which_o we_o learn_v of_o our_o mother_n and_o that_o but_o a_o rude_a one_o neither_o we_o shall_v stand_v dumb_a before_o they_o and_o say_v nothing_o they_o will_v take_v we_o for_o a_o company_n of_o fool_n and_o we_o shall_v look_v like_o mere_a statue_n and_o image_n of_o man_n or_o if_o we_o can_v speak_v their_o language_n what_o hope_n have_v we_o to_o prevail_v with_o they_o who_o will_v be_v persuade_v by_o such_o as_o we_o to_o forsake_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o country_n and_o to_o embrace_v thy_o who_o art_n a_o stranger_n to_o they_o true_o this_o have_v be_v but_o a_o rational_a question_n if_o our_o saviour_n have_v not_o take_v care_n to_o prevent_v it_o by_o add_v those_o word_n to_o his_o mandate_n lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o have_v say_v a_o little_a before_o ver_fw-la 18._o all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v give_v to_o i_o go_v therefore_o and_o teach_v all_o nation_n advance_v my_o authority_n and_o spread_v my_o kingdom_n and_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o you_o shall_v effect_v the_o business_n for_o i_o who_o have_v all_o power_n will_v be_v with_o you_o and_o so_o he_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v his_o advocate_n for_o he_o give_v they_o present_o after_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n he_o accompany_v they_o every_o where_o if_o they_o do_v but_o mention_v his_o name_n with_o sign_n and_o miracle_n yea_o
of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v none_o can_v continue_v in_o this_o unworthy_a slavery_n but_o he_o must_v lay_v aside_o these_o thought_n also_o that_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n have_v take_v up_o his_o abode_n in_o our_o nature_n by_o this_o he_o have_v call_v we_o to_o the_o great_a sanctity_n he_o remember_v we_o what_o excellent_a creature_n we_o be_v and_o how_o glorious_a he_o be_v desirous_a to_o make_v we_o and_o who_o be_v there_o that_o need_n despair_n of_o recover_v himself_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n though_o he_o be_v sink_v never_o so_o much_o below_o himself_o now_o that_o god_n be_v come_v on_o purpose_n to_o lift_v he_o up_o he_o have_v send_v salvation_n to_o we_o by_o one_o that_o be_v mighty_a to_o save_v he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o so_o gracious_o and_o make_v such_o discovery_n of_o his_o love_n and_o power_n and_o glory_n to_o all_o mankind_n that_o they_o may_v confident_o hope_v if_o they_o will_v not_o cast_v away_o all_o care_n of_o themselves_o to_o be_v restore_v to_o the_o image_n and_o likeness_n of_o god_n again_o but_o this_o discourse_n will_v come_v in_o more_o seasonable_o when_o we_o have_v join_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o other_o three_o witness_n to_o these_o and_o hear_v they_o all_o together_o some_o from_o heaven_n other_o from_o earth_n proclaim_v this_o in_o our_o ear_n behold_v the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n be_v your_o lord_n for_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o ready_a for_o a_o surrender_n to_o he_o when_o we_o see_v withal_o how_o much_o we_o be_v behold_v to_o god_n almighty_a for_o his_o marvellous_a inconceiveable_a love_n in_o call_v we_o so_o many_o way_n by_o so_o many_o argument_n to_o repentance_n faith_n obedience_n and_o everlasting_a salvation_n that_o which_o i_o have_v now_o explain_v deserve_v to_o be_v remember_v with_o the_o most_o affectionate_a acknowledgement_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v better_o dispose_v to_o hearken_v to_o the_o rest_n if_o we_o give_v he_o hearty_a thanks_o for_o what_o we_o understand_v already_o and_o say_v a_o prayer_n adore_v be_v thy_o inestimable_a love_n o_o thou_o holy_a spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n who_o have_v give_v such_o gift_n unto_o man_n even_o to_o the_o rebellious_a also_o that_o the_o lord_n god_n may_v dwell_v among_o they_o bless_a be_v thy_o goodness_n who_o do_v anoint_v our_o lord_n with_o that_o oil_n of_o gladness_n which_o have_v run_v down_o to_o the_o mean_a of_o his_o subject_n great_a and_o wonderful_a be_v that_o heavenly_a power_n and_o love_n which_o appear_v in_o such_o visible_a majesty_n upon_o he_o and_o fill_v he_o with_o the_o holy_a guest_n so_o that_o he_o go_v about_o do_v good_a and_o heal_v all_o that_o be_v oppress_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o much_o more_o marvellous_a be_v that_o almighty_a goodness_n which_o promote_v he_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o heaven_n that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n praise_v be_v that_o astonish_a love_n which_o first_o fill_v the_o apostle_n mind_n with_o such_o heavenly_a light_n and_o inflame_v their_o will_n with_o such_o fervent_a heat_n that_o they_o bold_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o the_o world_n for_o ever_o magnify_v be_v that_o diffusive_a grace_n which_o afterward_o spread_v itself_o in_o such_o variety_n of_o gift_n wrought_v by_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n divide_v to_o every_o man_n several_o as_o he_o please_v let_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v give_v continual_a thanks_o to_o thou_o o_o lord_n for_o stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n in_o such_o sign_n and_o wonder_n to_o glorify_v thy_o holy_a child_n jesus_n for_o give_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o some_o a_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n to_o other_o a_o gift_n of_o heal_a to_o other_o divers_a kind_n of_o tongue_n to_z other_o prophecy_n and_o for_o make_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o every_o knee_n may_v bow_v to_o jesus_n and_o every_o tongue_n confess_v that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n i_o confess_v he_o with_o all_o my_o soul_n i_o honour_v he_o as_o my_o dear_a lord_n i_o see_v thy_o glory_n o_o bless_a jesus_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o have_v shine_v so_o oft_o from_o heaven_n upon_o we_o i_o see_v the_o power_n thou_o have_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n i_o see_v the_o royal_a bounty_n of_o thy_o love_n now_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o believe_v that_o thou_o be_v the_o faithful_a and_o the_o true_a who_o word_n shall_v never_o fail_v o_o how_o much_o ought_v i_o and_o every_o christian_a soul_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o have_v bring_v we_o new_a assurance_n from_o heaven_n that_o our_o saviour_n live_v and_o reign_v and_o sit_v enthrone_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o incomparable_a majesty_n and_o glory_n inspire_v all_o our_o mind_n and_o heart_n o_o thou_o quicken_a spirit_n inspire_v they_o o_o lord_n and_o giver_n of_o life_n with_o such_o ardent_a love_n and_o devotion_n towards_o he_o that_o we_o may_v hope_v to_o reign_v with_o he_o and_o then_o shall_v we_o rejoice_v beforehand_o in_o this_o hope_n with_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n do_v not_o whole_o absent_a they_o self_n from_o we_o o_o thou_o guide_v and_o comforter_n of_o our_o soul_n though_o we_o have_v not_o be_v so_o grateful_a to_o thou_o nor_o follow_v thy_o direction_n and_o counsel_n as_o we_o ought_v but_o still_o let_v thy_o gracious_a presence_n fill_v every_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n though_o we_o have_v not_o that_o unction_n from_o above_o which_o endue_v they_o heretofore_o with_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o prophecy_n and_o heal_v and_o work_v of_o miracle_n yet_o pour_v down_o every_o where_o much_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n and_o love_n and_o devotion_n and_o purity_n and_o fortitude_n and_o undaunted_a resolution_n and_o fervent_a zeal_n which_o may_v be_v ever_o glorify_v the_o great_a god_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n o_o thou_o who_o do_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o loose_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o dumb_a enlighten_v our_o mind_n to_o see_v more_o of_o those_o wonder_n which_o may_v inflame_v our_o love_n and_o encourage_v our_o hope_n and_o open_v our_o lip_n that_o our_o mouth_n may_v show_v forth_o thy_o praise_n still_o let_v there_o be_v heart_n full_a of_o faith_n in_o the_o bless_a jesus_n full_a of_o love_n to_o all_o mankind_n full_a of_o ardent_a desire_n to_o see_v his_o kingdom_n come_v full_a of_o wisdom_n to_o open_v the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o jesus_n and_o to_o convince_v they_o mighty_o and_o persuade_v they_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o it_o that_o so_o by_o the_o same_o heavenly_a power_n whereby_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v plant_v in_o the_o world_n it_o may_v be_v gracious_o preserve_v and_o promote_v and_o we_o may_v see_v it_o go_v forward_o and_o advance_v more_o and_o more_o till_o every_o nation_n now_o on_o earth_n speak_v in_o their_o own_o tongue_n the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n let_v all_o the_o people_n praise_v thou_o o_o god_n let_v all_o the_o people_n praise_v thou_o kindle_v in_o they_o such_o devout_a affection_n as_o may_v offer_v up_o continual_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n to_o thou_o let_v they_o praise_v thou_o with_o pure_a mind_n and_o upright_a heart_n and_o unspotted_a life_n and_o in_o perfect_a unity_n and_o godly_a love_n say_v every_o where_o glory_n be_v to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v now_o and_o ever_o shall_v be_v world_n without_o end_n amen_n chap._n v._o concern_v the_o witness_n on_o earth_n and_o first_o of_o the_o water_n have_v give_v a_o brief_a account_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o first_o three_o witness_n and_o find_v much_o satisfaction_n in_o their_o perfect_a agreement_n we_o have_v the_o great_a encouragement_n to_o go_v to_o the_o other_o three_o who_o be_v also_o near_o to_o we_o than_o the_o former_a and_o take_v that_o evidence_n which_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o afford_v we_o for_o our_o further_a confirmation_n in_o this_o belief_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n these_o three_o you_o read_v in_o the_o eight_o verse_n be_v such_o as_o bear_v witness_n on_o earth_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v the_o better_o acquaint_v with_o they_o and_o they_o be_v the_o more_o undeniable_a and_o further_a off_o from_o all_o question_n or_o exception_n for_o shall_v any_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o dispute_v that_o there_o may_v
iii._o john_n 2._o and_o consequent_o profess_v themselves_o desirous_a to_o learn_v of_o he_o and_o ready_a to_o believe_v what_o he_o teach_v but_o i_o can_v say_v that_o they_o baptize_v they_o now_o into_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n or_o into_o a_o belief_n that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n as_o they_o do_v after_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n for_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o publish_v this_o open_o xuj_o matth._n 20._o man_n be_v to_o learn_v it_o by_o degree_n under_o his_o discipline_n to_o which_o they_o deliver_v themselves_o by_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o yet_o this_o prepare_v they_o for_o the_o belief_n that_o he_o be_v their_o christ_n which_o his_o apostle_n afterward_o most_o zealous_o and_o strong_o assert_v by_o baptism_n for_o when_o he_o be_v exalt_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n they_o go_v according_a to_o his_o commission_n and_o disciple_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o into_o his_o name_n as_o well_o as_o into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v they_o engage_v they_o to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n otherways_o they_o will_v not_o baptize_v they_o by_o this_o water_n therefore_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o come_v because_o he_o hereby_o make_v proselyte_n to_o himself_o who_o he_o undertake_v to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o with_o a_o authority_n which_o speak_v he_o to_o be_v great_a than_o all_o prophet_n and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o baptism_n like_o john_n with_o simple_a water_n but_o be_v present_o after_o accompany_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nay_o the_o baptism_n itself_o be_v a_o witness_n to_o he_o join_v with_o what_o go_v before_o because_o it_o argue_v authority_n and_o such_o as_o be_v much_o superior_a to_o that_o of_o john_n though_o he_o be_v great_a than_o any_o prophet_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o therefore_o but_o that_o of_o christ_n for_o who_o beside_o can_v baptize_v the_o whole_a nation_n and_o into_o a_o high_a institution_n than_o he_o who_o they_o take_v for_o the_o christ_n who_o confess_v and_o assert_v and_o no_o body_n appear_v to_o contradict_v it_o that_o he_o be_v not_o that_o light_n by_o who_o they_o must_v begin_v to_o be_v illuminate_v by_o baptism_n but_o jesus_n be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o come_v into_o the_o world_n lighten_v every_o man_n john_n baptism_n therefore_o as_o s._n basil_n bapt._n basil_n exhort_v ad_fw-la bapt._n apt_o call_v it_o be_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d introductory_n to_o something_o else_o more_o perfect_a than_o itself_o that_o be_v to_o our_o saviour_n baptism_n which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o complete_v man_n in_o a_o full_a belief_n that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n 3._o for_o last_o the_o baptism_n which_o the_o apostle_n administer_v especial_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o exaltation_n be_v a_o entrance_n of_o man_n into_o a_o new_a religion_n for_o they_o do_v not_o baptize_v they_o into_o moses_n but_o into_o another_o name_n that_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n this_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o he_o who_o have_v so_o many_o way_n be_v approve_v of_o god_n among_o they_o as_o s._n peter_n speak_v be_v indeed_o the_o christ_n for_o what_o great_a mark_n can_v there_o be_v of_o supreme_a authority_n than_o the_o set_n up_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o he_o do_v a_o institution_n and_o discipline_n which_o be_v not_o know_v before_o and_o teach_v those_o who_o receive_v his_o baptism_n to_o observe_v a_o new_a law_n without_o those_o rite_n which_o have_v be_v hitherto_o use_v who_o can_v repeal_v the_o ordinance_n of_o moses_n nay_o abrogate_v circumcision_n which_o be_v ancient_a than_o moses_n but_o only_o he_o who_o have_v the_o same_o power_n with_o he_o that_o give_v the_o law_n to_o moses_n and_o circumcision_n to_o abraham_n their_o father_n viz._n the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o yet_o this_o do_v our_o jesus_n and_o baptism_n be_v the_o rite_n appoint_v by_o he_o for_o the_o admission_n of_o disciple_n into_o the_o profession_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n which_o take_v away_o the_o old_a as_o unprofitable_a by_o this_o they_o be_v bear_v again_o and_o become_v his_o child_n that_o be_v his_o scholar_n for_o the_o son_n or_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v their_o disciple_n those_o who_o learn_v of_o they_o who_o he_o endue_v with_o his_o principle_n and_o call_v after_o his_o name_n and_o he_o plain_o declare_v as_o you_o read_v in_o his_o discourse_n with_o nicodemus_n that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v any_o part_n in_o that_o kingdom_n which_o the_o messiah_n be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o world_n if_o he_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o old_a religion_n and_o be_v not_o by_o baptism_n bear_v again_o that_o be_v suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v further_o inform_v and_o proceed_v to_o entertain_v the_o religion_n which_o he_o deliver_v thus_o far_o nicodemus_n be_v go_v already_o to_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v a_o master_n send_v of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o other_o of_o their_o ruler_n beside_o himself_o for_o he_o say_v we_o know_v it_o why_o then_o do_v he_o not_o own_v it_o by_o receive_v his_o baptism_n and_o thereby_o put_v himself_o under_o the_o discipline_n of_o this_o master_n that_o be_v instruct_v by_o he_o till_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n he_o may_v be_v teach_v at_o last_o by_o the_o spirit_n when_o it_o come_v down_o upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o be_v perfect_o bear_v again_o or_o inform_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n till_o this_o be_v do_v he_o be_v but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o gregory_n nazianz_n 16._o nazianz_n orat._n 16._o call_v he_o a_o lover_n of_o christ_n by_o half_n to_o make_v he_o a_o entire_a christian_a he_o be_v to_o receive_v his_o baptism_n and_o to_o own_v he_o to_o have_v full_a power_n and_o authority_n from_o god_n to_o make_v what_o change_n he_o please_v so_o far_o as_o to_o turn_v they_o into_o new_a man_n and_o to_o make_v they_o over_o again_o the_o pharisee_n one_o will_v think_v see_v very_o well_o that_o this_o be_v the_o consequence_n of_o his_o gather_v so_o many_o disciple_n by_o baptism_n that_o he_o outdo_v john_n the_o baptist_n for_o to_o avoid_v their_o rage_n which_o they_o have_v conceive_v against_o he_o upon_o this_o account_n but_o never_o express_v against_o john_n he_o leave_v judea_n where_o he_o be_v baptise_v as_o you_o hear_v before_o three_o 22._o because_o they_o have_v great_a power_n there_o and_o depart_v into_o galilee_n again_o where_o their_o authority_n be_v less_o four_o 1_o 2_o 3._o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o a_o innovation_n in_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n shall_v continue_v as_o they_o be_v their_o baptism_n they_o see_v will_v signify_v nothing_o if_o he_o go_v on_o thus_o to_o make_v disciple_n who_o he_o inform_v according_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n and_o persuade_v to_o believe_v on_o he_o as_o their_o king_n in_o who_o sovereign_a power_n it_o be_v to_o make_v all_o old_a thing_n pass_v away_o and_o cause_v all_o thing_n to_o become_v new_a by_o this_o water_n therefore_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o come_v and_o it_o may_v be_v call_v one_o of_o his_o witness_n as_o he_o baptize_v that_o be_v give_v his_o apostle_n authority_n to_o baptize_v man_n not_o into_o moses_n but_o into_o himself_o to_o learn_v new_a lesson_n of_o he_o and_o to_o leave_v the_o old_a though_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o god_n himself_o who_o find_v no_o fault_n at_o all_o with_o this_o baptism_n but_o justify_v it_o as_o you_o shall_v see_v many_o way_n to_o be_v according_a to_o his_o mind_n and_o in_o pursuance_n of_o his_o will_n and_o so_o much_o pain_n may_v suffice_v about_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o first_o witness_n of_o these_o three_o that_o speak_v on_o earth_n which_o be_v water_n the_o holiness_n of_o jesus_n both_o in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o life_n and_o the_o baptism_n both_o of_o john_n and_o of_o jesus_n i_o wish_v that_o every_o one_o who_o consider_v how_o great_a and_o necessary_a a_o proof_n this_o be_v of_o jesus_n his_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n will_v labour_v to_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v indeed_o bear_v of_o he_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n of_o purity_n and_o holiness_n for_o as_o we_o can_v never_o have_v believe_v jesus_n to_o have_v be_v god_n son_n unless_o he_o have_v come_v thus_o by_o water_n no_o more_o can_v any_o man_n rational_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o those_o who_o he_o will_v own_v for_o his_o child_n unless_o he_o conform_v to_o his_o holy_a will_n by_o wash_v himself_o from_o all_o filthiness_n and_o become_v clean_o every_o whit_n read_v over_o the_o sermon_n and_o the_o life_n of_o christ_n and_o
by_o this_o sickness_n ver_fw-la 4._o therefore_o he_o stay_v so_o long_o before_o he_o will_v move_v towards_o he_o that_o lazarus_n may_v be_v dead_a before_o he_o get_v to_o bethany_n and_o he_o may_v get_v more_o glory_n by_o his_o resurrection_n than_o he_o have_v do_v by_o heal_v so_o many_o sickness_n and_o cast_v out_o such_o a_o number_n of_o devil_n for_o this_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o break_v but_o utter_o to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o tread_v he_o quite_o under_o foot_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n for_o which_o reason_n he_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o he_o be_v glad_a for_o their_o sake_n that_o he_o be_v not_o there_o when_o lazarus_n die_v to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v believe_v ver_fw-la 15._o have_v their_o faith_n that_o be_v more_o confirm_v in_o he_o by_o see_v such_o a_o illustrious_a miracle_n wrought_v upon_o lazarus_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a than_o it_o can_v have_v be_v by_o heal_v his_o sickness_n and_o preserve_v he_o from_o death_n they_o have_v see_v many_o desperate_a disease_n cure_v but_o never_o any_o man_n raise_v to_o life_n after_o he_o have_v be_v so_o long_o dead_a some_o of_o the_o jew_n indeed_o object_v this_o to_o he_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v so_o kind_a as_o to_o have_v save_v his_o friend_n life_n if_o he_o have_v have_v the_o power_n which_o he_o pretend_v can_v not_o this_o man_n say_v they_o which_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a have_v cause_v that_o even_o this_o man_n shall_v not_o have_v die_v ver_fw-la 37._o they_o do_v not_o by_o these_o word_n express_v their_o faith_n but_o their_o unbelief_n and_o upbraid_v he_o with_o weakness_n or_o want_n of_o love_n the_o latter_a can_v not_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o by_o his_o tear_n just_a before_o mention_v ver_fw-la 35_o 36._o they_o all_o observe_v how_o much_o he_o love_v he_o but_o from_o thence_o some_o of_o the_o company_n take_v occasion_n to_o disparage_v his_o power_n and_o to_o ask_v the_o rest_n of_o their_o neighbour_n how_o they_o can_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v open_v a_o blind_a man_n eye_n as_o be_v common_o report_v chap._n ix_o when_o he_o suffer_v one_o who_o he_o love_v so_o much_o to_o want_v his_o help_n and_o perish_v if_o he_o have_v do_v the_o former_a how_o easy_a have_v it_o be_v for_o he_o to_o do_v the_o latter_a in_o which_o he_o fail_v though_o his_o affection_n can_v not_o but_o move_v he_o to_o do_v his_o utmost_a for_o his_o friend_n they_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o he_o be_v not_o such_o a_o mighty_a man_n as_o the_o people_n imagine_v this_o perverse_a reason_v move_v our_o saviour_n very_o much_o so_o that_o he_o groan_v again_o in_o himself_o v._n 38._o to_o see_v their_o deplorable_a obstinacy_n and_o malice_n as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v do_v before_o v._o 33._o to_o hear_v their_o piteous_a lamentation_n which_o they_o make_v for_o the_o dead_a these_o man_n condition_n be_v far_o more_o piteous_a because_o he_o foresee_v there_o be_v but_o little_a hope_n that_o they_o will_v be_v move_v when_o they_o see_v their_o frivolous_a cavil_n answer_v by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o lazarus_n which_o will_v show_v there_o be_v good_a reason_n why_o he_o let_v he_o die_v that_o he_o may_v express_v never_o the_o less_o love_n to_o he_o but_o more_o to_o they_o and_o to_o all_o mankind_n by_o restore_v his_o life_n which_o be_v a_o more_o divine_a work_n by_o much_o than_o to_o have_v save_v he_o from_o death_n to_o this_o therefore_o he_o immediate_o apply_v himself_o and_o bid_v the_o sister_n of_o the_o decease_a who_o faith_n it_o seem_v begin_v to_o stagger_v not_o doubt_n but_o she_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n vers_fw-la 40._o such_o a_o stupendous_a instance_n that_o be_v of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o he_o as_o will_v move_v many_o to_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n that_o send_v he_o for_o wherein_o can_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n appear_v more_o to_o their_o astonishment_n than_o in_o such_o a_o marvelous_a work_n as_o this_o which_o when_o he_o enter_v upon_o he_o first_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o he_o and_o call_v he_o father_n on_o purpose_n that_o the_o people_n may_v believe_v he_o come_v from_o god_n and_o be_v his_o son_n when_o they_o see_v he_o answer_v his_o prayer_n in_o this_o manner_n vers_fw-la 41_o 42._o where_o if_o you_o read_v the_o place_n you_o will_v see_v he_o give_v this_o reason_n why_o he_o make_v a_o public_a acknowledgement_n to_o god_n for_o hear_v he_o so_o often_o not_o because_o he_o doubt_v of_o his_o presence_n with_o he_o now_o but_o mere_o that_o the_o bystander_n may_v know_v by_o who_o he_o do_v such_o miracle_n and_o ascribe_v they_o to_o no_o other_o power_n but_o he_o may_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v send_v he_o what_o shall_v they_o believe_v else_o when_o they_o hear_v he_o after_o this_o address_n to_o god_n command_v lazarus_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n express_v his_o assurance_n and_o authority_n to_o come_v forth_o and_o when_o they_o behold_v he_o who_o can_v not_o late_o move_v himself_o in_o his_o bed_n rise_v up_o out_o of_o his_o tomb_n and_o walk_v about_o not_o only_o restore_v to_o life_n but_o in_o perfect_a health_n this_o strike_v the_o heart_n of_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v there_o present_a so_o powerful_o that_o they_o believe_v on_o he_o vers_n 45._o that_o be_v conclude_v he_o be_v more_o than_o a_o prophet_n no_o less_o than_o the_o messiah_n himself_o and_o those_o caviller_n before_o mention_v who_o still_o persist_v to_o maintain_v their_o infidelity_n by_o the_o absurde_a imagination_n be_v so_o startle_v at_o it_o that_o they_o go_v present_o and_o tell_v some_o of_o the_o great_a sanhedrim_n what_o jesus_n have_v do_v wish_v they_o i_o suppose_v to_o look_v to_o themselves_o and_o not_o suffer_v these_o proceed_n vers_fw-la 46._o for_o they_o be_v so_o alarm_v with_o this_o news_n that_o a_o council_n forthwith_o be_v call_v and_o they_o enter_v into_o a_o solemn_a debate_n what_o course_n to_o take_v with_o he_o see_v plain_o how_o powerful_a this_o miracle_n be_v to_o win_v he_o proselyte_n and_o draw_v the_o people_n to_o he_o vers_n 47._o it_o have_v have_v that_o effect_n upon_o many_o already_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o they_o be_v afraid_a it_o will_v increase_v the_o number_n of_o his_o disciple_n so_o much_o that_o it_o will_v prove_v their_o utter_a ruin_n for_o they_o say_v vers_n 48._o if_o we_o let_v he_o thus_o alone_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o and_o the_o roman_n shall_v come_v and_o take_v away_o both_o our_o place_n and_o nation_n that_o be_v the_o people_n will_v proclaim_v he_o their_o king_n and_o thereby_o we_o shall_v incur_v the_o indignation_n of_o caesar_n who_o will_v send_v a_o army_n and_o cut_v we_o off_o till_o he_o leave_v neither_o root_n nor_o branch_n as_o it_o be_v four_o mal._n 1._o but_o destroy_v both_o we_o and_o our_o temple_n that_o place_n they_o be_v resolve_v to_o preserve_v though_o it_o be_v with_o his_o destruction_n who_o death_n they_o now_o determine_v as_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o can_v catch_v he_o for_o so_o their_o consultation_n end_v first_o they_o decree_v v._o 53._o that_o for_o the_o public_a good_a as_o they_o call_v it_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o than_o that_o if_o any_o know_v where_o he_o be_v v._o 57_o they_o shall_v give_v notice_n of_o it_o that_o he_o may_v be_v apprehend_v in_o order_n to_o his_o trial_n thus_o their_o blind_a malice_n turn_v the_o most_o powerful_a mean_n of_o their_o conversion_n into_o the_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o his_o destruction_n for_o because_o he_o do_v so_o many_o miracle_n v._n 47._o they_o do_v not_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o let_v he_o live_v when-as_a for_o that_o very_a cause_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v believe_v on_o he_o and_o think_v he_o worthy_a to_o live_v eternal_o for_o i_o think_v these_o three_o thing_n be_v very_o considerable_a wherewith_o i_o shall_v conclude_v this_o part_n of_o the_o spirit_n testimony_n i._n first_o this_o miracle_n wrought_v upon_o lazarus_n be_v so_o evident_a a_o token_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o it_o have_v in_o it_o all_o the_o condition_n which_o the_o gentile_a king_n who_o the_o jew_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o book_n cosri_n 8._o cosri_n part._n 1._o sect._n 8._o require_v in_o a_o prodigy_n sufficient_a to_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n speak_v by_o he_o that_o work_v it_o our_o mind_n say_v he_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o think_v that_o god_n enter_v into_o society_n with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n unless_o it_o be_v by_o such_o a_o miracle_n
person_n with_o any_o shadow_n or_o colour_n of_o reason_n let_v we_o persuade_v ourselves_o that_o this_o be_v a_o true_a history_n which_o they_o have_v write_v and_o then_o we_o have_v no_o faculty_n of_o discourse_v if_o we_o can_v conclude_v who_o our_o saviour_n be_v he_o can_v not_o possible_o have_v do_v such_o thing_n as_o the_o blind_a man_n well_o argue_v when_o his_o eye_n be_v open_v by_o he_o ix_o john_n 31_o 33._o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o sinner_n that_o be_v a_o deceiver_n and_o not_o authorize_v by_o god_n to_o come_v in_o his_o name_n if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a pretender_n to_o this_o dignity_n god_n will_v not_o have_v honour_v he_o on_o this_o fashion_n nor_o have_v give_v countenance_n to_o a_o lie_n by_o as_o great_a miracle_n as_o can_v be_v wrought_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o any_o truth_n he_o will_v not_o have_v deprive_v himself_o of_o all_o mean_n to_o declare_v his_o will_n to_o we_o as_o he_o must_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v suffer_v such_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o miracle_n to_o be_v wrought_v by_o a_o deceiver_n for_o three_o year_n together_o and_o give_v the_o most_o honest-hearted_a man_n no_o mean_n to_o discover_v the_o cheat_n we_o can_v believe_v he_o to_o be_v wise_a and_o to_o have_v a_o care_n to_o preserve_v his_o own_o authority_n and_o to_o support_v his_o government_n and_o not_o think_v that_o he_o will_v some_o way_n or_o other_o have_v control_v the_o design_n of_o a_o person_n of_o such_o high_a pretence_n if_o he_o have_v oppose_v he_o and_o come_v without_o his_o consent_n as_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n in_o brief_a if_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a which_o be_v report_v than_o our_o saviour_n be_v god_n manifest_v in_o our_o flesh_n and_o you_o know_v what_o regard_n and_o reverence_n be_v due_a to_o such_o a_o person_n and_o that_o they_o be_v true_a we_o have_v not_o the_o least_o reason_n to_o doubt_n be_v report_v by_o eye_n witness_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o power_n who_o be_v so_o convince_v of_o his_o divine_a authority_n that_o they_o venture_v their_o fortune_n and_o life_n in_o his_o service_n mere_o to_o promote_v his_o honour_n and_o as_o that_o whereby_o they_o persuade_v other_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n work_v so_o many_o miracle_n by_o their_o hand_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o divers_a other_o wonderful_a gift_n so_o it_o be_v the_o same_o spirit_n that_o first_o convince_v they_o and_o make_v they_o confident_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o the_o first_o time_n that_o we_o find_v they_o make_v a_o solemn_a acknowledgement_n of_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o a_o great_a miracle_n before_o s._n peter_n james_n and_o john_n hear_v the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n when_o they_o be_v with_o he_o in_o the_o holy_a mount_n he_o have_v feed_v you_o read_v fourteen_o matth._n 19_o etc._n etc._n five_o thousand_o man_n beside_o woman_n and_o child_n with_o five_o loaf_n and_o two_o fish_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v do_v straightway_o constrain_v his_o disciple_n to_o get_v into_o a_o ship_n and_o go_v before_o he_o unto_o the_o other_o side_n ver_fw-la 22._o lest_o they_o shall_v join_v with_o the_o multitude_n in_o the_o design_n which_o he_o see_v they_o have_v in_o hand_n vi_fw-la john_n 15._o to_o take_v he_o by_o force_n and_o make_v he_o a_o king_n when_o he_o have_v dismiss_v the_o multitude_n and_o spend_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o day_n in_o prayer_n he_o overtake_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sea_n in_o the_o four_o watch_n of_o the_o night_n and_o find_v they_o toss_v with_o the_o wave_n because_o the_o wind_n be_v contrary_a fourteen_o matth._n 24_o 25._o they_o be_v afraid_a at_o the_o first_o sight_n of_o he_o and_o imagine_v it_o have_v be_v a_o ghost_n who_o perhaps_o they_o think_v have_v raise_v that_o storm_n but_o when_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o and_o bid_v they_o be_v of_o cheer_n and_o say_v it_o be_v i_o be_v not_o afraid_a peter_n be_v desirous_a if_o it_o be_v he_o that_o he_o will_v call_v he_o to_o he_o and_o enable_v he_o to_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n with_o he_o and_o so_o he_o do_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v firm_a land_n till_o his_o heart_n begin_v to_o fail_v he_o when_o he_o see_v the_o wind_n boisterous_a but_o then_o our_o lord_n put_v forth_o his_o hand_n and_o keep_v he_o from_o sink_v and_o both_o bring_v he_o safe_a to_o the_o ship_n and_o make_v a_o calm_a upon_o this_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o ship_n that_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n come_v and_o worship_v he_o say_v of_o a_o truth_n thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 33._o the_o sudden_a cease_v of_o the_o wind_n that_o be_v his_o come_n to_o they_o upon_o the_o water_n his_o bearing_z up_z peter_z and_o make_v he_o walk_v along_o with_o he_o and_o that_o when_o the_o surface_n of_o the_o water_n be_v not_o plain_a but_o very_o rough_a by_o the_o crossness_n of_o the_o wind_n and_o his_o feast_n also_o great_a multitude_n with_o little_a provision_n make_v they_o conclude_v without_o any_o more_o ado_n that_o he_o be_v great_a than_o any_o man_n ever_o be_v their_o mind_n be_v overcome_v by_o this_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n in_o he_o which_o subdue_v their_o understanding_n perfect_o to_o the_o faith_n and_o so_o bow_v and_o incline_v their_o heart_n that_o they_o can_v not_o but_o prostrate_v themselves_o at_o his_o foot_n and_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o anoint_a of_o god_n they_o believe_v no_o doubt_n before_o that_o he_o be_v a_o great_a prophet_n and_o a_o teacher_n send_v of_o god_n as_o nicodemus_n do_v nay_o have_v some_o beginning_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n i_o john_n 41_o 45._o but_o it_o be_v not_o till_o now_o that_o they_o be_v sure_a of_o it_o and_o do_v he_o honour_v as_o of_o a_o truth_n or_o certain_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o be_v no_o easy_a people_n that_o believe_v light_o and_o foolish_o only_o out_o of_o love_n of_o novelty_n or_o some_o such_o vain_a humour_n but_o be_v convince_v and_o overpowr_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n which_o be_v stretch_v out_o to_o work_v such_o wonder_n as_o these_o whensoever_o jesus_n please_v iii_o and_o therefore_o he_o have_v great_a reason_n which_o be_v the_o three_o and_o last_o consideration_n when_o any_o dispute_v or_o doubt_v of_o his_o authority_n to_o refer_v they_o as_o he_o do_v very_o often_o to_o his_o miraculous_a work_n for_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o and_o he_o appeal_v to_o they_o as_o one_o of_o his_o witness_n according_a as_o s._n john_n here_o call_v they_o when_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n bear_v witness_v so_o you_o read_v in_o several_a place_n of_o his_o gospel_n where_o you_o find_v that_o when_o the_o jew_n encircle_v he_o as_o if_o they_o will_v not_o let_v he_o stir_v till_o he_o tell_v they_o plain_o whether_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o not_o x._o joh._n 24._o he_o answer_v they_o i_o tell_v you_o and_o you_o believe_v not_o the_o work_n that_o i_o do_v in_o my_o father_n name_n they_o bear_v witness_v of_o i_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o have_v no_o more_o for_o the_o present_a to_o tell_v you_o than_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o often_o by_o my_o work_n if_o you_o can_v see_v nothing_o in_o these_o to_o convince_v you_o that_o i_o be_o the_o christ_n all_o my_o tell_n you_o so_o in_o word_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n but_o for_o the_o present_a you_o must_v remain_v in_o unbelief_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n he_o discourse_v again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n vers_fw-la 37_o 38._o if_o i_o do_v not_o the_o work_n of_o my_o father_n believe_v i_o not_o though_o i_o shall_v say_v never_o so_o oft_o i_o be_o his_o son_n but_o if_o i_o do_v though_o you_o believe_v not_o i_o believe_v the_o work_n that_o you_o may_v know_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o and_o thus_o he_o reason_n with_o s._n philip_n fourteen_o joh._n 10_o 11._o believe_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o he_o do_v the_o work_n a_o clear_a sign_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o himself_o and_o that_o he_o be_v most_o near_o one_o with_o the_o father_n believe_v i_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o or_o else_o believe_v i_o for_o the_o very_a work_n sake_n and_o so_o he_o tell_v all_o his_o apostle_n that_o the_o jew_n be_v inexcusable_a upon_o
lord_n be_v high_a above_o all_o the_o earth_n thou_o be_v exalt_v far_o above_o all_o go_n bless_a be_v the_o people_n that_o know_v this_o joyful_a sound_n they_o shall_v walk_v o_o lord_n in_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n in_o thy_o name_n shall_v they_o rejoice_v all_o the_o day_n and_o in_o thy_o righteousness_n shall_v they_o be_v exalt_v for_o thou_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o strength_n and_o by_o thy_o favour_n shall_v we_o be_v high_o honour_v for_o thou_o have_v a_o mighty_a arm_n strong_a be_v thy_o hand_n and_o high_a be_v thy_o right_a hand_n i_o know_v that_o thou_o can_v do_v every_o thing_n and_o that_o no_o thought_n of_o thou_o can_v be_v hinder_v thou_o can_v break_v the_o chain_n of_o death_n and_o raise_v our_o dust_n and_o ash_n to_o immortal_a life_n thou_o can_v tread_v satan_n under_o our_o foot_n and_o send_v thy_o angel_n for_o our_o security_n and_o defence_n by_o thou_o we_o shall_v run_v through_o the_o great_a danger_n and_o surmount_v all_o the_o difficulty_n that_o be_v in_o our_o way_n to_o thou_o who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o thy_o love_n o_o christ_n who_o die_v for_o we_o yea_o rather_o be_v rise_v again_o who_o be_v even_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n who_o also_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o o_o live_v thou_o for_o ever_o in_o my_o mind_n and_o heart_n and_o be_v the_o daily_a delightful_a subject_n of_o my_o thought_n direct_v and_o guide_v i_o in_o all_o my_o way_n and_o lead_v i_o safe_a unto_o thyself_o still_o let_v my_o meditation_n of_o thou_o be_v sweet_a and_o my_o joy_n exceed_v great_a in_o thy_o salvation_n still_o fix_v my_o eye_n on_o thing_n above_o where_o thou_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n lord_n still_o increase_v my_o faith_n that_o it_o grow_v in_o strength_n may_v work_v by_o a_o more_o vigorous_a love_n let_v i_o feel_v the_o power_n of_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n perpetual_o in_o my_o heart_n that_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o mortify_v thereby_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n he_o that_o raise_v thou_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a may_v also_o quicken_v my_o mortal_a body_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o now_o unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o do_v exceed_v abundant_o above_o all_o that_o we_o ask_v or_o think_v according_a to_o the_o power_n that_o wrought_v such_o wonder_n unto_o he_o be_v glory_n in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n jesus_n throughout_o all_o age_n world_n without_o end_n amen_n chap._n viii_o concern_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o know_v not_o what_o remain_v to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o full_a explication_n of_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n unless_o it_o be_v sit_v to_o note_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v say_v to_o come_v not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o likewise_o in_o his_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n i_o need_v name_n but_o one_o place_n to_o prove_v this_o two_o ephes_n 17._o and_o come_v and_o preach_v peace_n to_o you_o which_o be_v afar_o off_o and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v nigh_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o jesus_n of_o who_o he_o there_o speak_v be_v not_o send_v save_v to_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o therefore_o in_o his_o own_o person_n be_v not_o to_o go_v to_o those_o who_o be_v afar_o off_o such_o gentile_n as_o these_o ephesian_n be_v to_o who_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v say_v here_o to_o come_v he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o say_v this_o very_a disciple_n and_o though_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o yet_o he_o keep_v himself_o within_o the_o confine_n of_o their_o country_n and_o charge_v his_o disciple_n during_o his_o life_n not_o to_o go_v into_o any_o city_n of_o the_o samaritan_n to_o who_o he_o never_o go_v but_o only_o in_o his_o passage_n from_o one_o part_n of_o the_o jew_n country_n to_o another_o we_o can_v give_v no_o account_n then_o of_o his_o come_v to_o they_o that_o be_v afar_o off_o as_o well_o as_o unto_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v nigh_o but_o only_o this_o that_o by_o the_o apostle_n who_o he_o send_v and_o who_o be_v his_o ambassador_n to_o preach_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n he_o be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o gentile_n even_o as_o the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o come_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o speak_v to_o they_o when_o he_o send_v he_o his_o son_n to_o declare_v his_o mind_n and_o will_n among_o they_o now_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o s._n john_n may_v have_v some_o respect_n to_o his_o send_v they_o as_o the_o father_n send_v he_o to_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v that_o jesus_n come_v by_o water_n and_o by_o blood_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o these_o three_o be_v his_o witness_n on_o earth_n for_o first_o the_o apostle_n be_v his_o witness_n as_o they_o be_v call_v in_o many_o place_n both_o by_o he_o and_o by_o themselves_o you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o both_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o judaea_n and_o in_o samaria_n and_o unto_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n say_v our_o saviour_n just_a before_o his_o ascension_n i._n act._n 8._o the_o same_o he_o say_v to_o s._n paul_n to_o who_o he_o appear_v afterward_o xxvi_o 16._o xxii_o 15._o and_o in_o the_o same_o stile_n s._n peter_n speak_v of_o himself_o i_o exhort_v you_o who_o be_o a_o elder_a and_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n i._n pet._n v._o 1._o and_o as_o they_o be_v witness_n of_o his_o suffering_n so_o they_o be_v of_o all_o that_o he_o do_v as_o you_o shall_v hear_v present_o and_o of_o all_o that_o be_v do_v for_o he_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n that_o be_v they_o be_v witness_n that_o there_o appear_v such_o witness_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o he_o as_o we_o have_v examine_v and_o 2._o witness_v they_o be_v of_o very_o great_a credit_n worthy_a of_o all_o belief_n for_o they_o be_v witness_n choose_v of_o god_n x._o act._n 41._o select_a man_n pick_v out_o by_o heaven_n some_o of_o they_o in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n for_o this_o purpose_n and_o they_o speak_v nothing_o by_o hear-say_n but_o upon_o their_o own_o certain_a knowledge_n be_v eye-witness_n of_o his_o majesty_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v before_o from_o s._n peter_n 2._o i_o 16._o and_o s._n john_n say_v the_o same_o in_o this_o epistle_n four_o 14._o we_o have_v see_v and_o do_v testify_v that_o the_o father_n send_v the_o son_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n first_o they_o see_v and_o then_o bare_a witness_n or_o as_o he_o express_v himself_o more_o large_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o epistle_n that_o which_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n and_o look_v upon_o and_o which_o their_o hand_n have_v handle_v of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a and_o they_o see_v it_o and_o bare_a witness_n that_o he_o repeat_v it_o again_o which_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v they_o declare_v unto_o the_o world_n why_o shall_v not_o such_o witness_n be_v believe_v who_o speak_v nothing_o but_o what_o all_o their_o sense_n that_o can_v be_v employ_v in_o this_o case_n give_v they_o full_a assurance_n be_v undoubted_o true_a they_o be_v man_n sure_a of_o common_a capacity_n and_o they_o have_v opportunity_n also_o to_o see_v and_o hear_v and_o feel_v and_o examine_v every_o thing_n which_o jesus_n do_v or_o be_v do_v in_o honour_n of_o he_o for_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n choose_v they_o to_o be_v his_o witness_n because_o they_o be_v thus_o qualify_v xv_o joh._n 26_o 27._o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o and_o you_o also_o shall_v bear_v witness_n because_o you_o have_v be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v because_o you_o be_v abundant_o inform_v how_o all_o thing_n have_v pass_v from_o my_o very_a first_o enter_v into_o the_o world_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n therefore_o you_o shall_v be_v employ_v to_o testify_v all_o thing_n that_o you_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v and_o feel_v as_o the_o fit_a person_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o which_o reason_n when_o they_o want_v one_o of_o their_o number_n by_o the_o apostasy_n of_o judas_n they_o be_v very_o careful_a according_a to_o this_o rule_n of_o their_o master_n to_o choose_v such_o a_o one_o to_o succeed_v he_o as_o have_v be_v a_o constant_a follower_n of_o jesus_n and_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o every_o thing_n they_o be_v to_o witness_v i_o act._n 21_o 22._o wherefore_o say_v s._n peter_n of_o those_o man_n which_o have_v company_v with_o we_o all_o
verse_n why_o they_o give_v themselves_o as_o whole_a burn_a offering_n to_o christ_n but_o that_o by_o the_o example_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o martyrdom_n they_o may_v instruct_v many_o more_o to_o be_v martyr_n nay_o their_o blood_n do_v not_o only_o water_v many_o young_a plant_n and_o make_v they_o grow_v to_o their_o perfection_n but_o he_o tell_v we_o a_o little_a after_o in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o psalm_n plures_fw-la scimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o know_v many_o who_o be_v whole_o ignorant_a of_o the_o divine_a sacrament_n i._n e._n the_o christian_a religion_n that_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o martyr_n run_v to_o martyrdom_n no_o wonder_n then_o that_o these_o above_o all_o other_o have_v be_v call_v the_o witness_n of_o jesus_n for_o that_o be_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n martyr_n and_o that_o christian_n be_v forward_o even_o to_o kiss_v their_o wound_n and_o to_o embrace_v their_o dead_a body_n as_o the_o remain_v of_o those_o who_o have_v do_v most_o eminent_a service_n to_o our_o lord_n who_o himself_o therefore_o witness_v to_o they_o after_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o declare_v that_o their_o blood_n be_v very_o dear_a and_o precious_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o it_o have_v seal_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n for_o there_o can_v no_o other_o reason_n be_v give_v but_o this_o why_o at_o the_o monument_n of_o these_o martyr_n or_o witness_n our_o saviour_n be_v please_v to_o have_v so_o many_o miracle_n wrought_v afterward_o and_o before_o such_o a_o number_n of_o people_n that_o porphyry_n himself_o as_o we_o learn_v both_o from_o s._n cyril_n and_o s._n hierom_n though_o a_o avow_a enemy_n of_o our_o religion_n can_v not_o but_o acknowledge_v they_o they_o still_o speak_v and_o bare_a witness_n to_o jesus_n by_o these_o wonderful_a work_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a or_o rather_o jesus_n speak_v for_o they_o as_o i_o say_v and_o declare_v from_o heaven_n that_o these_o be_v his_o faithful_a witness_n who_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v whereby_o they_o have_v declare_v he_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n a_o prayer_n who_o will_v not_o believe_v on_o thou_o o_o lord_n who_o will_v not_o magnify_v thy_o name_n for_o great_a and_o marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n just_a and_o true_a be_v thy_o way_n thou_o king_n of_o saint_n all_o nation_n ought_v to_o come_v and_o worship_n before_o thou_o who_o majesty_n and_o glory_n be_v so_o many_o way_n make_v manifest_a thou_o have_v raise_v poor_a and_o ignorant_a man_n to_o be_v mighty_a minister_n of_o thy_o grace_n and_o witness_n of_o thy_o resurrection_n and_o co-worker_n with_o thou_o for_o the_o illumination_n and_o conversion_n of_o the_o world_n bless_a be_v thy_o name_n for_o all_o the_o glorious_a light_n which_o have_v be_v in_o thy_o church_n in_o every_o age_n by_o who_o thy_o holy_a faith_n have_v be_v preserve_v and_o propagate_v to_o our_o day_n bless_a be_v thy_o name_n for_o all_o the_o martyr_n who_o seal_v it_o with_o their_o blood_n and_o for_o all_o the_o confessor_n who_o free_o acknowledge_v thou_o with_o the_o danger_n of_o their_o life_n great_a be_v thy_o glory_n which_o shine_v in_o their_o most_o exemplary_a holiness_n fortitude_n patience_n love_v unseign_v both_o to_o friend_n and_o enemy_n and_o in_o that_o mighty_a power_n whereby_o they_o approve_v themselves_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n thanks_o be_v to_o thou_o o_o god_n the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o thy_o holy_a scripture_n wherein_o we_o read_v the_o story_n of_o our_o saviour_n wondrous_a love_n and_o of_o that_o most_o miraculous_a power_n which_o appear_v in_o he_o to_o testify_v unto_o he_o and_o at_o last_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o advance_v he_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n from_o whence_o he_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o endue_v his_o apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n with_o power_n from_o on_o high_a that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o witness_n and_o commit_v that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v to_o faithful_a man_n who_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o o_o god_n i_o can_v but_o again_o adore_v thy_o incomprehensible_a love_n which_o can_v never_o be_v sufficient_o praise_v who_o can_v understand_v the_o exceed_a riches_n of_o thy_o grace_n that_o thou_o who_o naked_a glory_n be_v too_o bright_a for_o our_o weak_a mind_n to_o fix_v their_o eye_n upon_o will_v be_v please_v in_o most_o admirable_a condescend_v love_n to_o manifest_v thyself_o and_o visit_v we_o in_o our_o flesh_n thou_o be_v infinite_o above_o the_o great_a of_o we_o who_o be_v far_o less_o worthy_a to_o approach_v thou_o than_o the_o low_a creature_n in_o this_o world_n be_v fit_a for_o our_o friendship_n and_o society_n so_o much_o the_o more_o marvellous_a be_v thy_o unheard_a of_o love_n that_o thou_o will_v admit_v we_o to_o such_o a_o near_a relation_n unto_o thou_o so_o much_o the_o great_a be_v our_o happiness_n that_o in_o christ_n jesus_n thou_o have_v make_v thyself_o our_o portion_n and_o design_v we_o to_o be_v eternal_o bless_v with_o thou_o great_a be_v his_o care_n and_o kindness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n towards_o the_o most_o miserable_a wretch_n who_o receive_v the_o great_a token_n of_o his_o love_n i_o rejoice_v now_o to_o think_v with_o what_o tenderness_n he_o receive_v the_o poor_a feed_v the_o hungry_a visit_v the_o sick_a cure_v the_o disease_a and_o when_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o world_n communicate_v the_o same_o power_n unto_o other_o that_o they_o may_v exercise_v the_o same_o charity_n that_o he_o have_v do_v i_o see_v both_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o all_o those_o work_n of_o wonder_n which_o he_o do_v i_o see_v that_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o which_o have_v preserve_v a_o faithful_a record_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o we_o through_o patience_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v have_v hope_n now_o the_o god_n of_o all_o grace_n inspire_v i_o and_o all_o other_o christian_a soul_n with_o the_o same_o faith_n love_n and_o ardent_a zeal_n which_o be_v in_o those_o burn_a and_o shine_a light_n the_o witness_n of_o christ._n that_o we_o may_v be_v follower_n of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v of_o he_o and_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o lord_n be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n partake_v of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o live_v upon_o the_o same_o heavenly_a food_n we_o may_v lead_v the_o same_o holy_a life_n in_o hope_n to_o shine_v one_o day_n with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o celestial_a glory_n help_v we_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v learn_v and_o have_v be_v assure_v of_o know_v of_o who_o we_o have_v learn_v they_o that_o we_o may_v not_o at_o any_o time_n let_v they_o slip_v for_o how_o shall_v we_o escape_v if_o we_o neglect_v so_o great_a salvation_n which_o at_o the_o first_o begin_v to_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v confirm_v unto_o we_o by_o they_o that_o hear_v he_o thou_o o_o god_n also_o bear_v they_o witness_n both_o with_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o with_o divers_a miracle_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o thy_o own_o will_n may_v we_o always_o careful_o lay_v up_o and_o preserve_v these_o sacred_a truth_n in_o our_o heart_n which_o be_v in_o so_o glorious_a a_o manner_n deliver_v to_o we_o may_v they_o work_v there_o perpetual_o with_o great_a power_n and_o be_v reverence_v as_o the_o holy_a oracle_n of_o god_n may_v they_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o our_o motion_n throughout_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o life_n that_o with_o a_o even_o steady_a pace_n whatsoever_o danger_n come_v in_o our_o way_n we_o may_v walk_v on_o towards_o that_o happy_a place_n where_o those_o holy_a one_o rejoice_v for_o ever_o with_o our_o lord_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v by_o we_o and_o by_o those_o glorify_a spirit_n and_o by_o all_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n everlasting_a praise_n amen_n chap._n ix_o the_o use_v we_o be_v to_o make_v of_o their_o testimony_n it_o be_v time_n now_o to_o bring_v this_o discourse_n to_o a_o issue_n and_o have_v examine_v all_o these_o divine_a witness_n take_v their_o proof_n and_o deposition_n and_o find_v their_o testimony_n upon_o due_a enquiry_n to_o be_v good_a and_o legal_a to_o consider_v with_o ourselves_o what_o we_o have_v to_o do_v and_o what_o judgement_n we_o will_v pass_v now_o that_o we_o have_v hear_v their_o evidence_n god_n the_o father_n of_o all_o say_v that_o jesus_n be_v his_o son_n the_o word_n himself_o appear_v oft_o to_o justify_v this_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o attest_v it_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a proclaim_v it_o the_o holy_a life_n of_o our_o
word_n as_o these_o lay_v not_o up_o your_o treasure_n upon_o earth_n and_o the_o luxurious_a be_v tell_v that_o he_o who_o sow_v to_o the_o flesh_n shall_v of_o the_o flesh_n reap_v corruption_n and_o the_o proud_a be_v tell_v that_o he_o who_o exalt_v himself_o shall_v be_v abase_v the_o angry_a be_v exhort_v when_o one_o cheek_n be_v smite_v to_o turn_v the_o other_o they_o that_o live_v in_o discord_n be_v teach_v to_o love_v their_o enemy_n the_o superstitious_a be_v instruct_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o we_o to_o the_o curious_a it_o be_v say_v continual_o look_v not_o at_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v but_o to_o those_o which_o be_v not_o see_v and_o last_o it_o be_v say_v to_o all_o love_v not_o the_o world_n nor_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v read_v throughout_o the_o world_n if_o they_o be_v cheerful_o hear_v with_o great_a veneration_n if_o after_o so_o much_o blood_n such_o fire_n so_o many_o crucifixion_n of_o martyr_n the_o church_n be_v grow_v more_o fertile_a and_o have_v propagate_v itself_o to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n and_o to_o omit_v the_o rest_n if_o man_n be_v every_o where_o so_o convert_v to_o god_n that_o every_o day_n all_o mankind_n answer_v almost_o with_o one_o voice_n lift_v up_o your_o heart_n unto_o the_o lord_n why_o shall_v we_o drowsy_o still_o continue_v in_o a_o sottish_a unbelief_n there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v say_v in_o the_o excuse_n of_o such_o soul_n as_o have_v receive_v notice_n of_o such_o a_o marvellous_a love_n of_o god_n to_o mankind_n and_o such_o evident_a proof_n that_o it_o be_v no_o fancy_n will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o entertain_v the_o belief_n of_o it_o but_o when_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n choose_v to_o remain_v in_o darkness_n and_o will_v be_v guide_v mere_o by_o themselves_o when_o there_o be_v a_o revelation_n come_v from_o god_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v entertain_v with_o the_o great_a joy_n as_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o world_n want_v and_o wish_v for_o and_o without_o which_o they_o can_v meet_v with_o no_o resolution_n of_o their_o doubt_n nor_o certain_a direction_n how_o to_o please_v god_n who_o they_o have_v so_o high_o offend_v in_o this_o the_o christian_a religion_n give_v we_o full_a satisfaction_n and_o propound_v nothing_o to_o our_o practice_n but_o what_o the_o wise_a man_n ever_o say_v be_v best_a to_o be_v do_v and_o take_v for_o the_o most_o excellent_a piety_n as_o for_o that_o which_o it_o propound_v to_o our_o belief_n it_o be_v all_o make_v credible_a by_o this_o one_o great_a truth_n which_o be_v prove_v by_o a_o number_n of_o witness_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o ought_v to_o receive_v that_o which_o such_o a_o person_n teach_v either_o with_o his_o own_o mouth_n or_o by_o those_o who_o he_o inspire_v and_o send_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o father_n send_v he_o for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o reasonable_a as_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v a_o believer_n than_o it_o be_v as_o unreasonable_a to_o be_v a_o unbeliever_n and_o no_o man_n will_v be_v able_a to_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o justify_v such_o a_o sin_n against_o so_o many_o witness_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o testify_v that_o they_o call_v he_o to_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o clear_a and_o the_o most_o powerful_a evidence_n that_o ever_o be_v for_o if_o the_o jew_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v in_o moses_n have_v no_o more_o testimony_n from_o god_n than_o you_o have_v hear_v we_o be_v much_o more_o bind_v to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n who_o have_v more_o and_o great_a witness_n that_o he_o not_o only_o come_v from_o god_n but_o be_v go_v to_o god_n and_o have_v all_o thing_n give_v into_o his_o hand_n whether_o in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o they_o therefore_o fourteen_o exod._n ult_n that_o they_o believe_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o servant_n moses_n so_o let_v it_o be_v say_v of_o every_o one_o now_o that_o we_o believe_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n for_o this_o very_a end_n be_v these_o word_n write_v by_o s._n john_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v on_o his_o name_n ver_fw-la 13._o and_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o god_n will_v have_v we_o to_o do_v the_o commandment_n he_o have_v give_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o love_v one_o another_o three_o 23._o if_o we_o do_v the_o former_a we_o shall_v see_v a_o evident_a consequence_n of_o the_o latter_a for_o when_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o can_v but_o see_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o receive_v every_o word_n that_o he_o say_v with_o affectionate_a reverence_n and_o to_o let_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v say_v concern_v he_o into_o our_o very_a heart_n so_o that_o we_o fear_v he_o and_o love_v he_o and_o become_v obedient_a to_o he_o and_o depend_v upon_o his_o word_n and_o as_o he_o himself_o have_v teach_v we_o honour_v he_o as_o we_o do_v the_o father_n almighty_n for_o we_o be_v assure_v by_o those_o who_o hear_v he_o and_o be_v with_o he_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o be_v witness_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o he_o that_o he_o be_v the_o word_n make_v flesh_n and_o that_o the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o by_o office_n only_o but_o in_o his_o nature_n and_o essence_n and_o have_v assume_v our_o flesh_n therein_o reign_v lord_n of_o all_o for_o ever_o for_o what_o reason_n shall_v we_o refuse_v to_o receive_v that_o which_o be_v so_o credible_o witness_v to_o be_v the_o very_a truth_n of_o god_n they_o that_o report_v these_o thing_n be_v so_o pious_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o they_o can_v be_v suspect_v to_o have_v invent_v they_o nay_o the_o very_a end_n for_o which_o they_o publish_v they_o quit_v they_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o fraud_n and_o forgery_n for_o they_o aim_v at_o nothing_o but_o by_o make_v man_n sensible_a of_o his_o great_a dignity_n and_o the_o high_a honour_n god_n have_v put_v upon_o he_o to_o possess_v his_o heart_n with_o a_o ardent_a love_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o neighbour_n and_o to_o make_v he_o perfect_o subject_a unto_o his_o will_n and_o be_v there_o not_o great_a reason_n if_o we_o believe_v what_o these_o witness_n say_v that_o we_o shall_v apply_v our_o best_a endeavour_n to_o please_v he_o by_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a and_o by_o abstain_v from_o the_o least_o appearance_n of_o evil_a think_v what_o jesus_n be_v and_o then_o resolve_v with_o yourselves_o what_o regard_n be_v due_a to_o his_o word_n will_v not_o the_o wicked_a man_n tremble_v when_o he_o hear_v he_o say_v that_o none_o shall_v go_v to_o heaven_n but_o they_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n then_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o do_v not_o mind_n what_o he_o read_v who_o can_v with_o any_o face_n call_v he_o lord_n lord_n and_o not_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o say_v and_o to_o acknowledge_v this_o and_o not_o do_v those_o thing_n what_o a_o madness_n be_v that_o if_o we_o believe_v our_o lord_n be_v able_a to_o call_v we_o to_o a_o severe_a account_n for_o our_o neglect_n of_o his_o will_n what_o be_v there_o that_o can_v recommend_v chastity_n and_o purity_n of_o heart_n to_o our_o affection_n together_o with_o mercifulness_n meekness_n peaceableness_n poverty_n or_o contentedness_n of_o spirit_n the_o humility_n of_o little_a child_n say_v in_o god_n providence_n and_o such_o like_a virtue_n if_o this_o will_v not_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v preach_v they_o to_o the_o world_n as_o the_o most_o amiable_a quality_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n without_o which_o we_o shall_v never_o see_v he_o nor_o inherit_v his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n be_v not_o these_o his_o word_n do_v not_o his_o sermon_n teach_v we_o these_o lesson_n and_o if_o we_o do_v these_o thing_n do_v he_o not_o say_v we_o shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o enter_v into_o his_o joy_n and_o see_v the_o glory_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o for_o what_o cause_n do_v we_o question_v whether_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o happiness_n do_v not_o the_o same_o witness_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n testify_v withal_o that_o he_o come_v to_o teach_v we_o god_n will_v and_o that_o this_o be_v his_o will_n which_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v declare_v unto_o we_o why_o do_v we_o not_o serious_o believe_v it_o then_o let_v i_o ask_v again_o
be_v not_o the_o witness_n good_a who_o affirm_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v we_o not_o examine_v they_o and_o find_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v reject_v they_o or_o will_v you_o receive_v nothing_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o a_o witness_n that_o be_v a_o very_a strange_a obstinacy_n which_o reject_v so_o certain_a a_o way_n of_o know_v many_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v otherways_o know_v for_o the_o notice_n of_o thing_n do_v not_o come_v to_o we_o all_o one_o way_n but_o by_o divers_a mean_n either_o by_o our_o sense_n or_o by_o our_o reason_n and_o discourse_n or_o by_o report_n by_o all_o these_o way_n the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n be_v convey_v to_o our_o mind_n and_o if_o we_o refuse_v to_o be_v inform_v by_o any_o of_o they_o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o thing_n certain_o true_a and_o of_o great_a consequence_n to_o we_o of_o which_o we_o must_v remain_v ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v other_o country_n far_o distant_a from_o this_o where_o we_o live_v and_o that_o such_o and_o such_o thing_n be_v there_o to_o be_v have_v and_o have_v be_v there_o do_v most_o man_n can_v know_v by_o no_o mean_n but_o only_o by_o report_n for_o there_o be_v but_o few_o that_o can_v go_v and_o see_v and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o testimony_n of_o another_o in_o this_o case_n deprive_v himself_o of_o a_o considerable_a piece_n of_o knowledge_n whereof_o other_o partake_v and_o which_o may_v be_v as_o useful_a to_o he_o as_o it_o prove_v to_o they_o but_o if_o for_o this_o wilful_a loss_n he_o shall_v pretend_v to_o assign_v a_o just_a cause_n say_v that_o he_o can_v believe_v any_o thing_n unless_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v to_o he_o by_o clear_a and_o evident_a consequence_n from_o principle_n of_o know_a reason_n he_o will_v become_v ridiculous_a for_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o expect_v the_o knowledge_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o any_o other_o way_n but_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a for_o its_o conveyance_n to_o we_o to_o demand_v a_o proof_n of_o a_o matter_n of_o reason_n from_o our_o sense_n or_o for_o what_o we_o discern_v by_o our_o sense_n from_o our_o reason_n be_v equal_o ridiculous_a and_o so_o it_o be_v to_o demand_v a_o evidence_n for_o thing_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o know_v by_o report_n only_o either_o from_o our_o sense_n or_o our_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n come_v to_o our_o notice_n only_o by_o faith_n be_v plain_a from_o what_o pass_v every_o day_n and_o it_o be_v as_o plain_a that_o they_o must_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a in_o their_o proper_a way_n that_o be_v by_o the_o soundness_n of_o the_o testimony_n upon_o which_o we_o receive_v they_o as_o no_o man_n require_v a_o reason_n for_o what_o he_o see_v and_o feel_v nor_o ask_v that_o he_o may_v see_v with_o his_o eye_n that_o of_o which_o he_o reason_n and_o discourse_n so_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o testimony_n of_o sense_n or_o reason_n for_o that_o which_o he_o can_v know_v by_o no_o way_n but_o by_o report_n as_o for_o example_n no_o man_n demand_v a_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o sun_n shine_v in_o this_o his_o sense_n give_v he_o satisfaction_n and_o if_o he_o be_v bear_v blind_a no_o reason_n can_v prove_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o night_n nor_o do_v any_o man_n that_o be_v in_o his_o wit_n require_v that_o he_o may_v behold_v god_n with_o his_o eye_n who_o he_o know_v by_o discourse_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o know_v he_o also_o by_o that_o to_o be_v invisible_a in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v altogether_o preposterous_a when_o a_o man_n come_v and_o report_v that_o such_o a_o person_n die_v on_o such_o a_o day_n to_o ask_v for_o a_o reason_n to_o prove_v it_o or_o to_o demand_v that_o he_o may_v see_v it_o for_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o see_v he_o die_v again_o upon_o that_o day_n that_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v know_v either_o of_o those_o way_n by_o sense_n or_o reason_n but_o only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o other_o who_o be_v present_a at_o that_o time_n and_o be_v we_o think_v worthy_a of_o belief_n why_o do_v we_o ask_v then_o for_o any_o other_o proof_n that_o jesus_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n at_o such_o a_o time_n do_v such_o wonderful_a work_n preach_v such_o a_o holy_a doctrine_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a ascend_v to_o heaven_n and_o send_v from_o thence_o the_o holy_a ghost_n these_o be_v not_o thing_n now_o to_o be_v see_v or_o feel_v nor_o can_v we_o gather_v they_o from_o the_o mere_a discourse_n of_o our_o own_o reason_n which_o tell_v we_o nothing_o of_o they_o but_o we_o have_v they_o by_o report_n from_o a_o great_a many_o witness_n who_o say_v they_o see_v and_o hear_v and_o feel_v all_o that_o which_o they_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o other_o use_n of_o reason_n in_o this_o case_n but_o only_o to_o examine_v and_o judge_v whether_o this_o report_n be_v credible_a and_o found_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n now_o that_o be_v evident_a to_o any_o impartial_a enquirer_n from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v these_o witness_n who_o report_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o suspect_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o can_v never_o be_v disprove_v why_o shall_v we_o then_o be_v so_o much_o our_o own_o enemy_n as_o to_o deprive_v ourselves_o of_o this_o save_a knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v why_o do_v we_o not_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o report_n of_o these_o witness_n concern_v jesus_n since_o by_o the_o only_a proper_a mean_n whereby_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v prove_v i_o have_v make_v it_o good_a that_o the_o father_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v his_o son_n and_o he_o appear_v in_o glory_n to_o testify_v to_o himself_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n demonstrate_v he_o can_v be_v no_o less_o and_o his_o life_n death_n resurrection_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o which_o there_o be_v so_o many_o upright_a witness_n assure_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n will_v we_o be_v so_o difficult_a to_o be_v persuade_v to_o go_v to_o a_o man_n or_o a_o place_n where_o several_a honest_a neighbour_n inform_v we_o upon_o their_o word_n nay_o upon_o their_o life_n we_o shall_v be_v promote_v to_o great_a honour_n or_o be_v possess_v of_o a_o fair_a estate_n do_v we_o not_o believe_v one_o another_o in_o our_o daily_a traffic_n and_o drive_v considerable_a bargain_n mere_o upon_o the_o credit_n we_o give_v to_o some_o person_n who_o inform_v we_o of_o the_o advantage_n we_o may_v make_v by_o they_o do_v not_o man_n undertake_v long_a journey_n and_o more_o dangerous_a voyage_n mere_o because_o they_o be_v tell_v that_o such_o a_o one_o be_v dead_a to_o who_o they_o be_v heir_n or_o that_o such_o rich_a commodity_n be_v to_o be_v have_v in_o exchange_n for_o mean_a good_n who_o be_v there_o that_o do_v not_o desire_v his_o witness_n may_v be_v accept_v and_o their_o testimony_n take_v for_o good_a proof_n either_o to_o clear_v his_o innocence_n or_o to_o settle_v his_o estate_n now_o say_v the_o apostle_n immediate_o after_o the_o allege_v of_o all_o these_o witness_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n if_o we_o receive_v the_o witness_n of_o man_n the_o witness_n of_o god_n be_v great_a for_o this_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v testify_v of_o his_o son_n the_o meaning_n of_o which_o be_v this_o if_o man_n who_o honesty_n you_o can_v impeach_v give_v their_o testimony_n in_o a_o court_n of_o judicature_n it_o be_v never_o disallow_v nor_o can_v you_o be_v permit_v to_o set_v it_o by_o and_o make_v nothing_o of_o it_o but_o it_o be_v necessary_o admit_v for_o a_o end_n of_o strife_n the_o weighty_a cause_n be_v decide_v all_o matter_n depend_v be_v determine_v and_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o evidence_n that_o be_v give_v by_o witness_n of_o unblemished_a faith_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n as_o the_o know_a saying_n be_v every_o word_n or_o rather_o matter_n be_v establish_v that_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o issue_n and_o conclude_v if_o any_o controversy_n have_v arise_v to_o unsettle_v it_o nay_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o man_n if_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o suspect_v his_o credit_n be_v in_o our_o own_o private_a thought_n though_o not_o in_o law_n satisfaction_n great_a enough_o to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o say_v and_o we_o think_v it_o such_o a_o reproach_n to_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n that_o we_o can_v but_o believe_v he_o find_v a_o desire_n in_o the_o same_o case_n to_o be_v believe_v ourselves_o now_o if_o thing_n stand_v thus_o between_o we_o and_o
good_a work_n two_o tit._n 14._o to_o the_o do_v of_o which_o 6._o he_o have_v give_v we_o the_o spirit_n for_o our_o helper_n every_o miracle_n that_o it_o wrought_v to_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v within_o the_o verge_n of_o these_o word_n bid_v we_o consider_v what_o a_o potent_a lord_n we_o serve_v for_o who_o nothing_o be_v too_o hard_a by_o a_o thousand_o wonder_n by_o more_o miraculous_a work_n than_o we_o can_v have_v have_v time_n to_o read_v shall_v they_o have_v be_v all_o write_v do_v he_o awake_v the_o sleepy_a world_n command_v they_o to_o arise_v and_o go_v about_o his_o work_n and_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o his_o power_n which_o nothing_o can_v withstand_v shall_v aid_v and_o succour_v they_o the_o obedience_n i_o think_v which_o the_o wind_n and_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o fish_n and_o the_o grave_n and_o the_o devil_n themselves_o pay_v he_o call_v upon_o we_o and_o tell_v we_o both_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o what_o assistance_n we_o may_v expect_v from_o the_o power_n of_o his_o might_n to_o make_v we_o obedient_a to_o his_o faith_n who_o can_v resist_v the_o joint_a importunity_n of_o so_o many_o witness_n who_o can_v hear_v all_o these_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o son-of-god_n be_v come_v by_o who_o we_o must_v be_v govern_v and_o yet_o be_v so_o senseless_o obstinate_a as_o to_o say_v we_o will_v not_o have_v this_o man_n to_o rule_v over_o we_o o_o deaf_a ear_n o_o heart_n hard_a than_o the_o nether_a millstone_n which_o will_v not_o let_v such_o loud_a voice_n sink_v into_o they_o such_o mighty_a argument_n penetrate_v and_o mollify_v they_o into_o compliance_n with_o he_o what_o can_v reduce_v such_o soul_n and_o bring_v they_o under_o any_o government_n who_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n i_o may_v call_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o witness_n against_o such_o obdurate_a heart_n the_o father_n word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n these_o be_v witness_n in_o heaven_n that_o testify_v it_o be_v our_o duty_n and_o interest_n too_o to_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o the_o water_n blood_n and_o the_o spirit_n they_o be_v witness_n on_o earth_n which_o agree_v together_o to_o persuade_v we_o to_o take_v his_o easy_a yoke_n upon_o we_o can_v neither_o heaven_n nor_o earth_n prevail_v with_o we_o be_v not_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a great_a enough_o to_o lay_v his_o command_n upon_o we_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o less_o credit_n than_o the_o common_a vogue_n and_o opinion_n of_o the_o world_n with_o we_o can_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v believe_v concern_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v when_o it_o say_v that_o no_o unclean_a thing_n shall_v enter_v in_o thither_o do_v we_o think_v his_o holy_a life_n to_o be_v a_o troublesome_a folly_n and_o despise_v his_o blood_n and_o resist_v his_o spirit_n and_o receive_v all_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a hear_v o_o heaven_n and_o give_v ear_n o_o earth_n after_o god_n have_v send_v many_o of_o his_o servant_n who_o be_v disregard_v he_o last_o of_o all_o send_v his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n say_v sure_o they_o will_v reverence_v my_o son_n but_o they_o have_v rebel_v against_o he_o i_o may_v call_v for_o hell_n itself_o to_o witness_v against_o such_o perverse_a and_o disloyal_a creature_n the_o devil_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o accuse_v such_o man_n hereafter_o for_o they_o believe_v and_o tremble_v they_o acknowledge_v this_o great_a truth_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o god_n four_o luke_n 34._o which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o jesus_n himself_o say_v when_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o father_n have_v sanctify_v he_o i.e._n make_v he_o his_o holy_a one_o and_o send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n x._o john_n 36._o and_o that_o be_v more_o i_o doubt_v than_o a_o great_a many_o irreligious_a spirit_n will_v confess_v in_o their_o work_n i_o be_o sure_a the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n utter_o deny_v it_o do_v you_o think_v the_o devil_n who_o make_v that_o confession_n will_v have_v disobey_v he_o if_o they_o may_v have_v take_v our_o place_n and_o have_v his_o salvation_n offer_v to_o they_o will_v they_o not_o have_v shake_v off_o their_o chain_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o his_o yoke_n have_v they_o receive_v such_o gracious_a invitation_n as_o he_o have_v make_v to_o we_o let_v we_o not_o be_v worse_o than_o they_o i_o beseech_v you_o by_o cast_v away_o that_o hope_n which_o be_v never_o give_v they_o and_o slight_v such_o tender_n of_o mercy_n which_o be_v peculiar_o direct_v to_o the_o child_n of_o man_n but_o let_v we_o rather_o admire_v adore_v and_o magnify_v this_o amaze_a love_n of_o god_n who_o send_v his_o son_n so_o kind_o to_o speak_v to_o such_o wretch_n as_o we_o be_v and_o let_v we_o show_v that_o we_o be_v sensible_a of_o his_o love_n by_o harken_v to_o his_o voice_n and_o ready_o submit_v ourselves_o with_o all_o dutiful_a nay_o joyful_a affection_n to_o his_o command_n see_v i_o beseech_v you_o again_o that_o you_o refuse_v not_o he_o that_o speak_v for_o if_o they_o escape_v not_o who_o refuse_v he_o that_o speak_v on_o earth_n much_o more_o shall_v not_o we_o escape_v if_o we_o turn_v away_o from_o he_o that_o speak_v from_o heaven_n let_v all_o his_o law_n be_v hold_v most_o sacred_a and_o be_v devout_o reverence_v and_o observe_v know_v that_o this_o be_v your_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n nay_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v your_o life_n and_o therefore_o keep_v your_o soul_n diligent_o lest_o you_o forget_v those_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o lest_o they_o depart_v from_o your_o heart_n all_o the_o day_n of_o your_o life_n choose_v death_n rather_o than_o the_o life_n of_o the_o unrighteous_a fornicator_n idolater_n adulterer_n thief_n covetous_a drunkard_n reviler_n and_o extortioner_n who_o he_o have_v pronounce_v shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n do_v you_o not_o remember_v how_o observant_a the_o child_n of_o jonadab_n the_o son_n of_o rechab_n be_v of_o their_o father_n commandment_n and_o how_o they_o can_v not_o be_v tempt_v no_o not_o by_o a_o prophet_n to_o contradict_v it_o xxxv_o jer._n 6._o what_o argument_n i_o pray_v you_o have_v they_o so_o reasonable_a and_o move_a as_o those_o which_o urge_v we_o for_o this_o injunction_n may_v they_o not_o have_v slip_v many_o way_n with_o better_a colour_n than_o we_o can_v do_v from_o this_o obligation_n do_v there_o want_v plausible_a pretence_n to_o plead_v their_o excuse_n if_o they_o have_v absolve_v themselves_o and_o not_o observe_v it_o may_v they_o not_o have_v say_v that_o every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o none_o to_o be_v refuse_v that_o their_o stomach_n sometime_o require_v a_o little_a wine_n and_o that_o it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n that_o their_o father_n have_v go_v beyond_o his_o authority_n and_o take_v away_o the_o just_a liberty_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v they_o that_o they_o be_v restrain_v enough_o by_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o that_o there_o need_v no_o more_o of_o his_o make_n o_o the_o insensibleness_n and_o ingratitude_n of_o christian_a people_n that_o can_v think_v of_o these_o man_n reverence_n to_o so_o severe_a and_o hard_a a_o command_n of_o their_o father_n and_o be_v less_o obedient_a to_o their_o most_o gracious_a lord_n what_o a_o forehead_n have_v that_o man_n who_o dare_v venture_v to_o break_v any_o of_o his_o precept_n when_o he_o have_v so_o many_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v lay_v none_o upon_o we_o but_o those_o which_o be_v the_o very_a mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n and_o be_v such_o a_o necessary_a indispensable_a burden_n that_o unless_o we_o carry_v they_o we_o can_v be_v save_v there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v pretend_v why_o we_o shall_v not_o strict_o tie_v ourselves_o to_o his_o will_n not_o only_o the_o love_n which_o engage_v the_o rechabite_v enforce_v our_o obedience_n but_o infinite_o more_o reason_n than_o there_o be_v in_o their_o father_n will_n and_o pleasure_n for_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o can_v not_o but_o have_v a_o perfect_a understanding_n of_o what_o be_v fit_a and_o convenient_a for_o we_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o other_o way_n more_o easy_a to_o heaven_n than_o this_o he_o have_v set_v before_o we_o we_o can_v but_o think_v he_o will_v have_v reveal_v it_o unto_o we_o if_o there_o be_v any_o licence_n that_o can_v be_v grant_v we_o to_o dispense_v with_o our_o obedience_n he_o be_v not_o so_o unkind_a as_o to_o conceal_v it_o much_o less_o will_v he_o have_v take_v it_o upon_o his_o death_n that_o none_o will_v be_v allow_v for_o he_o declare_v open_o in_o his_o sermon_n that_o he_o will_v not_o only_o take_v
lightning_n strike_v into_o his_o mind_n xviii_o psal_n 33._o he_o make_v my_o foot_n like_o hind_n foot_n and_o set_v i_o upon_o my_o high_a place_n which_o he_o expound_v to_o this_o sense_n god_n will_v enable_v i_o with_o speed_n and_o easiness_n to_o run_v not_o only_o upon_o the_o even_a ground_n and_o over_o the_o plain_n but_o in_o craggy_a and_o steep_a place_n he_o will_v lead_v i_o not_o only_o upon_o the_o level_n but_o assist_v i_o to_o climb_v mountain_n and_o to_o overtop_v the_o high_a difficulty_n that_o be_v in_o my_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_z immediate_o he_o find_v all_o his_o fear_n vanish_v his_o resolution_n determine_v and_o such_o a_o courage_n put_v into_o he_o that_o from_o this_o time_n forward_o he_o be_v immovable_o bend_v to_o that_o former_o dreadful_a kind_n of_o life_n will_v not_o this_o word_n of_o god_n then_o think_v you_o which_o i_o have_v expound_v inspire_v we_o with_o as_o manly_a a_o resolution_n and_o greatness_n of_o mind_n to_o obey_v god_n unquestionable_a command_n if_o we_o do_v but_o suffer_v it_o to_o penetrate_v into_o our_o heart_n do_v we_o but_o conceive_v that_o we_o hear_v the_o father_n say_v to_o we_o perpetual_o this_o be_v my_o son_n this_o that_o come_v by_o water_n and_o blood_n that_o climb_v even_o the_o cross_n itself_o that_o surmount_v the_o high_a difficulty_n he_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n and_o if_o we_o think_v we_o hear_v the_o word_n say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o feel_v the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v he_o with_o the_o same_o heavenly_a thought_n the_o whole_a glorious_a trinity_n tell_v we_o they_o will_v assist_v we_o and_o afford_v we_o their_o continual_a help_n it_o can_v not_o but_o give_v wing_n as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o our_o foot_n and_o make_v we_o skip_v over_o the_o most_o mountainous_a discouragement_n and_o run_v the_o way_n of_o god_n commandment_n and_o not_o be_v tire_v that_o we_o may_v follow_v after_o and_o go_v to_o the_o bless_a jesus_n for_o the_o course_n of_o life_n which_o that_o gentleman_n affect_v be_v that_o of_o a_o religious_a order_n as_o they_o call_v it_o where_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o do_v more_o than_o god_n command_v to_o live_v by_o a_o rule_n strict_a than_o the_o gospel_n and_o under_o the_o will_n of_o a_o superior_a who_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v as_o if_o he_o be_v christ_n himself_o and_o it_o be_v not_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o place_n neither_o which_o thus_o animate_v he_o and_o put_v it_o into_o his_o heart_n to_o undergo_v such_o a_o servitude_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o do_v the_o will_n of_o man_n so_o cheerful_o and_o undertake_v more_o than_o god_n require_v of_o we_o and_o upon_o a_o weak_a persuasion_n by_o accommodate_v the_o sense_n of_o a_o holy_a word_n to_o his_o own_o present_a thought_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o a_o right_a faith_n will_v endue_v we_o with_o the_o like_a power_n notwithstanding_o the_o appearance_n of_o great_a labour_n in_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n in_o obedience_n to_o his_o indispensable_a command_n we_o have_v this_o word_n of_o god_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n the_o prime_a and_o natural_a intention_n of_o which_o be_v to_o make_v we_o confident_a that_o he_o who_o lead_v we_o in_o this_o way_n the_o captain_n that_o conduct_n we_o be_v god_n son_n his_o most_o dear_o belove_v who_o can_v but_o be_v as_o faithful_a as_o he_o be_v powerful_a to_o make_v good_a all_o his_o promise_n to_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v the_o rather_o strive_v to_o follow_v after_o he_o and_o to_o run_v with_o joy_n the_o race_n that_o be_v set_v before_o we_o because_o than_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o honour_n still_o to_o testify_v to_o he_o upon_o earth_n we_o shall_v be_v his_o witness_n and_o prove_v at_o this_o day_n by_o his_o mighty_a power_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o life_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n turk_n and_o jew_n that_o read_v not_o our_o book_n can_v be_v convince_v by_o any_o argument_n at_o present_a so_o much_o as_o by_o this_o they_o see_v how_o we_o live_v but_o we_o can_v show_v they_o no_o miracle_n to_o convince_v they_o nor_o can_v we_o make_v they_o hear_v the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n for_o their_o conversion_n till_o we_o can_v recommend_v our_o bible_n to_o their_o serious_a consideration_n and_o the_o only_a way_n to_o do_v that_o be_v for_o we_o to_o live_v more_o just_o sober_o charitable_o and_o pious_o than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n by_o which_o mean_v they_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o have_v better_a thought_n of_o jesus_n by_o have_v good_a thought_n of_o we_o and_o be_v induce_v to_o read_v our_o book_n by_o see_v so_o much_o of_o they_o in_o our_o good_a work_n and_o what_o happy_a day_n may_v we_o hope_v to_o see_v can_v we_o but_o use_v this_o argument_n to_o prove_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o no_o man_n be_v so_o good_a so_o holy_a and_o pure_a so_o peaceable_a and_o kind-hearted_a so_o free_a from_o fraud_n &_o all_o guile_n as_o those_o who_o be_v call_v by_o his_o name_n how_o glorious_a then_o will_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v over_o all_o the_o world_n his_o word_n will_v run_v and_o be_v glorify_v as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o thess_n iii._o 1._o just_a as_o it_o do_v in_o ancient_a day_n when_o they_o can_v say_v confident_o non_fw-fr de_fw-fr nostro_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la illorum_fw-la numero_fw-la etc._n etc._n 19_o etc._n lact._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 19_o they_o be_v not_o of_o our_o company_n but_o of_o they_o that_o follow_v the_o heathen_a superstition_n who_o rob_v and_o steal_v by_o sea_n and_o land_n who_o murder_n and_o kill_v who_o cheat_n and_o cozen_v who_o drink_n and_o swill_v who_o prostitute_v their_o body_n and_o profane_v themselves_o by_o filthy_a fust_n the_o whore_n the_o fornicator_n the_o cheat_n the_o forger_n of_o will_n and_o testament_n the_o drunkard_n the_o thief_n the_o perjure_a person_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o wicked_a crew_n be_v of_o their_o number_n nothing_o of_o this_o can_v be_v object_v to_o our_o people_n who_o whole_a religion_n be_v to_o live_v without_o wickedness_n nay_o without_o any_o spot_n or_o blemish_n how_o will_v it_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o all_o the_o world_n nay_o make_v they_o fall_v down_o and_o confess_v that_o god_n be_v certain_o among_o we_o can_v we_o but_o say_v thus_o in_o our_o day_n and_o make_v such_o a_o challenge_n to_o turk_n and_o all_o other_o unbeliever_n shall_v we_o always_o let_v our_o saviour_n want_v this_o noble_a testimony_n shall_v we_o do_v nothing_o but_o talk_v of_o he_o and_o prattle_v of_o our_o faith_n and_o make_v our_o boast_n that_o we_o be_v right_a believer_n and_o damn_v all_o infidel_n people_n alas_o alas_o these_o big_a word_n will_v do_v nothing_o as_o long_o as_o they_o see_v we_o live_v no_o better_o than_o they_o we_o shall_v not_o persuade_v they_o that_o we_o believe_v better_o and_o therefore_o let_v we_o have_v this_o worthy_a ambition_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o become_v witness_n ourselves_o unto_o jesus_n let_v we_o study_v how_o to_o show_v forth_o his_o praise_n or_o rather_o power_n 2.9_o power_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o pet._n 2.9_o who_o have_v call_v we_o into_o this_o marvellous_a light_n and_o since_o we_o can_v do_v it_o by_o miracle_n let_v we_o do_v it_o by_o well_o do_v and_o patient_a continuance_n in_o it_o so_o shall_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v glorify_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o according_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 2_o thess_n i._o 12._o who_o at_o his_o appear_v will_v bear_v witness_n to_o we_o xi_o hebr._n 4._o that_o we_o be_v faithful_a and_o righteous_a by_o receive_v we_o as_o god_n do_v abel_n gift_n up_o unto_o himself_o for_o hereby_o also_o we_o shall_v be_v instrument_n of_o convey_v this_o faith_n down_o to_o posterity_n with_o some_o power_n will_v you_o not_o have_v they_o believe_v the_o same_o that_o you_o do_v be_v it_o not_o your_o desire_n that_o the_o next_o age_n may_v confess_v he_o as_o well_o as_o this_o there_o be_v no_o such_o effectual_a mean_n can_v be_v think_v of_o to_o promote_v and_o propagate_v his_o faith_n as_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o in_o a_o holy_a life_n this_o will_v make_v man_n afraid_a now_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o he_o and_o this_o will_v teach_v our_o child_n after_o we_o to_o be_v zealous_a professor_n of_o christianity_n and_o not_o such_o cold_a believer_n or_o such_o infidel_n as_o we_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o world_n assure_v yourselves_o it_o be_v profaneness_n which_o have_v make_v so_o many_o unbeliever_n in_o this_o
age._n increase_n of_o wickedness_n not_o only_o in_o themselves_o but_o other_o have_v make_v some_o so_o impudent_a as_o to_o scoff_n at_o religion_n and_o blaspheme_n christ_n while_o they_o see_v those_o who_o acknowledge_v he_o do_v no_o better_o than_o themselves_o they_o be_v incline_v to_o think_v that_o their_o belief_n make_v they_o no_o more_o worth_n than_o those_o who_o have_v none_o at_o all_o nay_o since_o they_o concur_v with_o they_o in_o their_o wicked_a practice_n they_o imagine_v that_o their_o fear_n of_o hell_n and_o hope_v of_o heaven_n be_v no_o part_n of_o their_o belief_n but_o only_o of_o their_o profession_n the_o hand_n of_o infidel_n be_v strengthen_v in_o their_o impiety_n by_o the_o perfidiousness_n of_o ungodly_a believer_n they_o join_v with_o they_o to_o pull_v down_o christian_a belief_n and_o make_v that_o be_v think_v nothing_o which_o do_v nothing_o above_o what_o infidelity_n do_v and_o therefore_o let_v all_o those_o who_o love_v the_o memory_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o love_v their_o posterity_n and_o will_v not_o have_v they_o in_o danger_n to_o be_v drown_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o infidelity_n put_v a_o stop_n to_o it_o by_o hold_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o a_o pure_a conscience_n 1_o tim._n three_o 9_o let_v every_o one_o that_o name_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n depart_v from_o iniquity_n and_o endeavour_v all_o he_o can_v to_o support_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o name_n and_o of_o his_o religion_n by_o a_o strict_a observance_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a command_n they_o who_o believe_v not_o or_o mind_v not_o what_o they_o believe_v may_v think_v it_o strange_a that_o you_o run_v not_o with_o they_o to_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n speak_v evil_a of_o you_o 1_o pet._n four_o 4._o but_o you_o belove_v build_v up_o yourselves_o on_o your_o most_o holy_a faith_n pray_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n keep_v yourselves_o in_o love_n of_o god_n look_v for_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n unto_o eternal_a life_n judas_n 20.21_o and_o that_o now_o be_v the_o next_o thing_n which_o flow_v from_o hence_o if_o we_o believe_v the_o record_n or_o witness_v which_o god_n have_v give_v of_o his_o son_n it_o contain_v in_o it_o the_o great_a joy_n in_o the_o world_n for_o this_o be_v the_o record_n that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o we_o eternal_a life_n and_o this_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n but_o i_o must_v refer_v that_o to_o another_o discourse_n alone_o by_o itself_o glory_n be_v to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy-ghost_n glory_n in_o the_o high_a let_v the_o holy_a and_o undivided_a trinity_n be_v for_o ever_o glorify_v by_o all_o mankind_n especial_o by_o all_o christian_a people_n who_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eye_n have_v not_o see_v nor_o ear_n hear_v neither_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v for_o they_o that_o love_v he_o but_o god_n have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n bless_a be_v god_n i_o most_o thankful_o receive_v the_o manifold_a testimony_n which_o he_o have_v give_v of_o his_o well_o belove_a son_n and_o humble_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o the_o whole_a family_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v name_v that_o he_o will_v grant_v i_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n by_o the_o same_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o my_o heart_n by_o faith_n that_o be_v root_v and_o ground_v in_o love_n i_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o breadth_n and_o length_n and_o depth_n and_o height_n and_o to_o know_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o pass_v knowledge_n that_o i_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n and_o god_n forbid_v that_o any_o soul_n who_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o these_o witness_n of_o god_n shall_v refuse_v and_o turn_v away_o from_o he_o that_o speak_v from_o heaven_n and_o have_v declare_v to_o we_o the_o unsearchable_a riches_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o his_o will_n o_o that_o all_o they_o upon_o who_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n have_v shine_v may_v most_o hearty_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n let_v they_o all_o be_v knit_v together_o in_o love_n unto_o all_o riches_n of_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o understanding_n to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o christ_n in_o who_o be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n and_o god_n forbid_v that_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v hold_v the_o truth_n in_o unrighteousness_n but_o as_o they_o have_v receive_v christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n so_o let_v they_o walk_v in_o he_o root_v and_o build_v up_o in_o he_o and_o establish_v in_o the_o faith_n as_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v abound_v therein_o with_o thanksgiving_n and_o quicken_v that_o faith_n o_o thou_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o it_o that_o it_o may_v work_v with_o great_a power_n in_o all_o christian_a heart_n and_o mighty_o bow_v their_o will_n to_o forgo_v any_o of_o their_o own_o desire_n rather_o than_o displease_v thou_o and_o forfeit_v thy_o love_n and_o favour_n let_v it_o enable_v they_o to_o overcome_v the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v be_v no_o long_o slave_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o lust_n of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n but_o conquer_a all_o these_o may_v yield_v themselves_o unto_o god_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n and_o obey_v from_o the_o heart_n that_o form_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o and_o may_v the_o powerful_a work_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o hope_n make_v all_o our_o duty_n easy_a to_o we_o that_o we_o may_v ever_o render_v thou_o cheerful_a as_o well_o as_o constant_a service_n may_v thy_o testimony_n be_v our_o daily_a delight_n and_o the_o rejoice_v of_o our_o heart_n may_v we_o love_v they_o above_o gold_n yea_o above_o fine_a gold_n may_v they_o be_v dear_a unto_o we_o than_o thousand_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n may_v we_o daily_o renew_v our_o strength_n and_o run_v and_o not_o be_v weary_a and_o walk_v and_o not_o faint_a may_v the_o holiness_n of_o our_o life_n bear_v witness_n to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o other_o may_v glorify_v thou_o our_o god_n for_o our_o profess_a subjection_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o obtain_v a_o good_a report_n by_o faith_n and_o carry_v this_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o world_n with_o we_o that_o we_o have_v please_v thou_o thou_o may_v receive_v we_o to_o thyself_o to_o be_v glorify_v with_o thou_o and_o to_o rejoice_v in_o thy_o love_n towards_o we_o for_o ever_o amen_n the_o end_n our_o lord_n ascension_n acts._n 1_o 9_o and_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n while_o they_o be_v hold_v he_o be_v take_v up_o &_o a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n to_o and_o while_o they_o steadfast_o look_v towards_o heaven_n behold_v two_o man_n stand_v by_o they_o in_o white_a apparel_n h._n which_o also_o say_v this_o same_o le_fw-fr sus_fw-la shall_v so_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n the_o witness_n to_o christianity_n or_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o a_o discourse_n upon_o 1_o s._n john_n v._n 11._o part_n ii_o by_o simon_n patrick_n d.d._n chaplain_n in_o ordinary_a to_o his_o majesty_n london_n print_v by_o e._n flesher_n for_o r._n royston_n bookseller_n to_o his_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n mdclxxvii_o to_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n gilbert_n by_o divine_a providence_n lord_z archbishop_z of_o canterbury_z primate_n of_o all_o england_n and_o metropolitan_a and_o one_o of_o his_o majesty_n be_v most_o honourable_a privy_a council_n etc._n etc._n may_v it_o please_v your_o grace_n to_o cast_v your_o eye_n upon_o the_o second_o part_n of_o that_o work_n the_o first_o part_n of_o which_o i_o take_v the_o confidence_n to_o address_v unto_o your_o grace_n the_o last_o year_n it_o be_v concern_v that_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v with_o the_o father_n as_o st._n john_n speak_v and_o now_o be_v manifest_v to_o we_o by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v publish_v the_o most_o gracious_a purpose_n of_o god_n the_o father_n towards_o we_o the_o thought_n of_o which_o as_o they_o can_v but_o be_v at_o all_o time_n exceed_v welcome_a to_o devout_a christian_n especial_o to_o those_o who_o be_v faithful_a minister_n in_o christ_n kingdom_n so_o never_o more_o than_o when_o they_o
our_o passion_n be_v not_o master_v forget_v our_o heavenly_a original_a we_o let_v anger_n swell_v and_o rage_n and_o take_v no_o care_n to_o suppress_v that_o pride_n and_o haughtiness_n which_o will_v at_o last_o lay_v we_o low_o we_o do_v not_o chastise_v irrational_a sadness_n nor_o foolish_a pleasure_n nor_o unchaste_a laughter_n nor_o disorderly_a aspect_n nor_o unsatiable_a hear_n nor_o immoderate_a talk_n nor_o absurd_a thought_n nor_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n by_o which_o the_o evil_a one_o take_v advantage_n against_o we_o to_o our_o ruin_n there_o be_v nothing_o like_o to_o this_o but_o quite_o contrary_a we_o give_v liberty_n to_o other_o man_n evil_a affection_n and_o like_o prince_n when_o they_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n require_v nothing_o of_o they_o but_o only_o that_o they_o be_v on_o our_o side_n and_o take_v our_o part_n though_o they_o oppose_v god_n the_o more_o impious_o and_o audacious_o these_o thing_n it_o seem_v be_v then_o too_o manifest_a to_o be_v deny_v and_o notwithstanding_o these_o reproach_n of_o holy_a man_n the_o humour_n propagate_v itself_o to_o aftertime_n for_o the_o cure_n or_o prevention_n of_o which_o nothing_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o preserve_v perpetual_o in_o mind_n as_o that_o counsel_n which_o the_o same_o great_a doctor_n give_v in_o another_o place_n 493._o place_n orat._n xxix_o p._n 493._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n will_v thou_o be_v a_o divine_a and_o worthy_a of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d keep_v the_o commandment_n go_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n precept_n practice_n be_v the_o best_a step_n thou_o can_v take_v to_o contemplation_n which_o be_v the_o sure_a advice_n for_o all_o christian_n to_o follow_v who_o must_v not_o think_v by_o any_o other_o mean_v to_o arrive_v at_o that_o blissful_a sight_n of_o god_n in_o which_o our_o knowledge_n of_o he_o will_v be_v perfect_v in_o the_o other_o world_n of_o which_o beatifical_a vision_n i_o have_v not_o adventure_v to_o say_v much_o in_o the_o ensue_a treatise_n because_o our_o manner_n of_o live_v as_o saint_n augustine_n paulinam_fw-la augustine_n epist_n cxii_o ad_fw-la paulinam_fw-la speak_v in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o upon_o this_o very_a subject_n be_v of_o more_o consideration_n in_o this_o inquiry_n than_o our_o manner_n of_o speak_v nam_fw-la qui_fw-la didicerunt_fw-la à_fw-la domino_fw-la jesus_n mite_n esse_fw-la &_o humiles_fw-la cord_n plùs_fw-la cogitando_fw-la &_o orando_fw-la proficiunt_fw-la quàm_fw-la legendo_fw-la &_o audiendo_fw-la for_o they_o that_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v lowly_a and_o humble_a in_o heart_n profit_n more_o by_o meditation_n and_o prayer_n than_o they_o can_v by_o read_v and_o hear_v but_o something_o i_o have_v say_v as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v find_v any_o direction_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o warrant_v we_o to_o conclude_v that_o the_o participation_n we_o have_v of_o god_n now_o shall_v be_v so_o improve_v in_o the_o other_o world_n that_o whatsoever_o we_o enjoy_v of_o he_o here_o we_o shall_v in_o a_o high_a and_o after_o a_o more_o perfect_a manner_n with_o the_o addition_n of_o immortality_n enjoy_v when_o we_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a we_o be_v now_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o bid_v we_o be_v confident_a of_o it_o and_o rejoice_v in_o it_o and_o yet_o he_o mention_n this_o as_o a_o special_a privilege_n belong_v to_o we_o after_o the_o resurrection_n when_o we_o shall_v not_o marry_v nor_o die_v any_o more_o but_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o angel_n and_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o resurrection_n xx_o luk._n 35_o 36._o just_o as_o it_o be_v with_o our_o lord_n christ_n himself_o who_o be_v in_o a_o more_o special_a and_o excellent_a manner_n call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n after_o his_o rise_n from_o the_o dead_a when_o god_n say_v to_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o advance_v he_o that_o be_v to_o a_o more_o excellent_a degree_n of_o likeness_n to_o he_o in_o power_n and_o dominion_n put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n so_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o all_o those_o son_n who_o he_o bring_v unto_o glory_n they_o shall_v be_v more_o near_o relate_v to_o god_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o resemble_v he_o more_o exact_o who_o image_n they_o now_o bear_v in_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n but_o how_o much_o he_o will_v then_o impart_v of_o himself_o to_o we_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v not_o able_a to_o inform_v we_o we_o be_v now_o the_o son_n of_o god_n faith_n saint_n john_n 1_o ep._n three_o 2._o but_o it_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d how_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o other_o world_n we_o now_o find_v i_o may_v add_v by_o a_o parity_n of_o reason_n a_o great_a pleasure_n in_o holy_a thought_n we_o feel_v the_o joy_n of_o ardent_a love_n be_v ravish_v with_o the_o melody_n of_o song_n of_o praise_n and_o with_o the_o sweet_a violence_n of_o a_o glance_n of_o light_n from_o heaven_n upon_o we_o and_o we_o be_v fure_z we_o shall_v be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o have_v a_o great_a increase_n of_o this_o pleasure_n when_o we_o remove_v from_o hence_o but_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v how_o we_o shall_v think_v nor_o what_o will_v be_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o heavenly_a love_n nor_o what_o new_a song_n shall_v be_v put_v into_o our_o mouth_n nor_o how_o god_n will_v look_v in_o upon_o we_o when_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v we_o must_v be_v content_a to_o know_v that_o all_o these_o will_v bear_v a_o proportion_n to_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o he_o who_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o have_v love_v we_o so_o much_o as_o to_o purchase_v we_o with_o a_o great_a price_n and_o to_o give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o we_o and_o according_a to_o the_o love_n of_o he_o that_o die_v for_o we_o and_o be_v go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o we_o that_o where_o he_o be_v there_o we_o may_v be_v also_o in_o this_o hope_n we_o may_v now_o rejoice_v though_o we_o do_v not_o at_o present_a see_v our_o lord_n with_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n for_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o undeniable_a argument_n that_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v power_n to_o his_o son_n jesus_n to_o make_v we_o more_o happy_a than_o we_o can_v now_o conceive_v and_o that_o he_o will_v undoubted_o bring_v we_o to_o live_v with_o himself_o what_o great_a good_n can_v we_o desire_v then_o this_o or_o what_o great_a motive_n can_v be_v think_v of_o to_o persuade_v we_o sincere_o to_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n who_o business_n it_o be_v as_o lactantius_n conclude_v his_o book_n of_o a_o bless_a life_n to_o direct_v we_o to_o the_o eternal_a reward_n of_o the_o heavenly_a treasure_n of_o which_o that_o we_o may_v be_v capable_a we_o must_v present_o disengage_v ourselves_o from_o the_o ensnare_a pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n which_o deceive_v man_n soul_n by_o their_o pernicious_a sweetness_n and_o how_o great_a a_o felicity_n ought_v we_o to_o esteem_v it_o to_o go_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o impurity_n of_o this_o earth_n to_o that_o most_o equal_a judge_n and_o most_o indulgent_a father_n who_o for_o our_o labour_n will_v give_v we_o rest_n for_o death_n life_n for_o darkness_n light_n for_o earthly_a short_a good_n those_o that_o be_v celestial_a and_o eternal_a none_o of_o the_o sharpness_n and_o misery_n which_o we_o endure_v here_o while_o we_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n be_v in_o any_o manner_n to_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o reward_n therefore_o if_o we_o will_v be_v wise_a if_o we_o will_v be_v happy_a let_v we_o propose_v the_o worst_a thing_n that_o can_v be_v to_o ourselves_o and_o resolve_v to_o suffer_v they_o since_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o frail_a pleasure_n we_o have_v here_o shall_v not_o be_v without_o punishment_n nor_o virtue_n without_o a_o divine_a reward_n all_o mankind_n ought_v to_o endeavour_v with_o all_o speed_n to_o direct_v themselves_o into_o the_o right_a way_n that_o have_v undertake_v and_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o virtuous_a life_n and_o patient_o endure_v its_o labour_n they_o may_v be_v worthy_a to_o have_v god_n for_o their_o comforter_n for_o our_o father_n and_o lord_n who_o make_v and_o settle_v the_o heaven_n who_o bring_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o star_n into_o it_o and_o out_o of_o nothing_o raise_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o perfection_n wherein_o we_o see_v it_o behold_v the_o error_n of_o mankind_n send_v a_o leader_n who_o shall_v lay_v before_o we_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n he_o let_v we_o all_o follow_v he_o let_v we_o hear_v he_o let_v we_o most_o
to_o search_v how_o full_a it_o be_v alas_o what_o shallow_a brain_n have_v we_o to_o contain_v a_o wide_a and_o deep_a ocean_n what_o weak_a eye_n to_o look_v steadfast_o upon_o the_o most_o glorious_a light_n of_o heaven_n how_o much_o too_o short_a and_o narrow_a be_v our_o thought_n to_o compass_v a_o eternal_a duration_n when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o we_o can_v the_o best_a way_n i_o think_v to_o our_o satisfaction_n will_v be_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o a_o passage_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n himself_o wherein_o we_o must_v rest_v ourselves_o content_v it_o be_v in_o the_o xxi_o rev._n 7._o where_o st._n john_n be_v tell_v by_o he_o who_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n ver_fw-la 5._o that_o he_o that_o overcome_v shall_v inherit_v all_o thing_n and_o i_o will_v be_v his_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n a_o most_o marvellously-large_a conveyance_n be_v here_o deliver_v to_o we_o from_o he_o who_o have_v all_o that_o can_v be_v in_o his_o possession_n the_o great_a lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n make_v we_o a_o grant_n in_o these_o word_n so_o exceed_o full_a that_o we_o can_v desire_v it_o shall_v run_v in_o more_o comprehensive_a term_n for_o by_o this_o promise_n 1._o he_o make_v over_o to_o we_o all_z thing_n heart_n can_v wish_v more_o to_o make_v we_o complete_o happy_a than_o he_o settle_v upon_o we_o for_o there_o be_v no_o good_a thing_n that_o he_o will_v withhold_v from_o those_o that_o steadfast_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o observe_v 2._o the_o tenure_n wherein_o we_o shall_v hold_v these_o vast_a and_o large_a possession_n which_o be_v as_o a_o inheritance_n we_o have_v a_o everlasting_a perpetual_a estate_n make_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n the_o term_n of_o this_o writing_n be_v such_o as_o if_o it_o have_v run_v in_o these_o word_n by_o a_o eternal_a indefeasible_a right_n he_o shall_v possess_v all_o blessing_n for_o inheritance_n it_o be_v well_o know_v among_o the_o hebrew_n never_o fail_v nor_o go_v out_o of_o the_o family_n they_o can_v not_o be_v so_o alienate_v by_o sale_n or_o gift_n but_o they_o return_v in_o the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n to_o their_o first_o owner_n or_o his_o posterity_n which_o make_v the_o word_n inherit_v in_o the_o holy_a language_n to_o signify_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o a_o purchase_n or_o possession_n out_o of_o which_o the_o inheritor_n can_v never_o be_v throw_v and_o which_o he_o can_v quit_v but_o shall_v remain_v settle_v in_o he_o to_o perpetuity_n this_o st._n paul_n call_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o inhehitance_n i._n eph._n 18._o to_o signify_v that_o our_o celestial_a patrimony_n be_v not_o only_o exceed_v large_a and_o firm_o settle_v on_o we_o but_o also_o most_o noble_a and_o bring_v along_o with_o it_o everlasting_a honour_n and_o renown_n which_o be_v more_o full_o explain_v you_o may_v note_v 3._o and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o give_v in_o the_o next_o word_n i_o will_v be_v god_n to_o he_o i_o will_v confer_v that_o be_v such_o benefit_n on_o he_o as_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o bounty_n of_o the_o omnipotent_a goodness_n to_o bestow_v look_v what_o he_o be_v to_o abraham_n in_o this_o world_n to_o who_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v a_o god_n xvii_o gen._n 7._o that_o he_o will_v be_v to_o we_o eternal_o in_o blessing_n he_o will_v bless_v we_o and_o be_v our_o exceed_a great_a reward_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n answer_v to_o the_o hebrew_n word_n elohim_n which_o do_v not_o respect_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o almighty_a but_o his_o providence_n as_o 1._o as_o in_o psal_n fourteen_o 1._o genebrard_n among_o other_o have_v well_o observe_v and_o signify_v as_o much_o as_o the_o judge_n the_o moderator_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o judge_n magistrate_n and_o ruler_n be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o give_v reward_n and_o punishment_n and_o according_o the_o hebrew_a writer_n observe_v that_o it_o be_v never_o say_v the_o lord_n will_v be_v the_o god_n of_o any_o person_n but_o when_o he_o express_v some_o singularly-great_a kindness_n and_o stand_v in_o a_o special_a relation_n of_o love_n to_o they_o in_o particular_a abarbinell_n note_n upon_o deut._n vi_fw-la that_o he_o be_v never_o call_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n till_o he_o have_v bring_v they_o in_o a_o wonderful_a manner_n out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n the_o house_n of_o bondage_n i_o find_v indeed_o that_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v their_o god_n before_o when_o he_o tell_v abraham_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o and_o his_o seed_n the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o a_o everlasting_a possession_n xvii_o gen._n 8._o but_o he_o do_v not_o begin_v to_o be_v so_o till_o he_o begin_v to_o lead_v they_o thither_o and_o in_o token_n of_o their_o be_v he_o they_o have_v keep_v the_o passeover_n and_o receive_v his_o law_n from_o mount_n sinai_n before_o this_o moses_n say_v we_o be_v bondman_n in_o egypt_n and_o the_o lord_n bring_v we_o out_o with_o a_o mighty_a hand_n vi_fw-la deuter_n 21._o and_o the_o lord_n show_v sign_n and_o wonder_n great_a and_o sore_o upon_o egypt_n upon_o pharaoh_n and_o upon_o all_o his_o household_n before_o our_o eye_n ver_fw-la 22._o he_o do_v not_o say_v in_o all_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_z our_o god_n but_o only_o the_o lord_n bring_v we_o out_o and_z the_o lord_z show_v because_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n before_o the_o give_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v the_o great_a kindness_n he_o do_v they_o after_o they_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o that_o say_v abarbinel_n in_o the_o very_a next_o word_n ver_fw-la 24._o he_o alter_v his_o style_n and_o tell_v they_o the_o lord_z command_v we_o to_o do_v all_o these_o statute_n to_o fear_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n for_o our_o good_a always_o etc._n etc._n and_o ver_fw-la 25._o it_o shall_v be_v our_o righteousness_n if_o we_o observe_v to_o do_v all_o these_o commandment_n before_o the_o lord_z our_o god_n as_o he_o have_v command_v we_o and_o so_o he_o speak_v seven_o 1._o when_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v bring_v thou_o into_o the_o land_n etc._n etc._n and_o ver_fw-la 2._o when_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v deliver_v they_o before_o thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o ver_fw-la 6._o thou_o be_v a_o holy_a people_n to_o the_o lord_z thy_o god_n the_o lord_n thy_o god_n have_v choose_v thou_o to_o be_v a_o special_a people_n to_o himself_o etc._n etc._n for_o from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o appear_v on_o mount_n sinai_n and_o so_o forward_o say_v that_o learned_a hebrew_n writer_n he_o be_v our_o god_n because_o than_o we_o take_v upon_o we_o his_o divinity_n and_o i_o think_v i_o may_v as_o true_o observe_v that_o till_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n from_o the_o dead_a which_o complete_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d departure_n which_o moses_n and_o elias_n discourse_v with_o he_o about_o and_o say_v he_o shall_v accomplish_v at_o jerusalem_n ix_o luke_n 31._o we_o never_o read_v that_o the_o father_n almighty_n be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o those_o who_o believe_v in_o his_o son_n jesus_n then_o he_o demonstrate_v beyond_o all_o contradiction_n that_o he_o be_v their_o saviour_n and_o mighty_a deliverer_n who_o will_v rescue_v they_o from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n the_o fear_n of_o death_n the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n and_o give_v they_o immortal_a life_n and_o therefore_o then_o he_o bid_v mary_n go_v and_o tell_v his_o disciple_n who_o he_o call_v brethren_n and_o say_v to_o they_o i_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n and_o to_o my_o god_n and_o your_o god_n xx_o joh._n 17._o this_o be_v the_o first_o time_n he_o be_v call_v their_o god_n but_o ever_o after_o there_o be_v no_o language_n more_o common_a for_o as_o st._n 3._o i_o eph._n 3_o 17._o 1_o pet._n i._n 3._o peter_n and_o st._n paul_n call_v he_o the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n i_o suppose_v because_o he_o have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o high_o glorify_v he_o for_o his_o obedient_a suffering_n of_o death_n so_o they_o address_v themselves_o to_o he_o as_o particular_o relate_v to_o they_o and_o ready_a to_o bestow_v upon_o they_o the_o like_a blessedness_n say_v 9_o i_o rom._n 8._o 1_o cor._n i_o 4._o four_o phil._n 19_o 1_o thess_n iii._o 9_o i_o thank_v my_o god_n always_o etc._n etc._n my_o god_n shall_v supply_v all_o your_o need_n we_o rejoice_v before_o our_o god_n etc._n etc._n as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o many_o place_n of_o st._n paul_n epistle_n which_o show_v that_o this_o promise_n in_o the_o revelation_n make_v after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n of_o be_v the_o god_n of_o
those_o who_o overcome_v include_v in_o it_o the_o bestow_n on_o we_o the_o most_o excellent_a benefit_n because_o he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n in_o a_o more_o excellent_a manner_n than_o he_o ever_o be_v yet_o to_o man_n such_o a_o god_n as_o he_o be_v to_o our_o bless_a lord_n himself_o he_o will_v prefer_v we_o to_o live_v with_o he_o in_o great_a splendour_n and_o glory_n he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o inheritance_n in_o a_o better_a country_n which_o be_v a_o heavenly_a where_o all_o delight_n flow_v and_o never_o cease_v to_o spring_v up_o to_o those_o happy_a soul_n who_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o eternal_a fruit_n of_o his_o great_a love_n for_o so_o he_o add_v 4._o and_o he_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o son_n a_o son_n you_o know_v expect_v the_o inheritance_n of_o his_o father_n because_o to_o he_o it_o proper_o belong_v and_o upon_o he_o it_o descend_v and_o therefore_o to_o be_v to_o god_n a_o son_n be_v to_o be_v make_v like_o he_o and_o to_o live_v with_o he_o in_o that_o very_a happiness_n and_o bliss_n which_o he_o enjoy_v so_o st._n paul_n express_v it_o viij_o rom._n 17._o he_o shall_v be_v a_o heir_n of_o god_n a_o co-heir_n with_o jesus_n who_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n inherit_v his_o glory_n he_o shall_v participate_v that_o be_v with_o god_n in_o his_o everlasting_a life_n kingdom_n honour_n and_o joy_n which_o what_o it_o be_v we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o tell_v no_o more_o than_o we_o can_v comprehend_v what_o his_o majesty_n be_v who_o possess_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o be_v infinite_a in_o all_o perfection_n but_o we_o have_v the_o great_a reason_n that_o can_v be_v to_o expect_v so_o great_a a_o bliss_n because_o we_o know_v that_o god_n love_v his_o son_n jesus_n and_o have_v give_v all_o thing_n into_o his_o hand_n three_o joh._n 35._o we_o be_v sure_a that_o god_n have_v make_v he_o most_o bless_a for_o ever_o he_o have_v make_v he_o exceed_v glad_a with_o his_o countenance_n honour_n and_o majesty_n have_v he_o lay_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o glory_n be_v great_a in_o his_o salvation_n xxi_o psal_n 5_o 6._o now_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a you_o may_v again_o observe_v 5._o that_o the_o general_a intendment_n of_o this_o promise_n be_v to_o put_v we_o in_o hope_n of_o be_v make_v like_o to_o christ_n our_o elder_a brother_n for_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v we_o by_o that_o name_n and_o this_o be_v his_o great_a prerogative_n that_o he_o be_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n when_o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n assure_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v inherit_v all_o thing_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v we_o shall_v share_v with_o christ_n in_o his_o large_a possession_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o note_v how_o the_o holy_a gospel_n describe_v our_o expect_a felicity_n in_o the_o same_o term_n wherein_o it_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o christ_n our_o head_n enjoy_v with_o who_o st._n paul_n say_v we_o shall_v appear_v in_o glory_n and_o reign_v with_o he_o and_o have_v a_o glorious_a body_n like_o he_o and_o in_o order_n to_o it_o be_v catch_v up_o in_o the_o cloud_n 1_o thess_n four_o 17._o which_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n i._n act._n 9_o and_o according_o here_o god_n promise_v to_o he_o that_o overcome_v that_o he_o shall_v inherit_v all_o thing_n in_o conformity_n still_o with_o our_o saviour_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n i._o heb._n 2._o i_o can_v say_v there_o be_v any_o allusion_n in_o these_o word_n to_o the_o olympic_a reward_n give_v to_o the_o conqueror_n in_o those_o combat_n but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o they_o who_o overcome_v there_o be_v account_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d equal_a to_o their_o god_n that_o be_v their_o hero_n or_o deify_v man_n 17._o fabri_fw-la agonist_n l._n two_o c._n 11.16_o 17._o and_o therefore_o have_v statue_n erect_v to_o their_o honour_n and_o a_o annual_a pension_n settle_v on_o they_o for_o their_o more_o noble_a maintenance_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o real_a divine_a honour_n and_o glory_n which_o god_n will_v give_v to_o victorious_a soul_n to_o who_o he_o promise_v not_o a_o small_a pension_n or_o annuity_n but_o a_o inheritance_n and_o that_o of_o all_o thing_n i_o e._n to_o shine_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o can_v prefer_v all_o his_o subject_n to_o such_o a_o greatness_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o like_a god_n then_o man_n so_o st._n greg._n nazianzen_n often_o speak_v that_o 592._o that_o orat._n xxxvi_o p._n 592._o we_o shall_v be_v make_v god_n in_o the_o other_o world_n by_o he_o that_o be_v make_v man_n for_o we_o in_o this_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o tell_v what_o heraclitus_n mean_v by_o that_o speech_n record_v in_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n 1._o alexandrinus_n l._n iii._o padag_n c._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d man_n be_v god_n god_n be_v man_n but_o it_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o reveal_v a_o divine_a state_n to_o which_o we_o shall_v ascend_v when_o we_o leave_v the_o earth_n by_o he_o who_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n into_o a_o vile_a condition_n that_o he_o may_v promote_v we_o thither_o let_v we_o study_v then_o these_o word_n very_o hard_a and_o think_v often_o what_o it_o be_v to_o have_v all_z thing_n that_o the_o love_n of_o the_o almighty_a will_v bestow_v when_o in_o the_o most_o eminent_a sense_n and_o in_o another_o world_n he_o shall_v become_v our_o god_n and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o estate_n in_o he_o that_o can_v never_o be_v cut_v off_o but_o remain_v as_o firm_a as_o the_o throne_n on_o which_o he_o sit_v when_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n and_o then_o if_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o it_o will_v fill_v you_o with_o unspeakable_a joy_n without_o enter_v into_o particular_a inquiry_n to_o think_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o be_v his_o son_n and_o heir_n who_o want_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v desire_v or_o he_o can_v give_v and_o indeed_o these_o other_o word_n eternal_a life_n wherein_o god_n gracious_a promise_n common_o run_v be_v of_o the_o same_o import_n and_o force_v with_o those_o now_o mention_v all_o that_o we_o hope_v for_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o as_o 1._o pardon_v of_o sin_n without_o which_o we_o can_v take_v one_o step_n towards_o so_o great_a a_o bliss_n for_o death_n the_o fruit_n and_o punishment_n of_o sin_n will_v still_o remain_v unless_o sin_n be_v pardon_v and_o than_o what_o hope_n can_v we_o have_v of_o life_n much_o less_o of_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v therefore_o perhaps_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o righteousness_n v._o gal._n 5._o because_o it_o include_v our_o perfect_a justification_n and_o absolution_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n without_o which_o we_o can_v not_o attain_v it_o and_o 2._o it_o suppose_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n which_o be_v begin_v in_o this_o life_n but_o not_o perfect_v till_o the_o next_o when_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o receive_v a_o new_a life_n from_o he_o at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o 3._o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o body_n be_v another_o blessing_n include_v in_o it_o for_o be_v raise_v again_o it_o will_v be_v free_v from_o its_o present_a weakness_n alteration_n and_o pain_n to_o which_o it_o be_v obnoxious_a and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o not_o so_o much_o as_o food_n and_o raiment_n and_o therefore_o the_o time_n when_o he_o will_v bestow_v it_o be_v call_v the_o day_n of_o our_o redemption_n four_o eph._n 30._o to_o which_o must_v be_v add_v 4._o the_o carry_v of_o it_o up_o to_o heaven_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n for_o be_v raise_v a_o spiritual_a body_n it_o will_v not_o be_v fit_a for_o this_o world_n but_o for_o the_o other_o where_o 5._o we_o shall_v rest_v with_o he_o in_o the_o celestial_a inheritance_n and_o enjoy_v all_o the_o happiness_n it_o afford_v for_o life_n you_o have_v hear_v signify_v all_o good_a thing_n and_o last_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o they_o be_v plain_o express_v in_o the_o word_n eternal_a which_o make_v the_o happiness_n of_o this_o heavenly_a life_n appear_v so_o exceed_o great_a that_o our_o present_a life_n compare_v to_o it_o be_v as_o censorinus_n say_v of_o time_n in_o regard_n of_o eternity_n no_o more_o than_o a_o winter_n day_n let_v this_o then_o suffice_v we_o to_o know_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o perfect_a enjoyment_n of_o all_o the_o good_a we_o be_v capable_a to_o receive_v when_o we_o be_v make_v great_a than_o we_o be_v by_o the_o change_n that_o shall_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o at_o our_o departure_n hence_o and_o at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o let_v our_o pain_n
wicked_a whatsoever_o it_o be_v god_n tell_v he_o he_o can_v not_o comprehend_v it_o but_o must_v be_v content_a with_o the_o sight_n only_o of_o his_o back_n part_n not_o of_o his_o face_n xxxiii_o exod._n ult_n that_o be_v say_v maimonides_n with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o something_o of_o his_o essence_n or_o as_o he_o elsewhere_o expound_v it_o 21._o it_o more_o nev._n p._n i._n c._n 21._o of_o his_o work_n and_o attribute_n of_o which_o he_o have_v such_o a_o obscure_a knowledge_n as_o we_o have_v of_o a_o man_n who_o back_n part_v we_o have_v see_v but_o never_o behold_v his_o face_n to_o be_v so_o intimate_o acquaint_v with_o god_n and_o his_o mind_n as_o he_o wish_v be_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o messiah_n alone_o who_o have_v the_o clear_a and_o full_a sight_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n both_o of_o his_o essence_n and_o his_o will_n and_o his_o gracious_a intention_n towards_o we_o for_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o see_v his_o face_n as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v and_o have_v not_o mere_o some_o obscure_a representation_n of_o he_o like_o that_o of_o a_o man_n when_o he_o turn_v his_o back_n to_o we_o but_o a_o full_a view_n of_o he_o in_o all_o his_o perfection_n of_o which_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o very_a image_n and_o what_o he_o see_v he_o have_v by_o god_n express_a will_n reveal_v to_o we_o and_o discover_v those_o thing_n which_o eye_n never_o behold_v but_o be_v keep_v secret_a from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n concern_v the_o glorious_a reward_n which_o his_o love_n will_v give_v to_o all_o pious_a person_n for_o since_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o he_o be_v his_o son_n we_o can_v imagine_v that_o he_o presume_v to_o say_v more_o than_o he_o know_v or_o tell_v we_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o own_o mind_n only_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o eternal_a life_n as_o he_o frequent_o do_v but_o what_o he_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v that_o he_o testify_v as_o it_o be_v iii._o john_n 32._o we_o can_v believe_v otherwise_o 3_o when_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o speak_v the_o very_a truth_n to_o we_o as_o he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n if_o he_o be_v so_o one_o with_o he_o so_o he_o can_v not_o but_o speak_v to_o we_o according_a to_o what_o he_o know_v of_o his_o mind_n for_o as_o the_o father_n be_v truth_n so_o be_v the_o son_n because_o he_o be_v perfect_o the_o same_o with_o the_o father_n we_o worship_v the_o father_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o son_n the_o truth_n who_o be_v two_o in_o person_n but_o one_o in_o consent_n and_o agreement_n and_o identity_n of_o will_n as_o origen_n celsum_fw-la origen_n l._n viij_o contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la speak_v explain_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o x._o joh._n 30._o and_o i_o be_o the_o truth_n fourteen_o 6._o we_o may_v be_v confident_a that_o the_o word_n of_o both_o be_v equal_o faithful_a and_o true_a so_o god_n the_o father_n bad_a st._n john_n write_v of_o his_o own_o say_n as_o i_o observe_v before_o xxi_o rev._n 5._o and_o in_o the_o same_o style_n our_o saviour_n command_v he_o to_o write_v of_o himself_o these_o thing_n say_v the_o amen_o the_o faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n three_o rev._n 14._o john_n baptist_n have_v say_v as_o much_o before_o iii._o joh._n 34._o he_o who_o god_n have_v send_v speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o which_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o another_o place_n of_o that_o gospel_n perfect_o accord_n twelve_o 49_o 50._o i_o have_v not_o speak_v of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n which_o send_v i_o he_o give_v i_o a_o commandment_n what_o i_o shall_v say_v and_o what_o i_o shall_v speak_v and_o i_o know_v that_o his_o commandment_n be_v everlasting_a life_n whatsoever_o i_o speak_v therefore_o even_o as_o the_o father_n say_v unto_o i_o so_o i_o speak_v and_o 4._o he_o have_v no_o less_o power_n than_o he_o have_v truth_n but_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n can_v make_v good_a his_o gracious_a promise_n and_o put_v we_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o eternal_a inheritance_n which_o we_o expect_v as_o coheir_n with_o he_o he_o be_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n by_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a i._n rom._n 4._o according_a to_o his_o own_o prayer_n just_a before_o he_o offer_v up_o himself_o to_o god_n father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v glorify_v thy_o son_n that_o thy_o son_n may_v glorify_v thou_o as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o power_n over_o all_o flesh_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o as_o many_o as_o thou_o have_v give_v he_o xvii_o joh._n 1_o 2._o and_o can_v we_o think_v 5._o that_o he_o will_v not_o faithful_o execute_v this_o trust_n and_o employ_v his_o power_n for_o the_o end_n to_o which_o it_o be_v give_v he_o he_o will_v not_o then_o be_v like_o his_o father_n who_o keep_v truth_n for_o ever_o as_o he_o also_o most_o certain_o will_v be_v the_o same_o jesus_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o xiii_o heb._n 8._o for_o if_o moses_n be_v faithful_a in_o the_o house_n of_o another_o wherein_o he_o be_v but_o a_o servant_n no_o doubt_v our_o lord_n who_o be_v a_o son_n over_o his_o own_o house_n or_o family_n iii._o heb._n 6._o will_n not_o fail_v to_o discharge_v his_o royal_a office_n with_o all_o exactness_n but_o manifest_v himself_o to_o be_v like_o his_o name_n the_o word_n of_o god_n nineteeen_o rev._n 13._o faithful_n and_o true_a ver_fw-la 11._o this_o record_n concern_v he_o st._n john_n think_v so_o weighty_a and_o secure_a a_o evidence_n that_o he_o conclude_v all_o good_a christian_n as_o sure_a of_o eternal_a life_n as_o if_o it_o be_v already_o in_o their_o hand_n for_o after_o he_o have_v say_v here_o in_o the_o word_n i_o be_o explain_v that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o i.e._n make_v we_o a_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v in_o his_o son_n he_o add_v immediate_o which_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n i_o intend_v to_o note_v that_o we_o have_v eternal_a life_n which_o can_v signify_v less_o then_o that_o we_o have_v such_o a_o good_a right_n to_o it_o that_o we_o may_v account_v it_o we_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o that_o effectual_o believe_v in_o jesus_n have_v he_o in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o give_v it_o and_o who_o have_v pass_v his_o word_n many_o a_o time_n that_o he_o will_v bestow_v it_o so_o you_o read_v ver_fw-la 12._o he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n he_o may_v be_v as_o sure_a of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v in_o his_o present_a possession_n for_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n he_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o wellspring_n of_o life_n and_o bliss_n and_o stand_v engage_v divers_a way_n to_o make_v all_o the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n happy_a with_o himself_o for_o to_o as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o he_o give_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d power_n or_o authority_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n i._n joh._n 12._o who_o may_v legal_o claim_v the_o consummation_n of_o their_o adoption_n in_o the_o eternal_a inheritance_n they_o be_v by_o his_o grant_n unquestionable_a heir_n of_o it_o and_o have_v such_o a_o strong_a title_n to_o it_o that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v defeat_v of_o it_o this_o heavenly_a estate_n be_v in_o they_o as_o lawyer_n speak_v though_o they_o be_v not_o in_o it_o they_o have_v a_o indisputable_a right_n i_o mean_v to_o it_o and_o may_v call_v it_o they_o though_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o seize_v of_o it_o and_o have_v not_o take_v possession_n which_o in_o due_a time_n none_o can_v hinder_v or_o debar_v they_o of_o so_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v the_o faithful_a steadfast_o believe_v for_o this_o be_v the_o very_a end_n for_o which_o he_o record_v the_o evidence_n foremention_v that_o they_o may_v know_v they_o have_v eternal_a life_n ver_fw-la 13._o which_o he_o repeat_v often_o in_o his_o gospel_n as_o you_o may_v read_v iii._o joh._n 36._o v._n 24._o vi_fw-la 47._o where_o he_o assert_v this_o in_o the_o most_o earnest_a manner_n and_o assure_v they_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o this_o matter_n out_o of_o certain_a knowledge_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n he_o be_v a_o most_o happy_a man_n and_o may_v look_v upon_o himself_o as_o owner_n of_o more_o than_o all_o this_o world_n be_v worth_a which_o he_o can_v never_o lose_v though_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o enter_v upon_o his_o inheritance_n because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o custody_n of_o he_o who_o have_v
all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o have_v say_v as_o it_o there_o follow_v ver_fw-la 54._o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n well_o then_o see_v that_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n we_o expect_v to_o have_v our_o sin_n blot_v out_o when_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_a shall_v come_v to_o be_v make_v child_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v to_o have_v glorious_a body_n to_o reign_v with_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o see_v we_o be_v say_v to_o have_v this_o bliss_n i.e._n to_o have_v a_o certain_a right_n to_o it_o if_o we_o believe_v on_o he_o and_o see_v also_o that_o our_o right_n be_v apparent_a from_o the_o same_o record_n or_o witness_n whereby_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n all_o that_o i_o can_v apprehend_v remain_v to_o be_v do_v to_o give_v we_o a_o full_a certainty_n of_o these_o promise_n be_v to_o make_v particular_a inquiry_n what_o every_o one_o of_o those_o witness_n which_o testify_v to_o jesus_n say_v to_o this_o point_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o this_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n this_o be_v the_o record_n st._n john_n say_v i.e._n this_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o it_o let_v we_o examine_v if_o you_o please_v all_o these_o six_o witness_n one_o after_o another_o upon_o this_o matter_n and_o see_v if_o they_o do_v not_o give_v the_o same_o evidence_n of_o it_o that_o they_o have_v do_v of_o the_o other_o and_o make_v as_o infallible_a proof_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o this_o blessing_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o he_o as_o they_o do_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o come_v from_o he_o there_o be_v no_o way_n like_o to_o this_o that_o i_o know_v of_o to_o attain_v a_o strong_a faith_n and_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o it_o infinite_o concern_v we_o all_o to_o make_v sure_a and_o to_o have_v a_o well_o ground_a persuasion_n of_o both_o that_o we_o may_v live_v comfortable_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o trouble_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o overcome_v all_o temptation_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v willing_a to_o die_v and_o when_o nothing_o else_o will_v give_v we_o the_o least_o comfort_n we_o may_v lift_v up_o our_o head_n with_o unspeakable_a joy_n for_o what_o can_v deject_v their_o heart_n xxxiv_o macarius_n hom_o xxxiv_o who_o hope_n be_v firm_o fix_v in_o heaven_n what_o shall_v make_v they_o complain_v who_o have_v for_o their_o inheritance_n everlasting_a life_n unspeakable_a unconceivable_a be_v the_o glory_n innumerable_a be_v the_o good_a thing_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v for_o those_o that_o love_v he_o as_o in_o thing_n visible_a the_o plant_n the_o seed_n the_o flower_n be_v so_o numerous_a that_o none_o can_v count_v they_o nor_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o cast_v up_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o other_o treasure_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o as_o in_o the_o sea_n the_o wit_n of_o man_n can_v comprehend_v the_o creature_n in_o it_o either_o their_o number_n or_o their_o kind_n or_o their_o difference_n or_o take_v the_o measure_n of_o its_o water_n or_o of_o its_o place_n or_o as_o in_o the_o air_n none_o can_v number_v the_o bird_n or_o in_o the_o heaven_n tell_v all_o the_o star_n so_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o tell_v or_o conceive_v the_o riches_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o invisible_a world_n their_o unmeasurable_a their_o infinite_a their_o incomprehensible_a riches_n for_o if_o these_o creature_n be_v so_o infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a by_o man_n how_o much_o more_o he_o that_o make_v and_o form_v they_o all_o and_o therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o fill_v every_o christian_a heart_n with_o the_o great_a joy_n and_o exultation_n of_o spirit_n because_o the_o riches_n and_o inheritance_n prepare_v for_o they_o so_o much_o surpass_v all_o that_o can_v be_v utter_v and_o with_o all_o diligence_n and_o humility_n shall_v we_o buckle_v ourselves_o to_o the_o christian_a combat_n that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o their_o riches_n for_o the_o inheritance_n and_o the_o portion_n of_o christian_n be_v god_n himself_o they_o may_v say_v with_o david_n the_o lord_n be_v the_o portion_n of_o my_o inheritance_n my_o line_n be_v fall_v unto_o i_o in_o pleasant_a place_n yea_o i_o have_v a_o goodly_a heritage_n glory_n be_v to_o he_o who_o give_v we_o himself_o glory_n be_v to_o he_o for_o ever_o who_o mix_v his_o own_o nature_n with_o christian_a soul_n 〈…〉_o effable_a kindness_n of_o god_n who_o free_a 〈…〉_o less_o than_o himself_o upon_o we_o o_o the_o ineffable_a happiness_n of_o such_o soul_n who_o be_v whole_o in_o joy_n and_o mirth_n and_o peace_n as_o so_o many_o king_n and_o lord_n and_o god_n behold_v here_o thy_o nobility_n christianity_n be_v no_o vulgar_a or_o contemptible_a thing_n thou_o be_v call_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o kingdom_n not_o like_o that_o of_o earthly_a prince_n who_o glory_n and_o riches_n be_v corruptible_a and_o pass_v away_o but_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o riches_n divine_a and_o celestial_a which_o never_o decay_n for_o there_o bless_a soul_n reign_v together_o with_o the_o heavenly_a king_n and_o in_o the_o heavenly_a company_n since_o such_o good_a thing_n therefore_o be_v set_v before_o we_o such_o glorious_a promise_n be_v make_v we_o such_o great_a good_a will_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v manifest_v towards_o we_o let_v we_o not_o despise_v his_o kindness_n nor_o be_v slack_a in_o our_o motion_n towards_o eternal_a life_n but_o give_v up_o ourselves_o entire_o to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o let_v we_o call_v upon_o he_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divinity_n he_o will_v redeem_v we_o from_o the_o dark_a prison_n of_o dishonourable_a affection_n and_o vindicate_v his_o own_o image_n and_o workmanship_n cause_v it_o to_o shine_v most_o bright_o till_o our_o soul_n be_v so_o sound_a and_o pure_a that_o we_o be_v make_v worthy_a of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o spirit_n give_v glory_n to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o ever_o amen_n chap._n vi_o concern_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_z we_o must_v begin_v as_o we_o do_v before_o with_o the_o witness_n in_o heaven_n the_o first_o of_o which_o you_o know_v be_v the_o father_z who_o speak_v three_o time_n from_o heaven_n by_o a_o audible_a voice_n to_o testify_v to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o if_o you_o examine_v again_o all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v you_o will_v find_v both_o these_o thing_n record_v in_o his_o word_n that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o this_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n i._o the_o first_o time_n that_o god_n the_o father_z speak_v from_o heaven_n be_v at_o our_o saviour_n baptism_n when_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o a_o voice_n come_v from_o thence_o which_o say_v thou_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o thou_o i_o be_o well_o please_v three_o luk._n 22._o in_o which_o word_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n very_o remarkable_a which_o plain_o testify_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o two_o now_o mention_v that_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v partake_v of_o it_o i._o that_o he_o call_v jesus_n his_o son_n and_o his_o beloved_a son_n which_o be_v speak_v from_o heaven_n in_o such_o a_o glorious_a manner_n as_o the_o gospel_n describe_v it_o must_v needs_o signify_v he_o to_o be_v his_o son_n in_o the_o most_o eminent_a sense_n for_o it_o be_v never_o say_v to_o any_o angel_n in_o this_o sort_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n my_o beloved_a son_n this_o declare_v he_o to_o have_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v in_o he_o bodily_a to_o be_v invest_v with_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o power_n and_o to_o be_v that_o seed_n promise_v who_o shall_v bless_v all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n too_o great_a for_o any_o one_o to_o do_v but_o for_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v by_o a_o audible_a voice_n from_o heaven_n that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n call_v to_o abraham_n to_o tell_v he_o the_o lord_n have_v swear_v by_o himself_o that_o in_o his_o seed_n all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bless_v xxii_o gen._n ver_fw-la 15_o 16_o 18._o and_o so_o now_o to_o show_v we_o the_o seed_n be_v come_v who_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o great_a benefactor_n to_o mankind_n the_o lord_n himself_o speak_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n declare_v jesus_n to_o be_v his_o son_n the_o author_n of_o that_o universal_a bliss_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v which_o tell_v we_o plain_o enough_o that_o life_n be_v in_o he_o which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o st._n john_n affirm_v upon_o this_o record_n for_o else_o he_o
will_v not_o be_v such_o a_o son_n as_o he_o now_o declare_v he_o able_a to_o bless_v all_o nation_n who_o it_o be_v manifest_a have_v he_o not_o for_o their_o visible_a leader_n as_o the_o israelite_n have_v moses_n and_o joshua_n to_o give_v they_o a_o temporal_a inheritance_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o have_v his_o spiritual_a divine_a benediction_n in_o another_o world_n where_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o and_o lest_o you_o shall_v imagine_v this_o to_o be_v mere_o a_o collection_n of_o my_o own_o which_o i_o have_v force_v out_o of_o these_o word_n i_o will_v refer_v you_o to_o our_o saviour_n own_o interpretation_n of_o they_o in_o that_o speech_n of_o his_o v._n joh._n 26._o for_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o here_o he_o teach_v we_o to_o argue_v that_o if_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o this_o voice_n say_v he_o be_v than_o he_o be_v by_o the_o same_o voice_n declare_v to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o because_o the_o father_n have_v so_o who_o his_o son_n his_o only_a son_n do_v perfect_o resemble_v and_o he_o teach_v we_o withal_o that_o this_o be_v a_o power_n communicate_v to_o he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n for_o he_o say_v the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o that_o as_o you_o read_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o be_v the_o great_a person_n he_o promise_v to_o send_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n now_o we_o read_v of_o no_o other_o time_n when_o the_o father_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v he_o this_o power_n but_o now_o when_o he_o own_v he_o for_o his_o son_n and_o anoint_v he_o as_o you_o shall_v hear_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o preach_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o immortal_a life_n now_o god_n the_o father_n seal_v and_o authorize_v he_o to_o be_v the_o person_n to_o who_o we_o must_v repair_v for_o the_o meat_n that_o endure_v to_o everlasting_a life_n vi_fw-la joh._n 27._o he_o declare_v he_o now_o to_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o god_n as_o he_o call_v himself_o which_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n ver_fw-la 33._o the_o bread_n of_o life_n ver_fw-la 35._o the_o live_a bread_n ver_fw-la 51._o the_o manna_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o nourish_v to_o eternal_a life_n in_o short_a to_o have_v all_o thing_n commit_v to_o he_o that_o whatsoever_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v these_o also_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a the_o son_n do_v likewise_o v._o joh._n 19_o he_o do_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o same_o equality_n and_o perfect_a likeness_n of_o power_n as_o greg._n nazianz_n d._n nazianz_n orat._n 36._o p._n 584._o d._n expound_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d likewise_o in_o this_o place_n so_o that_o we_o need_v no_o more_o doubt_n of_o his_o ability_n than_o we_o do_v of_o god_n the_o father_n to_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o his_o follower_n ii_o and_o that_o he_o will_v employ_v his_o power_n to_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o record_n concern_v this_o eternal_a life_n be_v manifest_a from_o the_o next_o part_n of_o this_o voice_n of_o god_n the_o father_n which_o say_v in_o thou_o i_o be_o well_o please_v he_o express_v here_o that_o he_o take_v a_o singular_a delight_n in_o this_o person_n and_o bear_v such_o a_o dear_a affection_n to_o he_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o he_o will_v deny_v he_o now_o that_o hereby_o be_v denote_v also_o his_o exceed_a great_a love_n and_o good_a will_n towards_o all_o those_o that_o belong_v to_o his_o son_n you_o may_v be_v soon_o satisfy_v by_o observe_v that_o these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n wherein_o god_n declare_v his_o lovingkindness_n towards_o his_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n lxii_o isa_n 4._o there_o the_o lord_n call_v her_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hephzi-bah_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o some_o greek_a version_n render_v it_o my_o delight_n be_v in_o she_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n he_o himself_o give_v of_o her_o name_n as_o it_o there_o follow_v for_o the_o lord_n delight_v in_o thou_o where_o the_o lxx_o use_v the_o very_a word_n in_o which_o this_o voice_n from_o heaven_n be_v record_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o lord_n be_v well_o please_v in_o thou_o from_o whence_o i_o think_v it_o reasonable_a to_o conclude_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v say_v of_o both_o god_n declare_v his_o delight_n in_o all_o christian_n and_o the_o pleasure_n he_o will_v take_v in_o bestow_v his_o benefit_n on_o they_o when_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v well_o please_v in_o this_o his_o dear_a son_n who_o they_o acknowledge_v for_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n he_o tell_v we_o by_o this_o voice_n that_o he_o will_v be_v reconcile_v to_o we_o and_o forget_v our_o ill_a behaviour_n towards_o he_o will_v espouse_v we_o to_o himself_o as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o tender_a love_n and_o rejoice_v to_o bestow_v his_o choice_a favour_n on_o we_o and_o that_o this_o be_v no_o inference_n mere_o wring_v from_o these_o word_n or_o a_o notion_n of_o my_o own_o contrivance_n you_o may_v present_o agree_v if_o you_o consider_v that_o thus_o john_n baptist_n in_o all_o likelihood_n understand_v they_o for_o see_v jesus_n a_o little_a after_o he_o have_v baptize_v he_o come_v towards_o he_o he_o cry_v out_o behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n i_o joh._n 29._o and_o again_o the_o next_o day_n after_o this_o he_o point_v two_o of_o his_o disciple_n unto_o jesus_n and_o say_v in_o part_n the_o very_a same_o word_n behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 36._o now_o what_o be_v it_o to_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n but_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o god_n own_o appointment_n so_o please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o he_o that_o it_o obtain_v all_o the_o end_n for_o which_o it_o be_v offer_v and_o what_o be_v it_o to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o by_o overcome_v all_o the_o temptation_n to_o which_o adam_n yield_v and_o be_v obedient_a even_o to_o the_o death_n to_o restore_v we_o unto_o a_o right_n of_o enter_v paradise_n again_o from_o whence_o our_o sin_n have_v exclude_v we_o to_o open_a the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o all_o believer_n by_o remove_v as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o flame_a sword_n that_o be_v take_v those_o obstacle_n out_o of_o the_o way_n that_o debar_v we_o from_o approach_v to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n this_o no_o doubt_n be_v the_o complete_a meaning_n of_o carry_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o mankind_n which_o be_v the_o only_a impediment_n that_o hinder_v we_o from_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o immortality_n and_o therefore_o be_v go_v we_o have_v free_a leave_n to_o return_v to_o it_o now_o john_n the_o baptist_n have_v no_o other_o ground_n that_o we_o can_v find_v for_o this_o conclusion_n but_o only_o this_o voice_n which_o i_o prove_v he_o hear_v from_o the_o father_n concern_v the_o pleasure_n which_o he_o take_v in_o his_o son_n whereby_o he_o do_v as_o good_a as_o affirm_v that_o his_o delight_n in_o jesus_n who_o delight_v to_o do_v his_o will_n be_v so_o great_a that_o he_o will_v restore_v we_o into_o his_o ancient_a love_n for_o his_o sake_n and_o be_v perfect_o appease_v and_o reconcile_v to_o we_o by_o his_o mean_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o banish_v from_o his_o bless_a presence_n but_o by_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v place_v again_o in_o that_o happy_a state_n from_o which_o we_o have_v stand_v so_o long_o exile_v ii_o now_o from_o hence_o let_v we_o pass_v to_o take_v a_o review_n of_o the_o second_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n to_o he_o where_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o thing_n record_v again_o that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o this_o life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n i.e._n it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o give_v it_o the_o place_n be_v well_o know_v where_o we_o may_v meet_v with_o it_o in_o xvii_o matt._n and_o other_o evangelist_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o jesus_n be_v on_o a_o high_a mountain_n with_o three_o of_o his_o disciple_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o attend_v he_o on_o particular_a occasion_n be_v transfigure_v before_o they_o and_o a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n which_o say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v he_o it_o will_v be_v too_o tedious_a to_o speak_v of_o this_o mountain_n and_o his_o transfiguration_n there_o in_o such_o a_o glorious_a manner_n that_o his_o countenance_n
shine_v as_o the_o sun_n though_o this_o may_v reasonable_o be_v think_v as_o i_o show_v in_o the_o former_a treatise_n to_o be_v a_o representation_n of_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n where_o he_o shine_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v only_o observe_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o word_n now_o add_v to_o the_o voice_n former_o deliver_v second_o the_o manner_n wherein_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o audience_n of_o those_o apostle_n i._o as_o for_o the_o word_n now_o add_v in_o this_o second_o voice_n to_o those_o of_o the_o first_o wherein_o he_o have_v declare_v he_o as_o he_o do_v here_o again_o his_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o he_o delight_v they_o be_v these_o hear_v you_o he_o which_o be_v the_o very_a word_n that_o moses_n speak_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n when_o he_o prophesy_v of_o the_o messiah_n and_o say_v xviii_o deut._n 15._o unto_o he_o you_o shall_v hearken_v and_o it_o may_v be_v one_o reason_n why_o moses_n be_v now_o present_a when_o god_n speak_v these_o word_n in_o the_o mount_n that_o he_o may_v consent_v to_o this_o truth_n which_o be_v now_o so_o solemn_o pronounce_v in_o his_o hear_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o great_a person_n of_o who_o he_o have_v prophesy_v now_o god_n bid_v the_o apostle_n hear_v he_o and_o moses_n himself_o to_o who_o they_o have_v hearken_v all_o this_o while_n be_v content_a that_o he_o shall_v take_v his_o room_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o something_o to_o be_v declare_v by_o he_o that_o moses_n have_v not_o speak_v and_o what_o shall_v that_o be_v but_o only_o the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o be_v but_o obscure_o intimate_v and_o shadow_v in_o the_o ancient_a law_n but_o by_o he_o be_v preach_v so_o clear_o and_o distinct_o that_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o heaven_n be_v not_o more_o audible_a there_o be_v nothing_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o due_a place_n that_o our_o saviour_n preach_v so_o frequent_o nothing_o upon_o which_o he_o insist_v so_o long_o and_o earnest_o and_o take_v such_o pain_n to_o settle_v in_o man_n mind_n as_o this_o belief_n that_o eternal_a life_n shall_v be_v the_o portion_n of_o all_o that_o do_v well_o and_o therefore_o when_o god_n the_o father_n bid_v they_o hear_v he_o who_o make_v it_o his_o principal_a business_n to_o publish_v this_o glad_a tiding_n to_o the_o world_n it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o as_o if_o this_o voice_n have_v say_v in_o express_a word_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v believe_v it_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o eternal_a life_n this_o be_v the_o commandment_n his_o father_n give_v he_o as_o you_o hear_v before_o twelve_o joh._n 50._o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v he_o vi_fw-la joh._n 40._o this_o be_v the_o promise_n that_o he_o have_v promise_v we_o even_o eternal_a life_n 1_o joh._n two_o 25._o and_o therefore_o he_o stand_v engage_v to_o bestow_v it_o and_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o for_o it_o when_o we_o enter_v into_o his_o service_n for_o you_o may_v observe_v far_o that_o as_o to_o hear_v moses_n be_v to_o embrace_v the_o covenant_n that_o god_n make_v with_o they_o by_o he_o so_o we_o can_v understand_v no_o less_o by_o hear_v the_o son_n of_o god_n than_o our_o enter_v into_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o mediator_n which_o be_v found_v upon_o better_a promise_n then_o the_o former_a whereby_o we_o have_v a_o title_n to_o a_o celestial_a not_o a_o earthly_a inheritance_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o which_o he_o have_v engage_v himself_o to_o be_v our_o conductour_n and_o indeed_o moses_n and_o elias_n who_o be_v never_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n much_o less_o by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n so_o term_v appear_v now_o with_o our_o saviour_n in_o glory_n it_o be_v a_o notable_a sign_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v take_v up_o to_o a_o far_o great_a glory_n than_o they_o and_o have_v power_n of_o change_a man_n into_o such_o a_o condition_n as_o that_o wherein_o he_o be_v now_o transfigure_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n shall_v preach_v that_o life_n and_o immortality_n which_o they_o see_v confer_v upon_o those_o two_o person_n to_o honour_v he_o who_o the_o disciple_n you_o may_v observe_v again_o see_v in_o a_o glory_n so_o much_o great_a than_o the_o lawgiver_n himself_o now_o have_v that_o if_o the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n have_v be_v silent_a it_o will_v have_v be_v a_o argument_n our_o saviour_n shall_v be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n for_o when_o they_o desire_v to_o make_v their_o abode_n there_o and_o for_o that_o purpose_n to_o build_v three_o tabernacle_n they_o say_v one_o for_o thou_o and_o one_o for_o moses_n and_o one_o for_o elias_n put_v he_o in_o the_o first_o place_n before_o the_o other_o two_o which_o they_o will_v not_o sure_o have_v do_v have_v not_o moses_n and_o elias_n do_v reverence_n to_o he_o as_o a_o great_a person_n than_o themselves_o i_o shall_v end_v this_o with_o a_o tradition_n among_o the_o hebrew_n which_o if_o it_o signify_v any_o thing_n may_v serve_v to_o show_v that_o jesus_n be_v their_o long-expected_n christ_n for_o r._n bechai_n say_v 10._o say_v in_o xlix_o gen._n 10._o that_o when_o jacob_n speak_v of_o the_o come_n of_o schilo_n he_o comprehend_v not_o only_o the_o last_o redeemer_n the_o messiah_n but_o the_o first_o redeemer_n also_o i._n e._n moses_n who_o shall_v have_v the_o honour_n then_o to_o attend_v upon_o the_o messiah_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a land_n according_a to_o what_o the_o master_n say_v upon_o xv_o exod._n 1._o where_o the_o word_n be_v than_o moses_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v sing_v and_o in_o the_o great_a commentary_n upon_o deuteronomy_n they_o write_v as_o the_o same_o author_n go_v on_o that_o god_n say_v to_o moses_n because_o thou_o do_v give_v thy_o life_n for_o they_o in_o this_o world_n desire_v that_o god_n will_v blot_v his_o name_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n to_o preserve_v they_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v i.e._n the_o day_n of_o the_o messiah_n when_o i_o shall_v bring_v elias_n to_o they_o you_o two_o shall_v enter_v in_o together_o which_o may_v possible_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n i_o joh._n 21._o be_v thou_o elias_n and_o he_o say_v i_o be_o not_o be_v thou_o that_o prophet_n i._o e._n moses_n who_o alone_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o name_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o prophet_n above_o all_o other_o now_o if_o there_o be_v any_o ground_n of_o such_o expectation_n that_o these_o two_o shall_v come_v in_o their_o own_o person_n you_o see_v it_o here_o fulfil_v on_o this_o holy_a mount_n where_o moses_n who_o be_v so_o much_o in_o mount_n horeb_n and_o elias_n who_o use_v mount_v carmel_n now_o appear_v and_o have_v communication_n with_o he_o about_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n ix_o luk._n 31._o the_o mount_n where_o they_o meet_v and_o where_o jesus_n be_v transfigure_v be_v general_o believe_v to_o be_v tabor_n as_o hermon_n a_o little_a hill_n near_o jordan_n there_o be_v a_o tradition_n be_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o elias_n be_v take_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o these_o two_o mountain_n say_v proclus_n viij_o proclus_n orat._n viij_o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v proclaim_v the_o belove_a son_n of_o god_n from_o who_o we_o may_v expect_v immortal_a bliss_n at_o hermon_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v in_o jordan_n on_o tabor_n when_o he_o be_v transfigure_v and_o appear_v in_o a_o glory_n as_o much_o great_a than_o elias_n as_o the_o high_a mountain_n tabor_n be_v above_o the_o little_a hill_n of_o hermon_n and_o so_o be_v fulfil_v say_v he_o that_o prophecy_n of_o the_o psalmist_n lxxxix_o 12._o tabor_n and_o hermon_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o thy_o name_n in_o both_o place_n be_v publish_v this_o joyful_a news_n that_o god_n have_v send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n first_o in_o the_o mount_n from_o whence_o elias_n be_v transport_v into_o heaven_n and_o then_o in_o the_o mount_n where_o he_o come_v to_o attend_v on_o our_o lord_n when_o he_o be_v transfigure_v god_n the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d confirm_v his_o sonship_n proclaim_v again_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v he_o for_o he_o that_o hear_v he_o hear_v i_o as_o proclus_n there_o gloss_n and_o he_o that_o be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o and_o his_o word_n of_o he_o will_v i_o be_v ashamed_a in_o my_o glory_n let_v we_o listen_v to_o he_o therefore_o and_o since_o we_o hear_v he_o say_v as_o i_o note_v before_o very_o
very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o that_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o send_v i_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n but_o be_v pass_v from_o death_n unto_o life_n v._n joh._n 24._o let_v we_o take_v it_o for_o as_o express_v a_o declaration_n from_o god_n the_o father_n as_o if_o that_o voice_n which_o require_v they_o to_o hear_v jesus_n have_v say_v you_o that_o be_v obedient_a to_o my_o son_n have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o be_v in_o no_o danger_n to_o perish_v be_v translate_v from_o the_o dominion_n of_o death_n to_o be_v heir_n of_o life_n ii_o and_o now_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v speak_v let_v we_o pass_v to_o the_o manner_n wherein_o they_o be_v deliver_v which_o be_v so_o vast_o different_a from_o that_o wherein_o god_n speak_v former_o to_o moses_n and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n from_o another_o mountain_n that_o i_o can_v but_o think_v it_o be_v intend_v to_o signify_v something_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o jesus_n bring_v to_o we_o when_o he_o be_v transfigure_v and_o his_o face_n shine_v as_o the_o sun_n the_o evangelist_n tell_v we_o moreover_o that_o his_o raiment_n become_v glister_v exceed_v white_a as_o snow_n and_o that_o a_o bright_a cloud_n also_o overshadow_a they_o out_o of_o which_o the_o voice_n before_o name_v come_v say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n which_o if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o former_a divine_a manifestation_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n we_o may_v reasonable_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o indication_n that_o this_o person_n come_v to_o discover_v 1._o something_o more_o glorious_a than_o moses_n have_v do_v and_o 2._o something_o that_o express_v more_o abundant_a love_n and_o kindness_n of_o god_n towards_o man_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o eternal_a life_n first_o i_o say_v something_o more_o glorious_a and_o resplendent_a or_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor._n four_o 6._o the_o light_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n which_o we_o behold_v in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o mount_n to_o which_o moses_n go_v up_o and_o where_o he_o and_o the_o people_n hear_v god_n speak_v to_o they_o be_v all_o cover_v with_o cloud_n and_o thick_a darkness_n thus_o god_n himself_o tell_v he_o beforehand_o he_o will_v appear_v nineteeen_o exod._n 9_o and_o so_o he_o do_v when_o the_o day_n prefix_v for_o it_o come_v vers_fw-la 16_o 18._o unto_o that_o thick_a darkness_n moses_n draw_v near_o xx_o 21._o and_o the_o people_n also_o stand_v underneath_o the_o mountain_n behold_v it_o burn_v with_o fire_n into_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n with_o darkness_n cloud_n and_o thick_a darkness_n four_o deut._n 11._o nineteeen_o exod._n 17._o all_o which_o place_n the_o reader_n may_v be_v please_v to_o consult_v together_o with_o xxiv_o exod._n 18._o where_o we_o find_v that_o moses_n go_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o cloud_n and_o there_o be_v cover_v and_o quite_o obscure_v from_o their_o sight_n a_o very_a fit_a emblem_n of_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o knowledge_n which_o they_o then_o have_v of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o will_n and_o of_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v a_o ministration_n of_o death_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o so_o astonish_v they_o with_o the_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n that_o they_o flee_v and_o stand_v afar_o off_o xx_o exod._n 18._o as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n god_n appear_v now_o to_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o quite_o contrary_a manner_n on_o the_o top_n of_o another_o mountain_n where_o there_o be_v no_o black_a cloud_n though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o night_n no_o smoke_n or_o sulphureous_a vapour_n much_o less_o a_o thick_a darkness_n hide_v he_o from_o his_o disciple_n sight_n nothing_o but_o a_o bright_a and_o lightsome_a cloud_n which_o overshadow_a they_o and_o show_v they_o the_o glory_n wherein_o he_o shine_v it_o be_v a_o lively_a representation_n of_o the_o light_n which_o he_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n come_v to_o give_v to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n and_o of_o the_o glory_n and_o bliss_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n unto_o which_o he_o invite_v mankind_n in_o word_n of_o grace_n and_o sweetness_n as_o he_o do_v his_o disciple_n to_o stay_v here_o on_o the_o mountain_n by_o those_o cheerful_a beam_n wherewith_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n surround_v they_o for_o this_o manner_n of_o appear_v as_o i_o say_v second_o plain_o suggest_v some_o great_a manifestation_n of_o the_o love_n and_o kindness_n the_o goodness_n and_o bounty_n of_o heaven_n to_o mankind_n than_o have_v be_v make_v before_o in_o that_o way_n of_o revelation_n to_o moses_n which_o be_v so_o much_o different_a from_o the_o sweetness_n and_o amiableness_n of_o this_o when_o moses_n converse_v with_o god_n upon_o mount_n sinai_n he_o descend_v thither_o in_o fire_n as_o the_o place_n before_o mention_v tell_v you_o and_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v like_o devour_a fire_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n xxiv_o exod._n 17._o v._o deut._n 22_o 23._o but_o when_o our_o bless_a lord_n take_v his_o apostle_n with_o he_o to_o a_o sight_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n there_o be_v only_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o wonderful_a bright_a and_o cheerful_a light_n some_o mild_a ray_n from_o heaven_n which_o have_v nothing_o of_o terror_n in_o they_o but_o ravish_v they_o with_o joy_n to_o find_v themselves_o in_o so_o glorious_a a_o presence_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o leave_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o this_o high_a mountain_n as_o moses_n leave_v the_o israelite_n at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o other_o but_o he_o bring_v they_o up_o with_o he_o xvii_o matth._n 1._o and_o they_o be_v not_o put_v into_o a_o fright_n as_o the_o israelite_n be_v who_o remove_v their_o station_n at_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o fire_n on_o mount_n sinai_n nor_o do_v they_o shriek_v as_o their_o forefather_n do_v there_o who_o cry_v out_o say_v why_o shall_v we_o die_v for_o this_o great_a fire_n will_v consume_v we_o if_o we_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n any_o more_o we_o shall_v die_v speak_v thou_o with_o we_o and_o we_o will_v hear_v but_o let_v not_o god_n speak_v with_o we_o lest_o we_o die_v v._o deuter_n 25._o xx_o exod._n 19_o but_o they_o be_v ravish_v out_o of_o themselves_o with_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o sight_n which_o be_v so_o invite_v to_o their_o eye_n that_o they_o wish_v for_o no_o other_o station_n but_o desire_v to_o remain_v perpetual_o fix_v there_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o run_v away_o that_o they_o say_v let_v we_o make_v here_o three_o tabernacle_n as_o if_o they_o mean_v to_o pitch_v there_o the_o place_n of_o their_o abode_n and_o never_o take_v their_o eye_n from_o so_o beautiful_a a_o light_n it_o be_v observable_a also_o that_o in_o the_o dark_a mountain_n where_o moses_n be_v together_o with_o the_o fire_n and_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n there_o be_v the_o noise_n of_o a_o trumpet_n exceed_v loud_a which_o make_v not_o only_o all_o the_o people_n tremble_v but_o the_o whole_a mount_n quake_v great_o nineteeen_o exod._n 16_o 18._o and_o god_n speak_v likewise_o to_o the_o people_n with_o a_o great_a voice_n v._n deut._n 22._o wherewith_o both_o they_o be_v so_o astonish_v as_o to_o wish_v never_o to_o hear_v it_o more_o and_o moses_n himself_o also_o so_o terrible_a be_v the_o sight_n together_o with_o the_o noise_n say_v i_o exceed_o fear_v and_o quake_v twelve_o heb._n 21._o whereas_o on_o the_o mountain_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v transfigure_v there_o be_v not_o one_o such_o frightful_a flash_n nor_o the_o least_o dreadful_a sound_n nothing_o but_o his_o own_o glister_a body_n the_o splendour_n of_o moses_n and_o elias_n the_o brightness_n of_o a_o heavenly_a cloud_n and_o this_o one_o sweet_a voice_n which_o proclaim_v nothing_o but_o love_n and_o grace_n in_o their_o ear_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v hear_v he_o st._n matthew_n indeed_o tell_v we_o that_o when_o the_o disciple_n hear_v they_o fall_v on_o their_o face_n and_o be_v sore_o afraid_a xvii_o 6._o but_o this_o do_v not_o signify_v that_o they_o be_v seize_v with_o any_o horror_n at_o the_o dreadfulness_n of_o the_o sound_n but_o only_o amaze_v at_o the_o suddenness_n of_o the_o voice_n and_o the_o marvellous_a splendour_n of_o the_o light_n and_o therefore_o the_o other_o evangelist_n do_v not_o mention_v any_o such_o terror_n after_o the_o voice_n which_o be_v accompany_v with_o a_o glory_n they_o have_v never_o behold_v may_v well_o amaze_v they_o but_o do_v not_o make_v they_o tremble_v the_o very_a
it_o a_o disparagement_n to_o their_o master_n moses_n do_v they_o not_o satisfy_v themselves_o with_o this_o ridiculous_a reason_n for_o it_o to_o be_v speak_v unto_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n relate_v then_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o argue_v his_o high_a dignity_n that_o the_o divine_a majesty_n speak_v to_o he_o in_o such_o a_o way_n as_o they_o can_v but_o esteem_v most_o perfect_a and_o agreeable_a to_o his_o divine_a goodness_n and_o we_o may_v look_v upon_o this_o pure_a light_n in_o which_o god_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v as_o a_o sign_n that_o heaven_n be_v to_o be_v open_v by_o this_o person_n and_o that_o he_o will_v restore_v we_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n of_o which_o we_o we_o all_o fall_v short_a and_o bring_v mankind_n to_o that_o joy_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o heart_n which_o the_o disciple_n begin_v to_o feel_v in_o themselves_o at_o this_o most_o comfortable_a sight_n and_o i_o make_v no_o question_n have_v not_o the_o holy_a book_n tell_v we_o so_o express_o that_o god_n speak_v to_o they_o in_o cloud_n and_o fire_n and_o vapour_n they_o will_v have_v fable_v that_o he_o appear_v to_o their_o master_n in_o pure_a light_n and_o shine_v about_o he_o in_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n without_o the_o least_o darkness_n to_o obscure_v it_o for_o i_o find_v that_o many_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o holy_a story_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n report_v in_o honour_n of_o john_n baptist_n or_o of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n they_o have_v thrust_v into_o the_o story_n of_o moses_n where_o he_o himself_o in_o his_o book_n have_v not_o confess_v the_o contrary_a to_o keep_v he_o in_o the_o great_a credit_n with_o their_o nation_n in_o this_o time_n of_o their_o calamitous_a desertion_n it_o be_v record_v for_o example_n that_o john_n baptist_n be_v bear_v when_o his_o parent_n be_v very_o old_a and_o can_v not_o believe_v it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o have_v a_o child_n which_o make_v his_o birth_n a_o wonder_n be_v out_o of_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n they_o have_v make_v bold_a to_o tell_v the_o same_o of_o moses_n but_o with_o a_o large_a addition_n of_o year_n who_o mother_n jochebed_n they_o say_v be_v no_o less_o than_o a_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o year_n old_a when_o she_o be_v deliver_v of_o he_o which_o aben_n ezra_n in_o his_o note_n upon_o the_o text_n 1._o text_n a._n ezra_n in_o two_o exod._n ver_fw-la 1._o be_v desirous_a shall_v pass_v for_o a_o current_a truth_n and_o as_o we_o read_v that_o when_o our_o saviour_n come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n a_o exceed_v great_a light_n from_o heaven_n shine_v round_o about_o the_o shepherd_n who_o have_v the_o first_o news_n of_o it_o which_o be_v intend_v as_o a_o note_n of_o his_o divinity_n and_o heavenly_a descent_n so_o they_o have_v devise_v 3._o devise_v r._n solomon_n in_o two_o exod._n 3._o that_o at_o the_o nativity_n of_o moses_n the_o house_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v be_v fill_v with_o such_o a_o light_n that_o they_o can_v not_o see_v by_o reason_n of_o its_o splendour_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o apostle_n prove_v our_o lord_n to_o be_v great_a than_o the_o angel_n far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n etc._n etc._n i._n heb._n 3_o 4._o i_o eph._n 19_o 20._o and_o therefore_o moses_n forsooth_o must_v be_v raise_v to_o this_o wondrous_a pitch_n haccozi_fw-fr ●_o moses_n haccozi_fw-fr who_o some_o of_o their_o rabbin_n all_o be_v not_o so_o immodest_a will_v have_v to_o be_v high_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d than_o the_o angel_n of_o ministry_n far_o above_o all_o creature_n as_o another_o express_v it_o both_o superior_a and_o inferior_a exod._n r._n joshuah_n f._n sobib_fw-la in_o thirty_o exod._n as_o if_o they_o mean_v to_o equal_v he_o with_o that_o great_a lord_n who_o we_o believe_v be_v raise_v far_o above_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o only_o in_o this_o world_n but_o also_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o because_o also_o our_o lord_n we_o affirm_v and_o be_v sure_a be_v now_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o heavenly_a sanctuary_n where_o he_o present_v his_o own_o blood_n before_o god_n for_o we_o as_o aaron_n do_v the_o blood_n of_o beast_n in_o the_o earthly_a sanctuary_n therefore_o they_o likewise_o have_v feign_v as_o maimonides_n relate_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o their_o doctor_n 3._o doctor_n ludou._n capell_n ex_fw-la pr●fat_n in_o talm._n not._n in_o xvii_o matth._n 3._o that_o their_o master_n moses_n be_v not_o dead_a but_o ascend_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o minister_n to_o god_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n and_o because_o our_o lord_n be_v here_o say_v to_o be_v transfigure_v on_o this_o mountain_n and_o his_o face_n shine_v like_o the_o sun_n they_o have_v therefore_o transform_v moses_n also_o who_o they_o say_v be_v find_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o death_n who_o god_n send_v to_o the_o mountain_n whether_o he_o be_v go_v up_o to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n write_v the_o great_a name_n of_o god_n and_o his_o face_n be_v as_o the_o sun_n and_o he_o himself_o like_o a_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v observe_v the_o same_o before_o about_o the_o bath_n kol_fw-mi voice_n from_o heaven_n which_o speak_v to_o our_o saviour_n who_o glory_n they_o study_v to_o eclipse_v by_o spread_v abroad_o a_o number_n of_o tale_n concern_v the_o like_a approbation_n give_v to_o their_o doctor_n i_o be_o bold_a to_o call_v these_o report_n by_o that_o name_n and_o to_o ascribe_v they_o to_o that_o cause_n because_o there_o be_v no_o footstep_n of_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o history_n which_o moses_n write_v of_o himself_o who_o by_o all_o just_a way_n endeavour_v to_o beget_v in_o they_o a_o belief_n that_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n send_v of_o god_n and_o because_o such_o invention_n may_v easy_o come_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o obstinate_a person_n who_o know_v not_o how_o to_o confute_v christianity_n which_o interest_n and_o prejudice_n will_v not_o let_v they_o receive_v but_o be_v desirous_a by_o any_o mean_n though_o never_o so_o false_a to_o raise_v moses_n to_o the_o same_o degree_n of_o greatness_n and_o esteem_n with_o the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v then_o that_o they_o suppose_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o notable_a sign_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o that_o person_n to_o who_o they_o real_o belong_v and_o consequent_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n who_o have_v these_o very_a mark_n upon_o he_o which_o they_o will_v engrave_v on_o moses_n be_v thus_o describe_v in_o those_o book_n that_o be_v certain_o divine_a among_o we_o as_o clear_o as_o moses_n be_v in_o any_o other_o regard_v commend_v in_o those_o that_o be_v true_o holy_a among_o they_o be_v a_o great_a prophet_n indeed_o far_o great_a than_o moses_n who_o never_o dare_v say_v any_o such_o thing_n of_o himself_o nor_o be_v so_o magnify_v by_o any_o of_o the_o succeed_a prophet_n the_o author_n of_o a_o better_a covenant_n and_o of_o more_o divine_a promise_n such_o as_o this_o of_o eternal_a life_n which_o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a for_o he_o to_o bestow_v who_o kingdom_n be_v not_o in_o this_o world_n as_o moses_n be_v but_o he_o reign_v in_o the_o other_o world_n lord_n of_o all_o for_o evermore_o iii_o to_o he_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v a_o three_o testimony_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v now_o time_n to_o pass_v and_o it_o be_v a_o very_a express_a record_n of_o this_o truth_n that_o we_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o his_o son_n it_o be_v set_v down_o you_o know_v in_o the_o twelve_o joh._n 28._o where_o upon_o our_o saviour_n request_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v glorify_v his_o own_o name_n a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n give_v this_o answer_n i_o have_v both_o glorify_v it_o and_o will_v glorify_v it_o again_o the_o particle_n it_o have_v nothing_o answer_v to_o it_o in_o the_o greek_a but_o be_v put_v in_o by_o the_o translatour_n to_o supply_v the_o sense_n and_o some_o be_v of_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o the_o meaning_n to_o be_v thus_o render_v i_o have_v both_o glorify_v thou_o and_o will_v glorify_v thou_o again_o but_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o this_o we_o may_v as_o well_o refer_v the_o word_n glorify_v to_o name_n as_o our_o translation_n do_v and_o it_o will_v come_v at_o last_o to_o the_o same_o sense_n for_o god_n name_n be_v glorify_v by_o glorify_v his_o son_n joh._n fragment_n l._n viij_o in_o joh._n as_o appear_v from_o xi_o joh._n 4._o and_o so_o st._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n observe_v
long_o ago_o whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v glorify_v thy_o son_n or_o glorify_v thy_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v all_o one_o in_o exact_a contemplation_n of_o thing_n now_o if_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o word_n be_v thorough_o examine_v how_o he_o have_v glorify_v he_o and_o how_o he_o will_v glorify_v he_o again_o we_o shall_v meet_v in_o both_o with_o a_o plain_a testimony_n that_o eternal_a life_n be_v in_o his_o son_n to_o bestow_v on_o we_o let_v we_o consider_v they_o brief_o apart_o i._o as_o for_o the_o former_a i_o find_v that_o god_n have_v already_o glorify_v he_o before_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n three_o way_n 1._o by_o his_o transfiguration_n of_o which_o i_o now_o discourse_v for_o then_o st._n luke_n say_v ix_o 32._o they_o see_v his_o glory_n and_o that_o by_o this_o glory_n which_o they_o see_v the_o father_n testify_v he_o shall_v be_v make_v glorious_a in_o the_o heaven_n and_o able_a to_o make_v we_o so_o i_o refer_v you_o to_o what_o i_o have_v say_v already_o on_o this_o argument_n 2._o and_o i_o need_v not_o use_v many_o word_n to_o show_v that_o he_o have_v also_o glorify_v he_o very_o frequent_o by_o the_o many_o wonderful_a work_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v for_o in_o they_o it_o be_v likewise_o express_o say_v two_o joh._n 11._o he_o manifest_v forth_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o multitude_n be_v excite_v by_o they_o to_o magnify_v he_o with_o hosanna_n and_o to_o cry_v out_o glory_n in_o the_o high_a nineteeen_o luk._n 37_o 38._o by_o these_o also_o he_o show_v the_o power_n wherewith_o he_o be_v endue_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o they_o move_v his_o disciple_n heart_n as_o you_o read_v in_o the_o place_n now_o mention_v two_o joh._n 11._o to_o believe_v on_o he_o 3._o but_o there_o be_v a_o three_o glorification_n of_o he_o to_o which_o i_o believe_v these_o word_n have_v a_o more_o special_a reference_n because_o it_o be_v very_o famous_a and_o but_o new_o pass_v which_o be_v his_o raise_n lazarus_n from_o the_o dead_a by_o this_o jesus_n say_v express_o that_o glory_n shall_v redound_v to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o that_o he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v also_o be_v glorify_v thereby_o xi_o joh._n 4._o for_o this_o very_a end_n he_o there_o teach_v his_o disciple_n lazarus_n fall_v sick_a and_o he_o therefore_o delay_v to_o go_v and_o recover_v he_o though_o his_o great_a friend_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o fit_a opportunity_n by_o the_o miraculous_a resurrection_n of_o so_o note_v a_o person_n as_o lazarus_n be_v it_o appear_v by_o the_o come_n of_o such_o number_n to_o comfort_v his_o sister_n vers_fw-la 19_o and_o in_o a_o place_n so_o nigh_o to_o jerusalem_n vers_n 18._o where_o the_o great_a opposition_n be_v make_v against_o he_o to_o do_v honour_n to_o jesus_n and_o to_o make_v it_o know_v that_o he_o assume_v not_o more_o glory_n to_o himself_o than_o god_n the_o father_n give_v he_o this_o be_v a_o very_a great_a testimony_n from_o god_n that_o indeed_o life_n be_v in_o he_o and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o vain_o call_v himself_o vers_fw-la 25._o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n because_o he_o now_o with_o his_o almighty_a word_n restore_v one_o to_o life_n who_o have_v be_v so_o long_o dead_a that_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o his_o revive_n but_o by_o the_o very_a life_n itself_o hereby_o he_o declare_v that_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o he_o have_v give_v the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o v._o joh._n 26._o what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o in_o his_o preach_n he_o now_o justify_v by_o his_o work_n according_a as_o he_o himself_o foretell_v he_o will_v when_o he_o say_v very_o very_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 25._o the_o hour_n which_o be_v then_o come_v yea_o be_v just_a at_o hand_n seem_v to_o be_v this_o time_n when_o he_o raise_v lazarus_n up_o out_o of_o his_o grave_n declare_v thereby_o both_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o have_v say_v v._n joh._n 26._o that_o he_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o likewise_o that_o there_o will_v be_v another_o hour_n as_o it_o present_o there_o follow_v ver_fw-la 28_o 29._o wherein_o all_o man_n whatsoever_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n at_o his_o voice_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a shall_v come_v forth_o unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n as_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n they_o may_v well_o believe_v it_o because_o he_o say_v it_o who_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n by_o such_o work_n as_o none_o can_v do_v but_o he_o that_o be_v the_o life_n ii_o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o that_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v in_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n who_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o he_o have_v glorify_v he_o but_o that_o he_o will_v glorify_v he_o again_o which_o be_v do_v also_o at_o three_o several_a time_n 1._o at_o his_o death_n when_o many_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o sleep_v be_v open_v xxvii_o matth._n 52._o for_o the_o very_a rock_n rend_v and_o the_o earth_n do_v quake_v and_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v tear_v in_o sunder_o from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o bottom_n and_o the_o sun_n refuse_v to_o give_v its_o light_n and_o such_o a_o amazement_n come_v upon_o the_o centurion_n who_o be_v then_o upon_o the_o guard_n that_o he_o glorify_v god_n xxiii_o luk._n 47._o by_o confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v a_o righteous_a man_n and_o no_o pretender_n to_o a_o title_n that_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o but_o as_o other_o evangelist_n express_v it_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o these_o wonderful_a thing_n concur_v at_o his_o death_n to_o glorify_v he_o and_o do_v he_o honour_n the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v some_o respect_n because_o of_o what_o follow_v ver_fw-la 31_o 32_o 33._o now_o shall_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n be_v cast_v out_o and_o i_o if_o i_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n will_v draw_v all_o man_n unto_o i_o this_o he_o say_v signify_v what_o death_n he_o shall_v die_v for_o even_o now_o when_o he_o seem_v most_o weak_a he_o begin_v to_o tread_v the_o devil_n under_o his_o foot_n now_o he_o begin_v to_o draw_v not_o only_o the_o jew_n to_o he_o but_o other_o man_n the_o roman_n also_o one_o of_o who_o captain_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o reproach_n confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o very_a open_n of_o the_o grave_n serve_v to_o adorn_v the_o triumph_n he_o be_v about_o to_o make_v over_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v a_o sign_n that_o he_o have_v now_o despoil_v he_o who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o that_o he_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o will_v give_v it_o we_o especial_o now_o that_o he_o have_v finish_v his_o triumph_n and_o be_v glorify_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n of_o which_o the_o rend_n of_o the_o veil_n also_o be_v no_o obscure_a token_n show_v that_o we_o have_v liberty_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v x._o heb._n 19_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n it_o may_v seem_v indeed_o a_o uncouth_a form_n of_o speech_n to_o call_v his_o crucifixion_n by_o the_o name_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n or_o exaltation_n but_o one_o may_v say_v and_o with_o great_a truth_n that_o christ_n death_n upon_o the_o cross_n as_o s._n joh._n fragment_n l._n viij_o in_o joh._n cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n speak_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v his_o promotion_n contrive_v for_o his_o fame_n and_o glory_n for_o he_o be_v glorify_v perpetual_o for_o this_o have_v procure_v many_o benefit_n to_o mankind_n by_o its_o mean_n this_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o father_n to_o this_o truth_n when_o he_o say_v he_o will_v glorify_v our_o saviour_n which_o you_o see_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v he_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v even_o when_o he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o open_v man_n grave_n and_o unloose_v the_o chain_n of_o death_n and_o in_o due_a time_n raise_v they_o up_o to_o everlasting_a life_n for_o 2._o god_n far_o glorify_v he_o at_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v attend_v with_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o those_o saint_n who_o grave_n be_v open_v at_o his_o death_n xxvii_o matth._n 52_o 53._o there_o be_v several_a witness_n of_o this_o in_o jerusalem_n to_o who_o those_o person_n decease_v appear_v as_o there_o be_v of_o his_o own_o resurrection_n which_o
be_v attest_v by_o choose_a person_n to_o who_o he_o show_v himself_o open_o and_o then_o he_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n in_o another_o more_o noble_a and_o sublime_a sense_n than_o he_o have_v be_v before_o upon_o the_o cross_n then_o angel_n come_v in_o bright_a array_n to_o testify_v to_o he_o what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o himself_o xiii_o joh._n 31_o 32._o that_o god_n have_v be_v glorify_v in_o he_o have_v glorify_v he_o in_o himself_o this_o be_v a_o very_a glorious_a testimony_n that_o indeed_o he_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o shall_v be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o we_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n or_o author_n of_o life_n iii._o act._n 15._o because_o by_o that_o which_o overcome_v death_n his_o resurrection_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &c_n &c_n 28._o &c_n s._n cyril_n ib._n in_o twelve_o joh._n 28._o we_o know_v he_o to_o be_v life_n and_o the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n but_o of_o this_o more_o hereafter_o 3._o another_o act_n whereby_o this_o say_n i_o will_v glorify_v thou_o again_o be_v verify_v i_o take_v to_o be_v his_o exaltation_n by_o god_n own_o right_a hand_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o heaven_n this_o he_o pray_v for_o with_o the_o great_a ardency_n and_o the_o most_o assure_a expectation_n xvii_o joh._n 1_o 2._o because_o god_n the_o father_n he_o say_v have_v give_v he_o power_n i._n e._n the_o promise_n of_o it_o over_o all_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o as_o many_o as_o god_n have_v give_v he_o this_o promise_n i_o understand_v it_o be_v make_v to_o he_o when_o god_n utter_v this_o voice_n from_o heaven_n i_o have_v both_o glorify_v thou_o and_o will_v glorify_v thou_o again_o then_o god_n give_v he_o a_o power_n to_o raise_v up_o all_o as_o he_o have_v late_o do_v lazarus_n and_o to_o give_v they_o immortal_a happiness_n of_o which_o as_o he_o have_v then_o the_o grant_n so_o he_o now_o desire_v in_o this_o prayer_n to_o be_v put_v in_o possession_n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o say_v vers_n 1._o father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v glorify_v thy_o son_n etc._n etc._n i_o take_v the_o meaning_n to_o be_v as_o if_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v now_o be_v the_o time_n to_o do_v that_o which_o thy_o voice_n from_o heaven_n assure_v i_o shall_v be_v do_v viz._n to_o glorify_v i_o in_o so_o complete_a a_o manner_n that_o i_o may_v glorify_v thou_o and_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o the_o faithful_a this_o he_o speak_v with_o eye_n lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n from_o whence_o that_o voice_n come_v which_o bare_a witness_n of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v glorify_v more_o than_o ever_o and_o give_v he_o authority_n to_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o high_a power_n of_o bestow_v immortality_n which_o power_n when_o god_n the_o father_n have_v actual_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n according_a to_o this_o prayer_n and_o his_o own_o promise_n of_o which_o he_o can_v not_o fail_v have_v engage_v himself_o before_o a_o multitude_n to_o glorify_v he_o then_o be_v make_v perfect_a he_o become_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o v._o heb._n 9_o then_o he_o be_v make_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o seven_o 16_o 17._o not_o after_o the_o law_n which_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a institution_n but_o after_o the_o power_n of_o a_o endless_a life_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o he_o can_v raise_v up_o we_o and_o all_o that_o succeed_v we_o as_o well_o as_o he_o do_v lazarus_n and_o other_o in_o who_o he_o give_v only_o a_o little_a taste_n of_o his_o power_n to_o give_v we_o life_n that_o shall_v never_o die_v this_o now_o be_v the_o three_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n who_o in_o the_o audience_n both_o of_o friend_n and_o stranger_n say_v he_o have_v both_o glorify_v he_o and_o will_v glorify_v he_o again_o that_o he_o have_v be_v then_o very_o well_o know_v and_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a because_o he_o say_v it_o that_o he_o will_v do_v the_o same_o again_o by_o the_o testimony_n also_o of_o sufficient_a person_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o make_v good_a this_o promise_n even_o at_o his_o death_n after_o which_o he_o raise_v he_o out_o of_o his_o grave_n and_o lift_v he_o up_o far_o above_o all_o heaven_n that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v once_o more_o 2_o thess_n i._o 10._o by_o raise_v we_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o promote_a we_o to_o eternal_a glory_n with_o himself_o o_o wonderful_a news_n christi_fw-la athanasius_n in_o assumption_n christi_fw-la he_o that_o be_v lift_v up_o to_o hang_v on_o a_o cross_n be_v prefer_v now_o from_o his_o grave_n to_o a_o glorious_a throne_n and_o to_o come_v at_o it_o he_o take_v a_o journey_n through_o the_o air_n the_o cloud_n run_v under_o his_o foot_n become_v his_o chariot_n the_o sky_n open_v to_o he_o and_o the_o heaven_n with_o open_a arm_n receive_v he_o the_o troop_n of_o angel_n join_v together_o in_o triumphal_a song_n and_o persuade_v his_o amaze_a disciple_n to_o keep_v that_o day_n a_o festival_n on_o earth_n as_o they_o do_v in_o heaven_n do_v not_o stand_v gaze_v here_o say_v they_o any_o long_a but_o go_v and_o preach_v this_o wonder_n to_o the_o world_n by_o his_o departure_n represent_v his_o come_n again_o for_o so_o shall_v he_o come_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n o_o how_o wonderful_a be_v thy_o work_n o_o lord_n which_o give_v we_o hope_v as_o the_o bless_a st._n paul_n say_v when_o he_o think_v of_o these_o thing_n that_o we_o shall_v then_o be_v catch_v up_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o be_v ever_o with_o the_o lord_n we_o can_v do_v no_o less_o then_o to_o those_o voice_n which_o come_v so_o oft_o from_o heaven_n to_o testify_v this_o add_v our_o poor_a voice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n say_v with_o the_o angel_n when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n glory_n be_v to_o god_n in_o the_o high_a and_o with_o the_o multitude_n when_o they_o meet_v he_o at_o mount_n olivet_n bless_a be_v the_o king_n that_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n peace_n in_o heaven_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o high_a domini_fw-la cyrill_n hieros_n in_o occur_v domini_fw-la glory_n be_v to_o he_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n come_v from_o the_o fountain_n of_o life_n the_o father_n glory_n be_v to_o he_o who_o be_v the_o river_n of_o god_n proceed_v from_o the_o divine_a abyss_n and_o inseparable_o one_o with_o it_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o father_n goodness_n and_o of_o ever-springing_a blessedness_n the_o water_n of_o life_n who_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n the_o increated_a beam_n of_o the_o father_n of_o light_n from_o who_o he_o be_v undivided_a who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n take_v on_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n not_o lessen_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o divinity_n but_o sanctify_v the_o mass_n of_o our_o humanity_n he_o the_o angel_n praise_n the_o archangel_n worship_n the_o authority_n reverence_n the_o power_n glorify_v the_o cherubim_n do_v he_o service_n the_o seraphim_n acknowledge_v his_o divinity_n the_o sun_n and_o moon_n minister_v to_o he_o who_o have_v break_v in_o piece_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o open_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n and_o abolish_v death_n and_o confound_v the_o devil_n and_o dissolve_v the_o curse_n and_o make_v sorrow_n cease_v and_o tread_a sin_n under_o foot_n and_o restore_v the_o creation_n and_o enlighten_v the_o world_n and_o therefore_o let_v we_o sing_v hymn_n to_o he_o with_o the_o angel_n and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n with_o the_o shepherd_n and_o adore_v he_o with_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o joyful_o magnify_v he_o with_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o confess_v he_o with_o simeon_n and_o anna_n who_o be_v glad_a to_o see_v his_o salvation_n that_o so_o we_o at_o last_o may_v also_o be_v possess_v of_o eternal_a good_a thing_n through_o the_o grace_n and_o the_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n and_o the_o lovingkindness_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v glory_n and_o dominion_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n chap._n vii_o concern_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o word_n the_o second_o witness_n in_o heaven_n if_o we_o have_v no_o far_a witness_n of_o this_o truth_n but_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o produce_v we_o may_v well_o rejoice_v in_o the_o comfort_n which_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v we_o and_o rely_v upon_o jesus_n as_o the_o author_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o all_o those_o that_o obey_v he_o
and_o let_v it_o into_o the_o dwell_n of_o god_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o shall_v put_v off_o his_o mortality_n there_o he_o behold_v jesus_n stand_v whereas_o he_o be_v common_o represent_v as_o sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n that_o he_o may_v know_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o meet_v his_o spirit_n and_o entertain_v it_o into_o his_o heavenly_a mansion_n as_o well_o as_o that_o he_o be_v come_v to_o destroy_v his_o persecutor_n and_o put_v a_o end_n to_o their_o power_n and_o nation_n and_o he_o see_v also_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o the_o crown_n he_o shall_v win_v by_o his_o martyrdom_n which_o have_v as_o sensible_a a_o effect_n upon_o his_o heart_n for_o the_o confirm_v of_o his_o faith_n and_o constancy_n as_o if_o he_o have_v hear_v the_o almighty_a call_n to_o he_o and_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o fainthearted_a o_o stephen_n nor_o suffer_v any_o degenerous_a thought_n to_o enter_v into_o thy_o breast_n though_o there_o be_v no_o man_n to_o stand_v by_o thou_o no_o friend_n on_o earth_n to_o assist_v thou_o in_o this_o distress_a season_n yet_o i_o with_o my_o belove_a son_n behold_v what_o be_v a_o do_v a_o happy_a rest_n and_o repose_n be_v ready_a for_o thou_o the_o gate_n of_o paradise_n stand_v wide_a open_a to_o thou_o have_v patience_n a_o while_n and_z leave_v this_o temporary_a life_n make_v haste_n to_o that_o which_o be_v eternal_a still_o thou_o see_v god_n be_v in_o humane_a nature_n a_o thing_n beyond_o all_o worldly_a thought_n thou_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o father_n have_v a_o genuine_a belove_a son_n behold_v i_o show_v he_o to_o thou_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o can_v bear_v and_o he_o stand_v at_o my_o right_a hand_n that_o by_o the_o very_a site_n of_o the_o place_n thou_o may_v know_v the_o dignity_n he_o have_v it_o be_v a_o scandal_n heretofore_o to_o many_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v on_o the_o earth_n clothe_v with_o flesh_n but_o behold_v he_o now_o with_o i_o on_o high_a in_o a_o celestial_a supercelestial_a condition_n still_o have_v the_o form_n of_o man_n to_o confirm_v thou_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o gracious_a dispensation_n which_o be_v now_o complete_v be_v not_o disturb_v be_v not_o deject_v though_o for_o his_o sake_n thou_o be_v stone_v behold_v the_o dispenser_n of_o reward_n do_v not_o fear_v the_o combat_n forsake_v thy_o body_n and_o despise_v it_o as_o a_o earthly_a prison_n as_o a_o ruinous_a house_n as_o a_o potter_n vessel_n easy_o break_v come_v run_v hither_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n to_o the_o portion_n and_o inheritance_n here_o reserve_v for_o thou_o for_o the_o crown_n of_o brave_a achievement_n be_v ready_a and_o expect_v thou_o step_v over_o from_o the_o earth_n to_o heaven_n and_o take_v it_o leave_v thy_o body_n to_o the_o bloody_a murderer_n as_o a_o morsel_n to_o dog_n leave_v the_o mad_a enrage_a multitude_n and_o come_v to_o the_o choir_n of_o angel_n in_o these_o word_n asterius_n express_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o heavenly_a vision_n protomart_n encomium_n in_o protomart_n wherein_o god_n show_v himself_o to_o this_o valiant_a man_n that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v strike_v with_o any_o fear_n by_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o danger_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o do_v not_o send_v a_o angel_n to_o assist_v he_o as_o to_o the_o apostle_n in_o prison_n nor_o any_o minister_a power_n and_o fellow-servant_n as_o he_o speak_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o he_o present_v himself_o that_o be_v the_o first-fruit_n of_o the_o martyr_n he_o may_v leave_v a_o noble_a example_n to_o all_o that_o follow_v and_o indeed_o what_o can_v more_o encourage_v they_o then_o to_o hear_v so_o holy_a a_o man_n depart_v the_o world_n with_o these_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n i_o see_v the_o heaven_n open_v and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n this_o be_v a_o notable_a testimony_n which_o the_o heavenly_a word_n give_v that_o he_o be_v possess_v of_o eternal_a life_n whereby_o he_o animate_v this_o bless_a martyr_n from_o what_o he_o see_v he_o enjoy_v to_o do_v as_o he_o have_v do_v which_o can_v have_v no_o force_n in_o it_o to_o persuade_v he_o unless_o his_o meaning_n have_v be_v that_o he_o shall_v no_o soon_o leave_v the_o world_n but_o ascend_v up_o thither_o where_o he_o be_v and_o so_o st._n stephen_n understand_v it_o for_o as_o they_o be_v ston_a he_o the_o great_a punishment_n the_o jew_n can_v inflict_v he_o call_v upon_o our_o saviour_n say_v lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n seven_o act._n 59_o he_o doubt_v not_o of_o audience_n when_o he_o behold_v he_o who_o be_v sit_v down_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a i._n heb._n 3._o in_o another_o posture_n xvii_o proclus_n orat._n xvii_o not_o sit_v but_o stand_v there_o what_o be_v the_o business_n to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o another_o ancient_a bishop_n that_o make_v he_o rise_v thus_o out_o of_o his_o father_n throne_n he_o see_v this_o noble_a combatant_n in_o his_o agony_n and_o rise_v up_o to_o crown_v his_o victory_n and_o it_o be_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v fear_v not_o stephen_n there_o be_v none_o shall_v beguile_v thou_o of_o thy_o reward_n i_o be_o rise_v out_o of_o my_o throne_n to_o reach_v thou_o my_o right_a hand_n behold_v i_o who_o be_v crucify_v grapple_v with_o the_o danger_n that_o present_v itself_o to_o thou_o i_o be_o he_o who_o thou_o see_v hang_v on_o a_o tree_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o crucifixion_n i_o will_v reward_v thou_o i_o preside_v in_o these_o combat_n and_o deal_v the_o crown_n to_o conqueror_n fear_v not_o therefore_o those_o that_o go_v about_o to_o stone_n thou_o they_o do_v but_o rear_v thou_o a_o ladder_n against_o their_o will_n to_o heaven_n do_v not_o fear_v they_o the_o stone_n will_v be_v but_o as_o so_o many_o step_n to_o that_o bless_a place_n where_o thou_o see_v i_o it_o be_v not_o for_o thou_o to_o fear_v the_o stone_n who_o be_v build_v on_o i_o the_o chief_a cornerstone_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o fare_v worse_o than_o i_o do_v who_o be_o in_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o with_o such_o thought_n as_o these_o this_o good_a man_n lay_v down_o his_o life_n which_o be_v as_o great_a a_o argument_n as_o any_o of_o this_o nature_n can_v be_v that_o jesus_n both_o can_v and_o will_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o his_o follower_n for_o else_o a_o person_n so_o full_a of_o wisdom_n that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o dispute_v with_o he_o vi_fw-la act._n 10._o will_v not_o have_v venture_v his_o life_n and_o endure_v the_o worst_a of_o death_n have_v nothing_o to_o comfort_v he_o in_o his_o agony_n but_o only_o the_o hope_n he_o have_v from_o jesus_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v his_o spirit_n this_o be_v it_o that_o give_v he_o such_o boldness_n and_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n with_o these_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n he_o will_v have_v die_v but_o that_o he_o pity_v those_o who_o do_v not_o see_v as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v which_o make_v he_o expire_v in_o prayer_n for_o his_o persecutor_n wish_v they_o no_o worse_o then_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v hinder_v by_o this_o sin_n from_o believe_v in_o jesus_n and_o go_v thither_o where_o he_o hope_v present_o to_o be_v receive_v so_o the_o same_o asterius_n right_o understand_v those_o word_n lord_z lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n he_o do_v not_o wish_v they_o absolute_a impunity_n which_o have_v be_v open_o to_o oppose_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o divine_a ordinance_n and_o constitution_n and_o to_o correct_v the_o judgement_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o most_o just_a who_o have_v appoint_v a_o deserve_a punishment_n to_o murderer_n but_o he_o beg_v of_o god_n that_o notwithstanding_o this_o crime_n he_o will_v give_v they_o true_a compunction_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n it_o be_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v do_v not_o let_v they_o die_v in_o their_o uncircumcision_n draw_v they_o by_o repentance_n to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o thou_o kindle_v the_o flame_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o my_o blood_n let_v they_o be_v convert_v that_o be_v wash_v in_o the_o laver_n of_o thy_o grace_n and_o in_o thy_o blood_n they_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o their_o iniquity_n a_o most_o pious_a conclusion_n of_o this_o bloody_a tragedy_n one_o of_o the_o principal_a actor_n in_o which_o be_v present_o after_o so_o miraculous_o touch_v from_o heaven_n that_o it_o be_v visible_a our_o lord_n have_v hear_v the_o devout_a prayer_n of_o his_o martyr_n in_o this_o particular_a and_o therefore_o have_v not_o deny_v his_o other_o request_n but_o receive_v his_o spirit_n also_o unto_o himself_o ii_o for_o if_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v clear_a
doctrine_n of_o happiness_n to_o we_o which_o his_o own_o people_n so_o abhor_v we_o shall_v partake_v of_o if_o god_n the_o word_n have_v not_o make_v he_o infallible_o assure_v of_o it_o nay_o how_o can_v he_o have_v preach_v it_o so_o long_o unless_o as_o he_o there_o speak_v he_o have_v obtain_v help_n of_o god_n who_o countenance_v his_o preach_n and_o approve_v this_o testimony_n of_o his_o concern_v his_o son_n jesus_n by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o himself_o also_o testify_v the_o strong_a belief_n he_o have_v of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o of_o the_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v by_o his_o labour_v so_o abundant_o as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o who_o he_o be_v desirous_a to_o express_v a_o extraordinary_a affection_n because_o his_o grace_n and_o love_n have_v so_o abound_v towards_o he_o he_o think_v he_o can_v never_o in_o the_o least_o requite_v his_o kindness_n and_o therefore_o will_v not_o gain_v one_o farthing_n not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o bit_n of_o bread_n by_o this_o preach_n but_o though_o he_o may_v have_v live_v by_o the_o gospel_n choose_v rather_o to_o work_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o support_v himself_o and_o those_o that_o be_v with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v win_v the_o more_o soul_n to_o his_o master_n by_o make_v religion_n without_o charge_n to_o they_o a_o great_a argument_n of_o his_o zeal_n to_o serve_v his_o lord_n and_o promote_v his_o honour_n and_o of_o his_o firm_a belief_n of_o immortal_a life_n where_o he_o desire_v only_o to_o have_v his_o service_n reward_v which_o be_v excellent_o express_v by_o the_o forename_a asterius_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o refuse_v so_o small_a a_o recompense_n of_o his_o infinite_a labour_n as_o a_o daily_a provision_n for_o his_o body_n which_o be_v so_o often_o beat_v and_o bruise_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o receive_v nothing_o upon_o earth_n he_o may_v lay_v up_o all_o in_o heaven_n vi_o and_o therefore_o you_o may_v observe_v that_o his_o service_n be_v so_o acceptable_a to_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o gratify_v he_o here_o in_o this_o world_n above_o our_o mortal_a condition_n and_o to_o give_v he_o a_o earnest_n or_o pledge_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v and_o the_o honour_n shall_v be_v do_v he_o there_o he_o do_v he_o the_o favour_n to_o transport_v he_o into_o the_o three_o heaven_n and_o another_o time_n into_o paradise_n where_o he_o see_v vision_n and_o hear_v word_n too_o glorious_a for_o he_o to_o utter_v or_o we_o to_o understand_v in_o this_o present_a state_n 2_o cor._n twelve_o 3_o 4._o this_o be_v a_o far_a confirmation_n which_o the_o eternal_a word_n give_v of_o his_o power_n to_o give_v eternal_a life_n and_o of_o his_o intention_n to_o take_v we_o up_o unto_o himself_o for_o he_o be_v carry_v thus_o above_o the_o cloud_n by_o the_o power_n and_o favour_n of_o jesus_n who_o hereby_o bare_a witness_n to_o himself_o how_o glorious_a he_o be_v and_o how_o able_a to_o advance_v his_o faithful_a disciple_n to_o the_o same_o height_n of_o heavenly_a felicity_n for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o man_n in_o christ_n one_o who_o by_o the_o happiness_n of_o belong_v to_o he_o have_v this_o noble_a privilege_n bestow_v on_o he_o and_o he_o give_v this_o as_o a_o instance_n of_o the_o vision_n and_o revelation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o lord_n ver_fw-la 1._o which_o be_v the_o title_n of_o jesus_n most_o frequent_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n who_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o x._o act._n 36._o he_o snatch_v he_o up_o into_o the_o heaven_n he_o transport_v he_o no_o body_n know_v how_o to_o the_o celestial_a habitation_n and_o either_o by_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o st._n greg._n naz_n 550._o naz_n orat._n two_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 550._o distinguish_v they_o a_o rapture_n of_o mind_n in_o the_o body_n or_o the_o ascension_n of_o his_o mind_n quite_o out_o of_o the_o body_n or_o the_o assumption_n of_o both_o for_o a_o time_n into_o those_o region_n above_o he_o let_v he_o see_v strange_a sight_n and_o hear_v such_o word_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v speak_v with_o our_o tongue_n which_o be_v a_o very_a full_a demonstration_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o of_o his_o ability_n to_o translate_v we_o to_o those_o heavenly_a place_n and_o of_o his_o purpose_n likewise_o to_o make_v we_o at_o last_o so_o happy_a behold_v here_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n who_o author_n be_v so_o high_o exalt_v that_o he_o exalt_v this_o minister_n of_o his_o far_o above_o the_o great_a person_n in_o former_a time_n the_o translation_n of_o elias_n as_o the_o often_o name_v asterius_n speak_v etc._n speak_v ib._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n out_o of_o this_o world_n wherein_o we_o be_v be_v everywhere_o celebrate_v as_o a_o wonder_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d how_o far_o he_o go_v no_o revelation_n have_v explain_v perhaps_o he_o be_v not_o carry_v very_o high_a above_o the_o earth_n by_o that_o power_n which_o lift_v he_o up_o to_o the_o place_n which_o be_v destine_v for_o his_o habitation_n but_o the_o translation_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v far_o more_o illustrious_a and_o famous_a the_o very_a place_n be_v note_v to_o which_o he_o be_v carry_v and_o that_o no_o inferior_a one_o but_o almost_o half_a way_n to_o the_o high_a heaven_n of_o all_o let_v the_o hebrew_n hereafter_o cease_v to_o pride_n themselves_o in_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v do_v to_o moses_n who_o alone_o go_v up_o to_o the_o top_n of_o mount_n sinai_n and_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o cloud_n and_o darkness_n which_o appear_v there_o my_o paul_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o mountain_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o cloud_n be_v carry_v beyond_o the_o air_n that_o be_v above_o the_o cloud_n and_o very_o fit_o for_o it_o become_v a_o man_n of_o christ_n to_o outstrip_v moses_n as_o much_o as_o the_o old_a law_n be_v excel_v by_o the_o gospel_n that_o st._n paul_n preach_v which_o he_o call_v the_o mystery_n hide_v from_o age_n and_o generation_n but_o now_o make_v manifest_a to_o the_o saint_n or_o christian_n to_o who_o god_n will_v make_v know_v what_o be_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o mystery_n among_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v christ_n in_o we_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n i_o col._n 26_o 27._o iii_o and_o here_o now_o let_v we_o leave_v the_o history_n of_o this_o great_a man_n and_o pass_v to_o the_o three_o testimony_n which_o the_o word_n give_v of_o this_o truth_n to_o st._n john_n who_o as_o he_o be_v the_o only_a person_n that_o after_o the_o other_o evangelist_n have_v set_v down_o the_o genealogy_n of_o our_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n expound_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o proclus_n 〈◊〉_d proclus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d speak_v the_o eternal_a subsistence_n without_o any_o begin_n of_o god_n the_o word_n and_o his_o generation_n of_o the_o father_n before_o all_o world_n so_o he_o have_v gather_v here_o together_o more_o clear_o than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n all_o the_o evidence_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o also_o receive_v the_o most_o full_a and_o pregnant_a demonstration_n of_o what_o he_o have_v particular_o record_v concern_v eternal_a life_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o when_o our_o bless_a lord_n the_o word_n make_v flesh_n who_o he_o behold_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n appear_v to_o he_o from_o thence_o in_o a_o most_o glorious_a manner_n you_o may_v observe_v i._o that_o he_o sufficient_o declare_v his_o power_n to_o do_v what_o he_o please_v by_o take_v to_o himself_o that_o very_a name_n and_o title_n whereby_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a sometime_o reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o prophet_n you_o read_v in_o the_o xli_o isa_n 4._o xliv_o 6._o the_o lord_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o his_o redeemer_n say_v i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o those_o word_n i._o rev._n 8._o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n say_v the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n those_o two_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o letter_n in_o the_o greek_a alphabet_n as_o a_o and_o z_o be_v the_o first_o and_o last_o in_o our_o christ-cross-row_n now_o if_o you_o look_v far_o into_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n you_o will_v find_v that_o in_o this_o very_a style_n our_o bless_a lord_n speak_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o vision_n there_o record_v st._n john_n hear_v one_o call_v to_o he_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n as_o of_o a_o trumpet_n say_v i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o first_o
pragmatical_o inquire_v after_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n itself_o have_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n thou_o who_o know_v not_o all_o that_o be_v write_v why_o do_v thou_o busy_v thyself_o curious_o about_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v let_v it_o suffice_v thou_o to_o know_v that_o god_n have_v but_o one_o onely-begotten_a son_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o rest_n for_o thou_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o together_o with_o the_o angel_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o what_o a_o more_o modern_a writer_n have_v say_v nescire_fw-la velle_fw-la quae_fw-la magister_fw-la ma●imus_fw-la docere_fw-la non_fw-la vult_fw-la erudita_fw-la est_fw-la inscitia_fw-la to_o be_v willing_a not_o to_o know_v what_o our_o supreme_a master_n will_v not_o teach_v be_v a_o learned_a ignorance_n with_o which_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o and_o not_o envy_v to_o those_o who_o have_v a_o list_n to_o handle_v these_o thing_n more_o nice_o their_o ignorant_a learning_n they_o may_v venture_v as_o far_o as_o they_o please_v if_o they_o think_v it_o safe_a but_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v angry_a with_o those_o who_o have_v rather_o expect_v far_a discovery_n in_o the_o other_o world_n where_o we_o shall_v be_v more_o know_v by_o a_o pure_a and_o more_o perfect_a illumination_n of_o the_o most_o high_a trinity_n etc._n o●at_n xi_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n as_o st._n greg._n naz._n speak_v elsewhere_o and_o yet_o more_o modest_a and_o apt_a to_o adore_v the_o incomprehensible_a god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n who_o testimony_n be_v so_o full_a to_o satisfy_v we_o there_o will_v be_v such_o a_o happy_a state_n that_o before_o i_o pass_v to_o the_o other_o three_o witness_n on_o earth_n i_o can_v but_o rest_v a_o while_n and_o consider_v what_o a_o great_a way_n we_o be_v advance_v towards_o a_o strong_a and_o settle_a belief_n of_o eternal_a life_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v well_o digest_v in_o our_o mind_n if_o we_o will_v but_o always_o lay_v before_o our_o eye_n these_o record_n and_o be_v as_o well_o acquaint_v with_o they_o as_o we_o be_v with_o our_o evidence_n for_o our_o estate_n if_o they_o be_v as_o fresh_a in_o our_o mind_n as_o the_o word_n of_o a_o record_n which_o we_o be_v to_o plead_v in_o some_o court_n where_o we_o have_v a_o cause_n to_o be_v hear_v or_o the_o title_n to_o our_o whole_a estate_n try_v and_o determine_v i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o we_o shall_v possible_o doubt_v of_o this_o promise_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v make_v to_o his_o follower_n nor_o how_o we_o shall_v lose_v the_o joy_n and_o comfort_n of_o it_o in_o this_o world_n of_o sorrow_n let_v all_o those_o who_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v thus_o far_o in_o this_o treatise_n be_v so_o kind_a to_o themselves_o as_o on_o all_o occasion_n to_o recollect_v what_o they_o have_v read_v and_o in_o their_o quiet_a thought_n to_o put_v themselves_o often_o in_o mind_n that_o the_o father_n have_v say_v this_o be_v true_a by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n at_o several_a time_n when_o jesus_n be_v baptize_v when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o holy_a mount_n and_o before_o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n he_o testify_v that_o eternal_a life_n be_v in_o he_o the_o word_n also_o have_v show_v we_o this_o glorious_a state_n when_o he_o appear_v to_o st._n stephen_n to_o st._n paul_n to_o his_o belove_a st._n john_n who_o have_v all_o communicate_v their_o knowledge_n to_o we_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o assure_v they_o he_o live_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v live_v by_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n likewise_o have_v declare_v this_o by_o come_v down_o upon_o he_o and_o upon_o his_o apostle_n and_o upon_o his_o faithful_a one_o and_o then_o they_o can_v choose_v but_o rely_v most_o firm_o upon_o such_o ample_a and_o unquestionable_a testimony_n and_o be_v very_o much_o affect_v with_o this_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n which_o god_n work_v in_o we_o there_o will_v be_v no_o reason_n i_o be_o sure_a why_o they_o shall_v not_o as_o strong_o believe_v and_o expect_v the_o glory_n that_o jesus_n will_v give_v we_o though_o they_o do_v not_o now_o see_v it_o as_o we_o all_o do_v the_o performance_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o any_o person_n of_o know_a honesty_n and_o ability_n though_o at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o we_o no_o doubt_v the_o faith_n of_o christian_n will_v be_v immovable_a do_v they_o ponder_v these_o thing_n they_o will_v never_o call_v it_o into_o dispute_n after_o such_o demonstration_n whether_o there_o be_v another_o life_n or_o no._n yea_o they_o themselves_o will_v become_v immovable_a and_o steadfast_a and_o abundant_a in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o lord_n because_o the_o very_a same_o witness_n tell_v they_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n which_o can_v be_v compass_v by_o any_o mean_v but_o by_o patient_a continuance_n in_o well-doing_n how_o well_o then_o will_v it_o be_v with_o they_o can_v we_o but_o prevail_v with_o all_o christian_a soul_n to_o spend_v some_o time_n every_o day_n in_o call_v to_o mind_n what_o they_o have_v hear_v these_o heavenly_a witness_n say_v if_o they_o will_v but_o cast_v up_o their_o eye_n every_o morning_n towards_o heaven_n and_o think_v there_o jesus_n be_v there_o he_o live_v in_o great_a honour_n and_o glory_n there_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n there_o st._n stephen_n see_v he_o in_o such_o glory_n st._n paul_n and_o st._n john_n behold_v he_o from_o thence_o they_o hear_v he_o speak_v and_o make_v most_o gracious_a promise_n to_o they_o he_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o thence_o to_o be_v his_o witness_n there_o he_o be_v prepare_v a_o place_n for_o all_o they_o that_o have_v the_o heart_n to_o follow_v he_o thither_o he_o will_v receive_v our_o spirit_n to_o behold_v his_o glory_n and_o with_o he_o shall_v all_o good_a man_n live_v for_o ever_o in_o unconceivable_a joy_n how_o will_v these_o thought_n inspire_v and_o ravish_v their_o heart_n how_o will_v they_o change_v and_o transform_v they_o into_o quite_o other_o thing_n how_o mean_v and_o contemptible_a will_v our_o petty_a enjoyment_n which_o now_o so_o tempt_v we_o seem_v in_o comparison_n with_o that_o divine_a condition_n how_o impossible_a will_v it_o be_v to_o persuade_v we_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o breach_n of_o any_o of_o his_o command_n and_o thereby_o forfeit_a such_o happiness_n yea_o how_o easy_a sweet_a and_o pleasant_a will_v it_o be_v to_o do_v as_o he_o bid_v we_o in_o hope_n of_o such_o a_o incomparable_a recompense_n i_o leave_v every_o one_o to_o make_v trial_n of_o it_o that_o he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o tell_v if_o he_o can_v what_o power_n and_o force_v there_o be_v in_o this_o settle_a belief_n it_o be_v report_v by_o he_o that_o write_v the_o life_n of_o laurentius_n justinianus_n that_o when_o he_o be_v a_o youth_n about_o nineteen_o year_n old_a which_o be_v a_o age_n you_o know_v most_o slippery_a and_o subject_a to_o danger_n he_o think_v he_o see_v one_o day_n or_o night_n i_o know_v not_o well_o whether_o a_o very_a beautiful_a virgin_n approach_v towards_o he_o and_o thus_o address_v her_o speech_n to_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o o_o young_a man_n thus_o disquiet_v thy_o heart_n and_o waste_v thy_o strength_n in_o a_o vain_a pursuit_n of_o many_o thing_n whereon_o thou_o pour_v forth_o thy_o affection_n why_o do_v thou_o seek_v for_o rest_n in_o such_o trivial_a enjoyment_n that_o which_o thou_o be_v so_o desirous_a of_o be_v in_o my_o power_n to_o bestow_v upon_o thou_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v resolye_a to_o take_v i_o for_o thy_o spouse_n i_o promise_v to_o bring_v with_o i_o such_o a_o portion_n of_o peace_n and_o contentment_n as_o no_o other_o person_n can_v enrich_v thou_o withal_o the_o young_a man_n you_o may_v well_o suppose_v be_v much_o take_v with_o so_o rare_a a_o feature_n and_o such_o fair_a promise_n which_o move_v he_o to_o crave_v that_o he_o may_v know_v her_o name_n and_o the_o family_n from_o which_o she_o be_v descend_v to_o which_o she_o answer_v i_o be_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n that_o be_v my_o name_n thence_o be_v my_o parentage_n if_o thou_o will_v accept_v of_o the_o offer_n i_o will_v be_v thou_o and_o give_v all_o i_o have_v to_o thou_o the_o youth_n say_v the_o story_n instant_o consent_v and_o after_o he_o have_v draw_v a_o contract_n between_o they_o think_v she_o take_v her_o leave_n of_o he_o and_o go_v away_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o wedding_n upon_o this_o he_o awake_v and_o imagine_v the_o vision_n instruct_v he_o to_o betake_v himself_o to_o a_o monastical_a life_n which_o he_o present_o vow_v conclude_v that_o in_o that_o retirement_n he_o be_v to_o complete_a his_o marriage_n to_o the_o
wisdom_n of_o god_n when_o he_o have_v quit_v the_o empty_a pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n however_o fabulous_a this_o story_n may_v prove_v which_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v compose_v in_o imitation_n of_o that_o vision_n of_o hercules_n which_o many_o greek_a writer_n mention_n you_o may_v make_v it_o true_a if_o you_o please_v for_o behold_v how_o the_o true_a wisdom_n of_o god_n our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n present_v himself_o to_o you_o he_o have_v appear_v in_o most_o admirable_a beauty_n and_o a_o glorious_a form_n to_o many_o of_o his_o servant_n which_o they_o have_v describe_v and_o leave_v we_o the_o picture_n of_o in_o his_o gospel_n he_o be_v so_o lively_o express_v that_o we_o can_v if_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o but_o behold_v he_o as_o the_o onely-begotten_a of_o the_o father_n the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o character_n of_o his_o person_n will_v it_o will_v but_o please_v you_o to_o listen_v to_o the_o offer_v he_o make_v you_o the_o portion_n of_o life_n and_o glory_n hereafter_o together_o with_o true_a peace_n and_o contentment_n here_o which_o he_o will_v assure_v to_o you_o o_o that_o you_o will_v but_o draw_v a_o lively_a image_n of_o these_o thing_n in_o your_o mind_n and_o represent_v the_o king_n of_o glory_n as_o solicit_v your_o heart_n to_o his_o service_n do_v you_o not_o believe_v that_o it_o will_v be_v infinite_o more_o oblige_v than_o such_o a_o apparition_n as_o that_o now_o name_v will_v it_o not_o more_o easy_o make_v you_o abandon_v the_o sinful_a pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n than_o the_o other_o make_v he_o forsake_v the_o lawful_a will_v not_o the_o beauty_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o splendour_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o the_o heaven_n set_v before_o your_o eye_n be_v more_o inamour_v then_o any_o imaginary_a or_o real_a beauty_n whatsoever_o will_v not_o these_o word_n of_o his_o be_v more_o pierce_a than_o any_o other_o i_o will_v give_v to_o he_o that_o overcome_v to_o inherit_v all_o thing_n and_o i_o will_v be_v his_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n will_v it_o not_o transport_v our_o heart_n with_o joy_n to_o hear_v that_o he_o will_v be_v contract_v to_o we_o and_o assure_v we_o of_o such_o a_o dowry_n with_o himself_o in_o the_o heaven_n will_v it_o not_o make_v all_o his_o command_n so_o far_o from_o be_v grievous_a that_o we_o shall_v think_v they_o sweet_a and_o delicious_a above_o all_o the_o pleasure_n wherein_o sensual_a man_n be_v drown_v he_o can_v make_v no_o doubt_n of_o it_o that_o have_v not_o lose_v his_o reason_n and_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v what_o the_o difference_n be_v between_o such_o a_o certain_a truth_n as_o this_o and_o a_o dream_n and_o between_o the_o command_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o obedience_n which_o that_o youth_n undertake_v to_o perform_v jesus_n be_v certain_o in_o the_o heaven_n he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a he_o unfeigned_o wish_v we_o will_v be_v espouse_v to_o he_o he_o will_v settle_v a_o eternal_a inheritance_n upon_o we_o and_o he_o do_v not_o require_v we_o to_o go_v into_o monastery_n and_o desert_n to_o live_v like_o hermit_n and_o anchorets_n to_o immure_v ourselves_o from_o all_o society_n though_o if_o he_o do_v we_o shall_v have_v no_o ill_a bargain_n of_o it_o but_o only_a to_o retire_v serious_o into_o ourselves_o and_o there_o often_o meet_v with_o he_o to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a while_o we_o be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o let_v no_o company_n draw_v we_o from_o his_o precept_n nor_o suffer_v any_o creature_n to_o rob_v he_o of_o our_o affection_n and_o what_o a_o reasonable_a demand_n this_o be_v you_o will_v then_o see_v when_o you_o hearty_o believe_v this_o eternal_a life_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v believe_v and_o then_o you_o will_v think_v there_o be_v nothing_o too_o much_o or_o too_o hard_a to_o be_v do_v or_o suffer_v for_o the_o attain_v such_o a_o glorious_a life_n with_o our_o saviour_n which_o move_v st._n stephen_n to_o suffer_v ston_a and_o st._n paul_n to_o be_v in_o death_n often_o and_o st._n john_n to_o endure_v banishment_n in_o a_o most_o desolate_a island_n and_o worse_a thing_n afterward_o that_o they_o may_v be_v so_o happy_a and_o let_v we_o with_o honest_a heart_n desirous_a to_o be_v what_o god_n will_v have_v we_o beg_v the_o assistence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o guide_v we_o in_o this_o way_n of_o understanding_n which_o we_o shall_v find_v incomparable_o the_o best_a to_o settle_v in_o our_o mind_n a_o sense_n of_o the_o happiness_n to_o come_v for_o when_o the_o soul_n come_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o spirit_n xviii_o macar_n hom._n xuj_o xviii_o whole_o purge_v from_o all_o affection_n and_o unite_v to_o the_o spirit_n the_o comforter_n by_o a_o unspeakable_a communion_n so_o that_o by_o this_o heavenly_a mixture_n it_o become_v worthy_a to_o be_v a_o spirit_n it_o be_v all_o light_n all_o eye_n all_o spirit_n all_o joy_n all_o rest_n all_o exultation_n all_o love_n all_o goodness_n and_o sweetness_n it_o become_v hereby_o privy_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heavenly_a king_n and_o know_v his_o secret_n it_o have_v a_o confidence_n in_o the_o almighty_a and_o enter_v into_o his_o palace_n where_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v though_o it_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o this_o world_n for_o though_o it_o have_v not_o attain_v the_o entire_a inheritance_n prepare_v for_o it_o there_o yet_o it_o be_v secure_a from_o the_o earnest_a it_o have_v receive_v as_o if_o it_o be_v crown_v and_o possess_v of_o the_o kingdom_n who_o will_v not_o labour_v then_o to_o be_v so_o happy_a not_o only_o hereafter_o but_o also_o here_o annae_fw-la georg._n nicome_v in_o concept_n s._n annae_fw-la there_o in_o possession_n and_o here_o in_o hope_n what_o a_o work_n be_v it_o to_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n what_o laborious_a step_n can_v lead_v we_o to_o so_o great_a a_o height_n what_o be_v the_o sweat_v of_o this_o mortal_a life_n to_o those_o eternal_a recompense_n by_o what_o pain_n shall_v we_o be_v worthy_a of_o friendship_n with_o our_o maker_n how_o shall_v we_o make_v ourselves_o a_o proper_a habitation_n for_o he_o to_o dwell_v in_o for_o he_o have_v say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n will_v come_v and_o dwell_v in_o he_o that_o love_v i_o and_o keep_v my_o command_n this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o good_a we_o have_v in_o hope_n this_o be_v the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n this_o be_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o eternal_a pleasure_n this_o be_v the_o never-ceasing_a joy_n the_o perpetual_a triumph_n the_o retribution_n transcend_v all_o our_o labour_n nay_o all_o understanding_n there_o be_v no_o labour_n no_o not_o in_o thought_n equal_a to_o this_o recompense_n of_o reward_n they_o all_o fall_v so_o infinite_o below_o it_o that_o for_o mean_a for_o inconsiderable_a pain_n our_o transcendently-good_a lord_n will_v give_v a_o enjoyment_n far_o surpass_v all_o our_o thought_n all_o humane_a endeavour_n be_v of_o no_o account_n though_o we_o shall_v wear_v out_o a_o whole_a life_n in_o they_o compare_v with_o the_o future_a blessedness_n though_o we_o shall_v sustain_v a_o perpetual_a combat_n all_o our_o day_n though_o they_o shall_v be_v prolong_v to_o a_o hundred_o year_n or_o to_o twice_o as_o much_o or_o thrice_o or_o a_o thousand_o time_n and_o all_o this_o while_n we_o shall_v contend_v in_o a_o virtuous_a course_n we_o shall_v seem_v to_o have_v do_v nothing_o when_o we_o come_v to_o confer_v it_o with_o what_o we_o shall_v receive_v and_o therefore_o let_v we_o glad_o by_o such_o small_a and_o poor_a labour_n strive_v to_o purchase_v these_o super-sublime_a recompense_n and_o treasure_n up_o these_o never-consuming_a riches_n i_o call_v those_o poor_a and_o small_a which_o not_o only_o seem_v so_o to_o all_o but_o the_o perpetual_a combat_n of_o a_o whole_a age_n the_o most_o unwearied_a pursuit_n of_o virtue_n the_o most_o incessant_a and_o fervent_a pain_n in_o its_o service_n for_o such_o be_v the_o good_n which_o our_o munificent_a lord_n will_v give_v in_o exchange_n for_o they_o such_o be_v the_o superabundant_a riches_n of_o his_o retribution_n such_o be_v the_o hyperbole_n of_o his_o lovingkindness_n and_o goodness_n that_o for_o few_o thing_n he_o will_v give_v infinite_a for_o beggary_n the_o great_a riches_n for_o perish_a thing_n good_n that_o last_o for_o ever_o these_o let_v we_o seek_v and_o dedicate_a ourselves_o whole_o to_o the_o lord_n make_v haste_n to_o the_o obtain_n so_o inestimable_a a_o good_n let_v we_o consecrate_v soul_n and_o body_n to_o he_o and_o be_v fasten_v to_o his_o cross_n that_o we_o may_v be_v worthy_a of_o his_o eternal_a kingdom_n give_v glory_n to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o
for_o so_o villainous_a a_o murder_n but_o they_o grant_v that_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v by_o they_o we_o shall_v soon_o prove_v it_o be_v for_o another_o cause_n even_o that_o which_o be_v record_v in_o our_o book_n which_o none_o ever_o undertake_v to_o confute_v though_o they_o be_v put_v forth_o in_o the_o face_n both_o of_o jew_n and_o roman_n who_o may_v long_o since_o have_v expose_v our_o religion_n to_o shame_n if_o pontius_n pilate_n can_v have_v aver_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o court_n where_o our_o saviour_n be_v judge_v that_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o as_o his_o disciple_n have_v relate_v and_o that_o this_o blood_n of_o his_o so_o shed_v and_o upon_o such_o a_o account_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v be_v of_o very_o great_a force_n to_o induce_v we_o to_o believe_v another_o world_n and_o a_o eternal_a happiness_n there_o for_o we_o with_o jesus_n i_o be_o now_o to_o demonstrate_v and_o shall_v easy_o make_v good_a unless_o we_o will_v entertain_v such_o low_a and_o slight_a thought_n of_o he_o as_o no_o man_n can_v suffer_v to_o lodge_v in_o his_o mind_n who_o attend_v to_o the_o doctrine_n he_o preach_v and_o all_o the_o argument_n which_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o alone_o indeed_o be_v sufficient_a to_o justify_v all_o that_o he_o preach_v particular_o that_o god_n by_o he_o will_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o those_o that_o obey_v he_o if_o he_o be_v so_o near_o relate_v to_o god_n as_o even_o his_o bloody_a death_n i_o show_v in_o the_o former_a treatise_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v we_o may_v believe_v he_o when_o he_o say_v that_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o but_o i_o shall_v wave_v this_o general_a way_n of_o reason_v though_o undeniable_a and_o offer_v some_o thing_n more_o particular_a to_o every_o one_o serious_a consideration_n i._o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o whole_a story_n which_o it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o relate_v that_o to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n be_v a_o act_n perfect_o voluntary_a in_o our_o saviour_n who_o if_o he_o have_v please_v may_v have_v avoid_v it_o he_o may_v have_v choose_v whether_o he_o will_v have_v die_v or_o no_o for_o no_o man_n as_o he_o say_v x._o joh._n 18._o can_v take_v his_o life_n away_o but_o he_o lay_v it_o down_o of_o himself_o open_o profess_v i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o he_o need_v not_o have_v fall_v into_o their_o cruel_a hand_n it_o be_v plain_a unless_o he_o have_v free_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o when_o they_o be_v about_o to_o apprehend_v he_o many_o legion_n of_o angel_n be_v ready_a for_o his_o rescue_n if_o he_o have_v please_v to_o lay_v his_o command_n upon_o they_o xxvi_o matt._n 53._o nay_o when_o he_o make_v the_o soldier_n feel_v his_o power_n so_o that_o they_o go_v backward_o and_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n xviii_o joh._n 6._o he_o can_v withal_o have_v escape_v and_o go_v his_o way_n as_o he_o have_v do_v at_o other_o time_n when_o this_o reason_n alone_o be_v give_v why_o they_o do_v not_o apprehend_v he_o as_o they_o attempt_v because_o his_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v seven_o joh._n 30._o viij_o 20._o that_o be_v he_o do_v not_o see_v it_o to_o be_v the_o fit_a time_n for_o he_o to_o resign_v up_o himself_o to_o their_o power_n now_o it_o can_v enter_v into_o man_n deliberate_a thought_n that_o he_o will_v have_v so_o free_o without_o any_o constraint_n or_o resistance_n give_v up_o his_o life_n especial_o when_o by_o preserve_v it_o he_o may_v have_v live_v in_o great_a repute_n esteem_v and_o admiration_n of_o the_o people_n yea_o have_v be_v honour_v for_o escape_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v sure_o of_o eternal_a life_n and_o a_o great_a glory_n in_o the_o heaven_n which_o he_o shall_v win_v by_o go_v so_o willing_o out_o of_o this_o present_a world_n he_o that_o save_v other_o can_v sure_o have_v save_v himself_o and_o spoil_v their_o jeer_n xxvii_o matt._n 42._o if_o his_o will_n have_v not_o be_v otherwise_o resolve_v he_o that_o raise_v lazarus_n from_o the_o dead_a can_v have_v more_o easy_o strike_v all_o his_o opposer_n dead_a at_o his_o foot_n if_o it_o have_v be_v his_o pleasure_n what_o shall_v make_v his_o will_n then_o thus_o bend_v upon_o death_n what_o hinder_v the_o put_v forth_o of_o his_o power_n for_o himself_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a he_o so_o often_o use_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o other_o what_o can_v move_v he_o so_o tame_o like_o a_o lamb_n to_o give_v his_o throat_n to_o the_o bloody_a knife_n and_o to_o hang_v so_o meek_o upon_o a_o infamous_a cross_n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o contemplation_n of_o a_o incomparable_a felicity_n which_o he_o hope_v to_o obtain_v by_o his_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n all_o man_n of_o sense_n can_v choose_v but_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o undoubted_a argument_n that_o he_o himself_o steadfast_o believe_v and_o have_v good_a assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o preach_v for_o who_o be_v there_o that_o can_v find_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o die_v and_o die_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n so_o painful_o and_o with_o such_o ignominy_n for_o that_o which_o he_o think_v in_o his_o conscience_n be_v false_a nay_o do_v not_o know_v to_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v next_o to_o a_o impossibility_n that_o any_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n shall_v so_o far_o forget_v himself_o as_o to_o be_v forward_o to_o throw_v away_o all_o he_o have_v against_o the_o strong_a inclination_n and_o persuasion_n of_o nature_n which_o abhor_v death_n and_o most_o of_o all_o a_o cruel_a and_o disgraceful_a death_n mere_o to_o justify_v a_o lie_n which_o humane_a nature_n be_v ashamed_a of_o without_o the_o help_n of_o torment_n to_o make_v it_o odious_a there_o have_v be_v sundry_a example_n of_o rashness_n and_o foolish_a boldness_n but_o none_o can_v be_v produce_v nor_o easy_o imagine_v of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o this_o for_o what_o can_v a_o man_n propose_v to_o himself_o who_o lay_v his_o life_n at_o the_o stake_n to_o make_v good_a that_o which_o he_o believe_v have_v no_o truth_n in_o it_o what_o can_v he_o hope_v to_o get_v by_o such_o a_o mad_a resolve_v obstinacy_n no_o man_n attempt_v any_o thing_n without_o a_o end_n much_o less_o will_v he_o expose_v his_o life_n to_o the_o least_o hazard_n without_o a_o cause_n of_o some_o moment_n what_o can_v you_o see_v then_o in_o this_o case_n weighty_a enough_o to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o balance_n against_o a_o man_n life_n which_o shall_v make_v he_o sacrifice_v it_o free_o as_o our_o saviour_n do_v riches_n and_o all_o the_o pleasure_n they_o can_v provide_v for_o we_o can_v be_v of_o no_o consideration_n because_o they_o will_v do_v a_o man_n no_o service_n when_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o our_o saviour_n have_v no_o posterity_n to_o who_o to_o leave_v they_o honour_n and_o fame_n also_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o as_o little_a value_n for_o what_o satisfaction_n be_v it_o to_o be_v talk_v of_o in_o the_o world_n when_o we_o have_v leave_v it_o and_o hear_v nothing_o of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o it_o yet_o this_o be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v imagine_v to_o have_v any_o power_n in_o this_o business_n one_o may_v possible_o you_o may_v fancy_n for_o to_o get_v a_o great_a name_n in_o the_o world_n by_o be_v the_o author_n of_o a_o new_a opinion_n or_o sect_n throw_v away_o his_o life_n though_o he_o know_v that_o he_o do_v but_o broach_v a_o lie_n a_o strange_a supposition_n this_o be_v which_o a_o man_n in_o his_o right_a sense_n one_o will_v think_v shall_v not_o be_v incline_v to_o make_v but_o since_o some_o have_v pretend_v it_o be_v possible_a i_o shall_v brief_o show_v that_o it_o can_v have_v no_o hand_n in_o our_o saviour_n suffering_n as_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v either_o the_o circumstance_n of_o his_o death_n or_o the_o quality_n of_o his_o doctrine_n or_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o life_n ii_o the_o circumstance_n of_o his_o death_n be_v such_o that_o if_o they_o be_v but_o a_o little_a examine_v you_o will_v present_o find_v there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o this_o conceit_n for_o 1._o it_o stand_v upon_o good_a record_n that_o he_o himself_o know_v of_o his_o death_n beforehand_o and_o foretell_v it_o with_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o be_v so_o far_o from_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v it_o that_o he_o go_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n to_o the_o very_a place_n where_o he_o know_v they_o will_v come_v to_o apprehend_v he_o this_o be_v a_o plain_a declaration_n that_o he_o be_v
no_o impostor_n for_o though_o you_o may_v fancy_n a_o man_n tickle_v with_o so_o much_o vainglory_n that_o he_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o embrace_v death_n when_o he_o can_v evade_v it_o rather_o than_o unsay_v what_o he_o have_v publish_v though_o he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v false_a yet_o this_o be_v all_o that_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n be_v suppose_v no_o such_o person_n can_v be_v conceive_v willing_a to_o seek_v death_n to_o offer_v himself_o to_o it_o to_o go_v to_o the_o very_a place_n where_o he_o know_v it_o wait_v for_o he_o when_o he_o may_v as_o well_o avoid_v it_o and_o design_o put_v himself_o into_o those_o hand_n which_o it_o be_v apparent_a be_v resolve_v to_o kill_v he_o no_o though_o fame_n be_v his_o design_n yet_o the_o preservation_n of_o his_o life_n without_o all_o doubt_n be_v his_o great_a concernment_n and_o if_o he_o can_v he_o will_v enjoy_v both_o his_o fame_n together_o with_o his_o life_n but_o if_o any_o body_n will_v be_v so_o extravagant_a as_o to_o fancy_n that_o he_o may_v intend_v to_o get_v fame_n even_o by_o run_v himself_o into_o this_o danger_n let_v he_o observe_v far_o 2._o what_o our_o saviour_n meet_v withal_o in_o his_o passage_n to_o his_o death_n which_o will_v have_v stop_v such_o vain_a forwardness_n for_o there_o be_v something_o so_o dreadful_a appear_v to_o he_o in_o the_o way_n to_o his_o passion_n that_o when_o it_o approach_v he_o fall_v into_o a_o agony_n a_o great_a horror_n seize_v on_o he_o which_o declare_v how_o much_o nature_n be_v against_o his_o proceed_n who_o strong_a and_o violent_a inclination_n will_v have_v prevail_v against_o a_o fancy_n and_o vain_a humour_n if_o he_o have_v not_o know_v that_o he_o be_v engage_v in_o a_o good_a cause_n and_o do_v not_o deceive_v the_o world_n such_o terrible_a apprehension_n as_o then_o present_v themselves_o will_v have_v make_v he_o take_v the_o opportunity_n of_o the_o night_n and_o consult_v for_o his_o safety_n if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o deceiver_n and_o not_o very_o well_o assure_v that_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o then_o if_o you_o consider_v again_o 3_o that_o he_o be_v not_o hasty_o hurry_v to_o the_o gibbet_n but_o have_v a_o long_a time_n to_o weigh_v what_o he_o be_v about_o to_o suffer_v it_o will_v seem_v incredible_a that_o he_o shall_v not_o repent_v of_o his_o obstinacy_n if_o he_o have_v be_v conscious_a to_o himself_o of_o any_o falsehood_n for_o though_o in_o a_o sudden_a heat_n of_o mad_a zeal_n a_o man_n may_v be_v suppose_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o maintain_v a_o untruth_n with_o the_o hazard_n of_o his_o life_n yet_o the_o sight_n of_o long-continued_a torment_n set_v a_o great_a while_n before_o his_o eye_n will_v make_v he_o in_o all_o likelihood_n confess_v the_o truth_n but_o 4._o that_o which_o quite_o overthrow_v this_o idle_a supposition_n be_v that_o the_o kind_n of_o his_o death_n be_v such_o as_o can_v procure_v he_o nothing_o less_o than_o glory_n and_o fame_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o infamous_a and_o reproachful_a then_o to_o die_v like_o a_o vile_a slave_n upon_o a_o cross_n this_o he_o can_v not_o but_o foresee_v will_v expose_v he_o to_o the_o scorn_n of_o all_o the_o world_n do_v not_o something_o else_o gain_v he_o more_o credit_n than_o this_o can_v do_v disgrace_n and_o so_o it_o prove_v afterward_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o miracle_n he_o have_v wrought_v his_o crucifixion_n be_v the_o laughter_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o a_o stumbling-block_n to_o the_o jew_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o if_o we_o will_v but_o allow_v he_o to_o be_v a_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n he_o will_v not_o have_v take_v this_o way_n of_o all_o other_o to_o procure_v fame_n no_o course_n he_o can_v have_v think_v of_o to_o propagate_v his_o doctrine_n will_v have_v be_v more_o mad_a than_o this_o if_o it_o be_v not_o take_v as_o in_o all_o reason_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v for_o a_o token_n of_o his_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n in_o what_o he_o preach_v which_o will_v be_v publish_v he_o know_v to_o his_o immortal_a honour_n and_o glory_n in_o all_o the_o world_n but_o die_v such_o a_o death_n as_o he_o do_v there_o can_v be_v no_o hope_n it_o must_v be_v far_o consider_v 5._o that_o his_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v so_o much_o as_o publish_v by_o his_o follower_n much_o less_o receive_v by_o other_o unless_o he_o be_v both_o sure_a himself_o that_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o he_o can_v make_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o appear_v to_o they_o and_o then_o what_o will_v have_v become_v of_o all_o the_o glory_n for_o which_o it_o be_v suppose_v he_o may_v be_v tempt_v to_o part_v with_o his_o life_n all_o that_o he_o can_v do_v to_o secure_v his_o disciple_n that_o he_o preach_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o encourage_v they_o also_o to_o preach_v christ_n crucify_v which_o be_v a_o most_o odious_a and_o dangerous_a undertake_n be_v to_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o will_v rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o appear_v alive_a to_o they_o now_o it_o be_v as_o manifest_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o if_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o impostor_n he_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n that_o god_n will_v raise_v he_o up_o again_o and_o it_o be_v as_o manifest_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o rise_v again_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n that_o his_o apostle_n will_v preach_v he_o because_o he_o have_v prove_v himself_o a_o liar_n and_o if_o he_o be_v not_o preach_v by_o they_o there_o can_v be_v no_o hope_n of_o glory_n and_o fame_n and_o consequent_o he_o will_v never_o have_v die_v in_o expectation_n of_o that_o which_o if_o he_o do_v but_o abuse_v the_o world_n he_o know_v can_v not_o possible_o attend_v upon_o his_o name_n for_o it_o be_v visible_a it_o must_v either_o have_v be_v bury_v in_o silence_n or_o else_o remember_v with_o reproach_n he_o himself_o have_v blast_v it_o by_o fail_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o word_n but_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o of_o this_o and_o therefore_o shall_v consider_v only_o one_o thing_n more_o 6._o what_o it_o be_v that_o comfort_v our_o saviour_n and_o support_v his_o spirit_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v it_o the_o hope_n he_o have_v to_o be_v cry_v up_o by_o his_o follower_n and_o magnify_v everywhere_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v for_o a_o man_n of_o a_o invincible_a spirit_n no_o he_o comfort_v himself_o with_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o own_o integrity_n he_o humble_o address_v himself_o in_o prayer_n to_o god_n he_o relieve_v himself_o with_o the_o thought_n that_o he_o be_v his_o father_n to_o who_o therefore_o he_o commend_v his_o spirit_n and_o breathe_v out_o his_o soul_n in_o a_o pious_a confidence_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v it_o and_o glorify_v he_o in_o the_o heaven_n for_o a_o little_a before_o he_o suffer_v he_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n thither_o as_o st._n john_n testify_v and_o say_v father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v glorify_v thy_o son_n that_o thy_o son_n may_v glorify_v thou_o etc._n etc._n i_o have_v glorify_v thou_o on_o earth_n i_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o do_v and_o now_o o_o father_n glorify_v thou_o i_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v xvii_o joh._n 1_o 4_o 5._o and_o when_o the_o moment_n of_o his_o departure_n be_v come_v and_o he_o be_v just_a expire_n on_o the_o cross_n he_o cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o all_o may_v hear_v he_o father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n and_o have_v thus_o say_v he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n he_o that_o shall_v impute_v all_o this_o also_o to_o vainglory_n we_o may_v rather_o conclude_v take_v a_o pride_n in_o cavil_v and_o contradict_v and_o have_v lose_v all_o sense_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n which_o find_v no_o inclination_n in_o it_o to_o be_v thus_o audacious_a for_o how_o can_v he_o repose_v any_o hope_n in_o god_n who_o at_o that_o very_a instant_n when_o he_o express_v it_o be_v commit_v the_o great_a open_a affront_n unto_o he_o imaginable_a our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v ever_o a_o devout_a worshipper_n of_o he_o and_o in_o all_o his_o way_n acknowledge_v he_o and_o therefore_o since_o he_o do_v thus_o serious_o betake_v himself_o to_o he_o in_o his_o sore_a distress_n it_o be_v apparent_a he_o be_v persuade_v of_o his_o own_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n which_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n know_v to_o who_o therefore_o he_o appeal_v and_o be_v confident_a he_o shall_v live_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o and_o be_v able_a to_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o other_o iii_o but_o what_o need_n be_v there_o to_o insist_v any_o
his_o preach_n or_o present_o follow_v it_o be_v a_o very_a strong_a argument_n to_o induce_v you_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o teach_v the_o way_n of_o god_n in_o truth_n have_v reveal_v all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o life_n and_o godliness_n as_o god_n himself_o atte_v for_o by_o the_o glory_n wherewith_o he_o call_v we_o i_o e._n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o persuade_v we_o to_o believe_v we_o be_v to_o understand_v his_o transfiguration_n on_o the_o holy_a mount_n where_o they_o see_v his_o glory_n ix_o luk._n 32._o and_o to_o which_o the_o apostle_n afterward_o appeal_v ver_fw-la 16_o 17._o of_o this_o chapter_n as_o a_o justification_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o ministry_n the_o come_n down_o also_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o his_o baptism_n the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n in_o one_o of_o which_o god_n say_v he_o will_v glorify_v he_o again_o as_o he_o have_v do_v already_o and_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o apostle_n be_v here_o also_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o glory_n for_o by_o these_o we_o be_v call_v and_o move_v to_o receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o then_o by_o virtue_n be_v undoubted_o mean_v that_o very_a thing_n which_o i_o last_o treat_v of_o his_o mighty_a power_n in_o miraculous_a work_n and_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a for_o it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o drusius_n and_o other_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d virtue_n in_o these_o holy_a write_n never_o signify_v as_o it_o do_v in_o heathen_a author_n piety_n and_o moral_a goodness_n in_o opposition_n to_o vice_n but_o power_n and_o might_n in_o opposition_n to_o weakness_n and_o therefore_o by_o this_o word_n the_o greek_a interpreter_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n render_v the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o denote_v the_o greatness_n majesty_n and_o height_n of_o god_n excellency_n and_o sometime_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v strength_n and_o stoutness_n according_a to_o which_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o denote_v either_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n as_o here_o in_o this_o place_n or_o else_o our_o courage_n and_o valour_n as_o in_o the_o five_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n but_o it_o be_v nowhere_o find_v in_o the_o sacred_a style_n use_v for_o piety_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o render_v the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_z but_o by_o virtue_n that_o be_v the_o power_n and_o mightiness_n of_o god_n arm_n or_o strength_n as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v by_o which_o our_o saviour_n convince_v the_o world_n that_o god_n the_o father_n have_v send_v he_o to_o give_v life_n unto_o it_o thus_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n say_v which_o will_v very_o much_o explain_v this_o that_o he_o be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n vi_fw-la rom._n 4._o that_o be_v by_o his_o glorious_a power_n as_o camero_n well_o render_v it_o for_o his_o power_n appear_v most_o glorious_o in_o that_o wonderful_a work_n whereby_o as_o st._n peter_n here_o speak_v he_o call_v we_o to_o believe_v on_o he_o so_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v he_o it_o appear_v by_o another_o argument_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v we_o be_v call_v to_o glory_n understand_v thereby_o heaven_n we_o can_v not_o be_v say_v to_o have_v precious_a promise_n as_o it_o follow_v hereby_o give_v to_o we_o for_o this_o will_v be_v to_o say_v that_o by_o call_v we_o to_o heaven_n he_o have_v call_v we_o to_o heaven_n but_o if_o we_o take_v these_o word_n the_o other_o way_n than_o the_o sense_n run_v current_o and_o deliver_v to_o we_o this_o excellent_a truth_n that_o by_o such_o mean_n as_o i_o have_v treat_v of_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o transfiguration_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n the_o miracle_n he_o wrought_v the_o might_n of_o his_o power_n which_o wrought_v in_o he_o when_o god_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o persuade_v man_n to_o receive_v he_o as_o the_o onely-begotten_a of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v come_v by_o his_o authority_n to_o show_v they_o the_o true_a way_n to_o everlasting_a life_n by_o these_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o cheat_v but_o that_o he_o who_o have_v call_v we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o who_o we_o be_v sure_a to_o attain_v everlasting_a life_n if_o we_o follow_v those_o direction_n he_o have_v give_v we_o which_o will_v infallible_o bring_v we_o to_o it_o and_o then_o the_o next_o word_n ver_fw-la 4._o be_v still_o more_o pertinent_a to_o my_o purpose_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o by_o which_o glory_n and_o virtue_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o exceed_v great_a and_o precious_a promise_n we_o be_v so_o sure_a to_o attain_v eternal_a life_n that_o we_o have_v many_o promise_n of_o it_o which_o be_v so_o strong_o confirm_v that_o we_o can_v doubt_v of_o they_o be_v deliver_v in_o such_o a_o divine_a manner_n for_o when_o he_o give_v they_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o glory_n and_o virtue_n with_o such_o demonstration_n of_o his_o authority_n to_o promise_v they_o and_o of_o his_o power_n to_o make_v they_o good_a that_o we_o can_v but_o depend_v upon_o his_o word_n none_o i_o suppose_v question_v but_o by_o these_o great_a these_o precious_a yea_o exceed_a great_a and_o precious_a promise_n he_o mean_v those_o of_o raise_v we_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o carry_v we_o to_o heaven_n to_o live_v with_o god_n and_o that_o eternal_o these_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n of_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o such_o assurance_n when_o he_o call_v we_o to_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n thing_n which_o as_o much_o exceed_v all_o that_o be_v promise_v israel_n as_o the_o heaven_n be_v wide_a than_o the_o small_a spot_n of_o this_o earth_n more_o precious_a be_v they_o then_o all_o land_n if_o they_o flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n more_o to_o be_v desire_v then_o gold_n yea_o then_o much_o fine_a gold_n than_o all_o the_o gold_n of_o ophir_n more_o to_o be_v value_v then_o the_o crown_n of_o king_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o emmet_n egg_n in_o comparison_n with_o this_o happiness_n now_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v compare_v with_o these_o promise_n so_o we_o have_v no_o testimony_n on_o earth_n comparable_a to_o this_o of_o the_o spirit_n that_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n whereby_o these_o promise_n be_v bring_v to_o we_o and_o assure_v to_o be_v infallible_a for_o by_o this_o we_o know_v that_o he_o have_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o be_v able_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o the_o father_n almighty_n do_v that_o be_v give_v life_n to_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v the_o property_n of_o the_o almighty_a alone_o so_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v who_o say_v there_o be_v three_o key_n which_o god_n keep_v to_o himself_o and_o commit_v to_o none_o of_o his_o ambassador_n the_o key_n of_o the_o womb_n the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o key_n of_o the_o grave_n thy_o power_n say_v joseph_n albo_n speak_v of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o power_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o power_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v to_o put_v those_o to_o death_n who_o be_v alive_a but_o thy_o power_n be_v to_o raise_v those_o to_o life_n who_o be_v dead_a the_o very_a same_o we_o may_v just_o say_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o challenge_v this_o power_n to_o himself_o as_o i_o have_v note_v before_o out_o of_o the_o first_o of_o the_o revelation_n where_o he_o tell_v st._n john_n i_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o of_o death_n ver_fw-la 18._o he_o be_v no_o ordinary_a ambassador_n but_o can_v do_v more_o than_o any_o who_o god_n send_v into_o the_o world_n ever_o do_v or_o can_v he_o can_v raise_v even_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o his_o subject_n to_o life_n again_o and_o when_o he_o have_v lift_v they_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n if_o i_o may_v apply_v the_o psalmist_n word_n to_o this_o purpose_n can_v set_v they_o with_o prince_n even_o with_o the_o prince_n of_o his_o heavenly_a court_n to_o praise_v and_o bless_v his_o love_n among_o those_o great_a minister_n the_o angelical_a power_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o which_o be_v a_o power_n he_o do_v not_o assume_v to_o himself_o vain_o but_o be_v confer_v on_o he_o by_o god_n the_o father_n who_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o give_v he_o glory_n wherein_o st._n john_n behold_v he_o when_o he_o say_v i_o be_o he_o that_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a and_o behold_v i_o live_v for_o evermore_o amen_n and_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o of_o death_n great_a be_v
hope_v that_o when_o other_o thing_n by_o any_o calamity_n in_o this_o world_n stand_v afar_o off_o and_o can_v do_v nothing_o for_o we_o there_o will_v be_v the_o more_o room_n for_o the_o thought_n and_o sense_n of_o this_o future_a bliss_n to_o spread_v itself_o and_o fill_v the_o whole_a capacity_n of_o pious_a heart_n then_o they_o will_v be_v most_o at_o leisure_n then_o invisible_a thing_n will_v seem_v most_o real_a then_o they_o will_v most_o strong_o affect_v the_o heart_n so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v the_o worse_a for_o their_o affliction_n but_o the_o better_a and_o their_o pain_n will_v but_o bring_v they_o the_o soon_o to_o heavenly_a joy_n and_o shall_v not_o our_o faith_n work_v thus_o mighty_o in_o our_o heart_n at_o least_o support_v we_o with_o true_a satisfaction_n under_o all_o our_o trouble_n it_o will_v be_v a_o exceed_a great_a shame_n to_o we_o when_o we_o consider_v with_o what_o resolution_n courage_n and_o cheerfulness_n they_o who_o knowledge_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n be_v dark_a than_o we_o receive_v the_o most_o dreadful_a suffering_n even_o death_n itself_o before_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o mother_n and_o her_o seven_o son_n who_o story_n be_v record_v in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n chap._n seven_o be_v a_o famous_a instance_n of_o this_o who_o in_o hope_n of_o a_o bless_a resurrection_n when_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o stand_v on_o a_o feeble_a foundation_n than_o we_o offer_v themselves_o to_o the_o sharp_a torment_n rather_o than_o break_v the_o law_n of_o their_o creator_n neither_o the_o strappado_n nor_o the_o wheel_n to_o rack_v their_o joint_n nor_o hook_n of_o iron_n to_o tear_v their_o flesh_n nor_o the_o fury_n of_o wild_a beast_n nor_o boil_a caldron_n nor_o the_o fierce_a fire_n no_o evil_a present_n no_o evil_a to_o come_v can_v move_v the_o heart_n of_o these_o young_a man_n who_o be_v in_o their_o flourish_a year_n or_o make_v they_o yield_v a_o jot_n to_o the_o wicked_a tyrant_n who_o will_v have_v have_v they_o transgress_v the_o ordinance_n of_o moses_n they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o that_o great_a man_n etc._n orat._n xxii_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 401_o etc._n etc._n st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n who_o have_v admirable_o sum_v up_o their_o speech_n in_o a_o oration_n of_o he_o which_o he_o make_v in_o their_o commendation_n where_o he_o proceed_v in_o this_o manner_n one_o of_o the_o brethren_n speak_v in_o one_o fashion_n and_o the_o rest_n in_o another_o according_a as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o tyrant_n or_o the_o order_n of_o their_o suffering_n give_v occasion_n but_o to_o comprise_v all_o in_o a_o little_a compass_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o what_o they_o say_v o_o king_n antiochus_n and_o all_o you_o that_o be_v here_o present_a be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o that_o we_o have_v one_o king_n even_o god_n almighty_a from_o who_o we_o come_v and_o unto_o who_o we_o must_v return_v and_o we_o have_v one_o lawgiver_n moses_n who_o we_o will_v never_o betray_v nor_o reproach_n though_o another_o antiochus_n more_o fierce_a and_o severe_a than_o thou_o shall_v threaten_v we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d our_o only_a security_n be_v to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o not_o to_o break_v the_o law_n whereby_o we_o be_v guard_v our_o only_a glory_n be_v for_o such_o great_a thing_n to_o despise_v all_o glory_n beside_o our_o only_a riches_n be_v the_o hope_n we_o have_v hereafter_o our_o only_a fear_n lest_o we_o shall_v fear_v any_o thing_n more_o than_o god_n with_o these_o reason_n we_o now_o come_v arm_v into_o the_o field_n of_o danger_n we_o be_v but_o young_a it_o be_v true_a and_o this_o world_n be_v sweet_a our_o native_a country_n our_o friend_n our_o kindred_n our_o dear_a companion_n invite_v we_o to_o stay_v with_o they_o but_o none_o of_o they_o be_v so_o sweet_a as_o god_n none_o so_o dear_a as_o those_o very_a danger_n which_o we_o expose_v ourselves_o unto_o for_o virtue_n be_v sake_n harbour_n no_o such_o thought_n we_o humble_o beseech_v you_o for_o there_o be_v another_o world_n also_o which_o expect_v we_o more_o lofty_a and_o durable_a by_o far_o than_o all_o that_o we_o behold_v in_o this_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v above_o be_v our_o country_n which_o not_o antiochus_n can_v besiege_v no_o power_n on_o earth_n can_v touch_v or_o endanger_v all_o those_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n be_v our_o kindred_n the_o prophet_n and_o patriarch_n our_o friend_n from_o who_o we_o have_v receive_v a_o pattern_n of_o piety_n and_o our_o companion_n be_v all_o those_o who_o hazard_v themselves_o with_o we_o this_o day_n and_o be_v our_o contemporary_n in_o constant_a suffering_n heaven_n be_v more_o glorious_a than_o our_o temple_n itself_o the_o choir_n of_o angel_n infinite_o beyond_o our_o solemn_a assembly_n and_o there_o be_v one_o great_a mystery_n god_n himself_o who_o all_o our_o sacred_a mystery_n here_o respect_n and_o therefore_o cease_v to_o make_v we_o any_o more_o offer_n and_o promise_n of_o little_a thing_n which_o be_v nothing_o worth_a we_o love_v not_o those_o shameful_a honour_n which_o we_o shall_v get_v by_o deny_v god_n we_o be_v not_o breed_v to_o make_v such_o unthrifty_a bargain_n and_o can_v traffic_v with_o thou_o on_o such_o base_a and_o ignoble_a term_n and_o therefore_o cease_v also_o to_o threaten_v we_o or_o we_o can_v return_v more_o dreadful_a threaten_n which_o will_v reprove_v thy_o weakness_n for_o know_v that_o we_o have_v a_o fire_n into_o which_o to_o throw_v our_o persecutor_n do_v thou_o think_v thou_o have_v to_o do_v with_o gentile_a people_n those_o it_o be_v true_a thou_o have_v overcome_v they_o have_v yield_v to_o thy_o threaten_n and_o power_n and_o no_o wonder_n for_o they_o do_v not_o fight_v for_o such_o glorious_a thing_n as_o we_o they_o only_o defend_v their_o city_n and_o good_n but_o we_o defend_v the_o law_n of_o the_o most_o high_a thou_o oppose_v thyself_o now_o against_o the_o table_n write_v with_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n against_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o divine_a service_n against_o the_o rite_n of_o our_o country_n which_o reason_n and_o time_n have_v make_v honourable_a against_o seven_o brethren_n who_o be_v link_v together_o by_o one_o soul_n who_o it_o be_v no_o such_o mighty_a business_n to_o overcome_v but_o to_o be_v worsted_n by_o they_o will_v be_v most_o shameful_a and_o be_v assure_v we_o will_v set_v up_o seven_o monument_n of_o thy_o disgrace_n for_o we_o be_v the_o progeny_n and_o disciple_n of_o those_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n and_o a_o cloud_n to_o who_o the_o sea_n part_v itself_o and_o the_o sun_n stand_v still_o and_o bread_n rain_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o who_o triumph_v over_o mighty_a king_n by_o prayer_n and_o lift_v up_o their_o hand_n to_o heaven_n and_o to_o say_v something_o that_o come_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o thy_o knowledge_n we_o be_v breed_v up_o under_o eleazar_n who_o fortitude_n and_o courage_n thou_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o father_n lead_v the_o way_n the_o son_n follow_v he_o to_o the_o like_a combat_n therefore_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o add_v any_o more_o threaten_n we_o can_v suffer_v great_a thing_n than_o those_o thou_o speak_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v none_o more_o valiant_a than_o they_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o endure_v all_o thing_n why_o do_v you_o delay_v to_o begin_v your_o cruelty_n what_o do_v you_o stay_v for_o or_o expect_v do_v you_o think_v we_o may_v change_v our_o mind_n and_o recant_v no_o we_o protest_v again_o and_o again_o we_o will_v never_o eat_v impure_a flesh_n we_o will_v never_o break_v the_o law_n of_o our_o god_n thou_o shall_v soon_o turn_v to_o our_o religion_n than_o we_o to_o thou_o let_v hot_a fire_n be_v kindle_v let_v more_o ravenous_a beast_n be_v bring_v forth_o let_v more_o exquisite_a torment_n be_v invent_v in_o short_a either_o devise_v some_o new_a punishment_n or_o know_v that_o we_o despise_v these_o that_o be_v before_o we_o these_o say_v he_o be_v their_o word_n to_o the_o tyrant_n in_o the_o relation_n of_o which_o i_o be_o wonderful_o delight_v and_o then_o embrace_v and_o kiss_v one_o another_o with_o no_o less_o cheerfulness_n then_o if_o they_o have_v be_v come_v to_o receive_v their_o reward_n let_v we_o go_v say_v they_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n let_v we_o go_v to_o meet_v these_o danger_n let_v we_o make_v haste_n while_o the_o tyrant_n be_v hot_a and_o chafe_v lest_o he_o cool_v again_o and_o we_o lose_v the_o salvation_n what_o though_o it_o cost_v we_o our_o life_n must_v not_o we_o leave_v they_o some_o time_n or_o other_o must_v we_o not_o pay_v the_o debt_n we_o owe_v to_o nature_n let_v we_o convert_v then_o a_o necessity_n into_o our_o choice_n
this_o account_n because_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o he_o do_v such_o miracle_n as_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n never_o do_v xv_o joh._n 24._o if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v among_o they_o the_o work_n which_o none_o other_o man_n do_v they_o have_v not_o have_v sin_n in_o not_o receive_v he_o as_o their_o messiah_n the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o now_o they_o have_v both_o see_v by_o those_o work_n which_o he_o do_v and_o yet_o hate_v both_o i_o and_o my_o father_n they_o can_v not_o endure_v such_o a_o messiah_n as_o he_o be_v though_o so_o divine_o impower_v and_o consequent_o have_v no_o love_n to_o god_n who_o have_v set_v such_o plain_a mark_n and_o character_n of_o his_o approbation_n upon_o he_o of_o which_o his_o divine_a work_n be_v the_o chief_a for_o he_o allege_v these_o as_o s._n john_n here_o in_o his_o epistle_n do_v as_o the_o last_o witness_n and_o evidence_n to_o he_o upon_o earth_n v._o joh._n 36._o but_o i_o have_v a_o great_a witness_n than_o that_o of_o john_n for_o the_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o to_o finish_v the_o same_o work_n that_o i_o do_v bear_v witness_v of_o i_o that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v i_o yea_o when_o john_n himself_o send_v his_o disciple_n to_o know_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n he_o plain_o show_v that_o he_o look_v on_o this_o as_o a_o great_a testimony_n to_o he_o than_o that_o of_o their_o master_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v already_o and_o therefore_o give_v they_o no_o other_o answer_n but_o this_o go_v and_o show_v john_n again_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o do_v hear_v and_o see_v the_o blind_a receive_v their_o sight_n and_o the_o lame_a walk_n the_o leper_n be_v cleanse_v and_o the_o deaf_a hear_v the_o dead_a be_v raise_v up_o and_o the_o poor_a have_v the_o gospel_n preach_v to_o they_o xi_o matth._n 4_o 5._o where_o though_o he_o mention_v his_o heavenly_a doctrine_n yet_o he_o chief_o insist_o upon_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o most_o apt_a to_o affect_v they_o and_o in_o that_o very_a hour_n when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v resolve_v as_o s._n luke_n tell_v we_o seven_o 21._o he_o cure_v many_o of_o their_o infirmity_n and_o plague_n and_o of_o evil_a spirit_n and_o unto_o many_o that_o be_v blind_a he_o give_v sight_n this_o he_o think_v can_v not_o but_o satisfy_v they_o if_o they_o will_v believe_v their_o eye_n especial_o if_o they_o will_v believe_v also_o what_o they_o hear_v that_o he_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a he_o can_v not_o now_o give_v they_o a_o clear_a and_o full_a testimony_n of_o his_o divinity_n and_o he_o rely_v so_o much_o upon_o this_o evidence_n that_o when_o he_o have_v cure_v a_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n he_o tell_v the_o scribe_n that_o he_o loose_v he_o from_o the_o chain_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o restore_v he_o to_o health_n and_o bid_v he_o arise_v and_o walk_v now_o that_o he_o be_v pardon_v on_o purpose_n that_o they_o may_v know_v the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n on_o earth_n to_o forgive_v sin_n ix_o matth._n 6._o that_o be_v to_o take_v away_o all_o temporal_a punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o sin_n as_o after_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n when_o he_o come_v to_o heaven_n he_o have_v power_n to_o take_v away_o the_o eternal_a and_o to_o give_v life_n immortal_a now_o who_o can_v have_v such_o a_o power_n but_o god_n only_o as_o the_o scribe_n say_v very_o well_o upon_o this_o occasion_n two_o mark_v 7._o who_o can_v grapple_v with_o the_o devil_n the_o prince_n the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n twelve_o joh._n 31._o 2_o cor._n four_o 4._o but_o only_o he_o who_o be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o as_o jesus_n appear_v by_o these_o miraculous_a work_n to_o be_v and_o indeed_o it_o be_v very_o remarkable_a that_o he_o wrought_v his_o miracle_n frequent_o just_a as_o god_n almighty_n bring_v thing_n to_o pass_v god_n say_v moses_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a he_o speak_v as_o the_o psalmist_n word_n be_v and_o it_o be_v do_v he_o command_v and_o it_o stand_v fast_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v our_o saviour_n say_v to_o the_o leper_n viij_o matth._n 3._o be_v thou_o clean_o and_o immediate_o his_o leprosy_n be_v cleanse_v and_o to_o the_o foul_a spirit_n ix_o mark_v 25._o come_v out_o i_o charge_v thou_o thou_o dumb_a and_o deaf_a spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n cry_v and_o come_v out_o and_o to_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o and_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a come_v forth_o bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n with_o graveclothe_n which_o be_v a_o notable_a evidence_n that_o indeed_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n since_o he_o act_v so_o like_a to_o the_o father_n almighty_n this_o be_v so_o well_o know_v that_o when_o the_o centurion_n come_v and_o beseech_v he_o for_o a_o sick_a servant_n of_o he_o who_o lie_v in_o grievous_a torment_n and_o our_o saviour_n promise_v to_o come_v and_o heal_v he_o he_o modest_o decline_v the_o acceptance_n of_o that_o favour_n in_o a_o sense_n of_o his_o unworthiness_n to_o have_v he_o come_v under_o his_o roof_n and_o desire_v he_o that_o he_o will_v speak_z the_o word_n only_a and_o he_o believe_v his_o servant_n shall_v be_v heal_v viij_o matth._n 8._o the_o first_o cure_n that_o we_o read_v particular_o relate_v be_v that_o of_o the_o leper_n aforementioned_a v._n 3._o and_o wrought_v by_o a_o word_n he_o hope_v it_o be_v like_a that_o his_o servant_n may_v be_v cure_v as_o easy_o without_o give_v our_o saviour_n the_o trouble_n of_o come_v to_o his_o house_n and_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o he_o for_o his_o recovery_n though_o by_o the_o way_n we_o may_v note_v that_o herein_o appear_v also_o his_o great_a power_n that_o as_o he_o can_v heal_v if_o he_o please_v without_o touch_v so_o he_o can_v heal_v at_o a_o great_a distance_n yea_o the_o woman_n that_o do_v but_o touch_v not_o he_o but_o the_o very_a hem_n of_o his_o garment_n v._o mark_n 29._o have_v virtue_n or_o power_n that_o be_v something_o from_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o he_o communicate_v to_o she_o which_o restore_v she_o to_o perfect_a health_n what_o do_v all_o this_o note_n but_o that_o he_o who_o wrought_v such_o thing_n so_o easy_o so_o ready_o in_o any_o place_n and_o on_o all_o occasion_n be_v indeed_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v honour_v as_o the_o author_n because_o he_o be_v the_o restorer_n of_o humane_a nature_n there_o be_v great_a reason_n to_o acknowledge_v so_o great_a a_o benefactor_n to_o mankind_n to_o be_v more_o than_o a_o man_n for_o none_o but_o god_n either_o can_v or_o will_v bestow_v such_o blessing_n it_o may_v be_v say_v indeed_o that_o moses_n and_o some_o of_o the_o prophet_n wrought_v miracle_n and_o yet_o can_v thence_o be_v conclude_v to_o be_v person_n of_o such_o quality_n but_o it_o may_v as_o easy_o be_v answer_v that_o their_o miracle_n be_v nothing_o comparable_a either_o in_o their_o multitude_n or_o greatness_n to_o those_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o the_o multitude_n remember_v how_o s._n john_n conclude_v his_o gospel_n in_o which_o he_o have_v record_v some_o of_o they_o and_o there_o be_v also_o many_o other_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o jesus_n do_v the_o which_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v write_v every_o one_o i_o suppose_v that_o even_o the_o world_n itself_o can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n that_o shall_v be_v write_v for_o he_o go_v about_o as_o have_v be_v often_o say_v do_v good_a and_o fill_v every_o place_n with_o so_o many_o miracle_n of_o his_o mercy_n that_o we_o can_v imagine_v into_o how_o many_o volume_n it_o will_v have_v swell_v if_o a_o record_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v be_v take_v and_o as_o for_o the_o greatness_n and_o the_o quality_n of_o they_o you_o find_v some_o among_o those_o which_o s._n john_n have_v set_v down_o which_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o since_o the_o world_n begin_v ix_o joh._n 32._o which_o may_v well_o make_v our_o saviour_n say_v as_o i_o note_v just_a now_o that_o he_o have_v do_v among_o they_o the_o work_n that_o no_o man_n do_v xv_o 24._o else_o they_o have_v not_o have_v sin_n that_o be_v he_o can_v not_o have_v charge_v they_o with_o the_o guilt_n of_o refuse_v to_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o the_o reply_n that_o may_v be_v make_v to_o this_o exception_n it_o be_v far_o more_o considerable_a that_o jesus_n affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o which_o dignity_n neither_o moses_n nor_o the_o prophet_n ever_o pretend_v the_o end_n of_o miracle_n be_v